lance2476's Avatar
lance2476 Member Since October 19, 2009

Family Friend - Part 27

bjcortland on Teen Stories

Chapter 94

Steve watched as Katie turned on the shower, then looked back at him, her sparkling eyes scanning him up and down. “Are you going to shower in your clothes?” she asked with a grin. Steve chuckled and began to strip off his work clothes. She faced him, her arms folded across her firm tits. She was still wearing her tiny t-shirt and skirt and made no effort to undress as he peeled off his shirt and tossed it into the corner.

“What about you?” he asked.

She gave him a teasing grin and shook her head. “In a minute,” she replied, her eyes moving over his chest and her tongue licking at her lips. “I want to watch you first.”

Steve chuckled again and pulled off his socks. “That’s fine with me,&rdquo

Read More
; he said, reaching for the button of his work pants. He slowly unzipped the fly, watching her watching him.

She looked up at him and grinned. “You tease! Let me see that fucking dick!”

Steve laughed and folded his arms over his bare chest. “Show me your tits first.”

Katie’s mouth dropped open in mock shock. “What? Why you little perv! What kind of a girl do you think I am anyway?” As she was speaking, one hand slipped up under her t-shirt and he could see her fingers moving under the cloth to tease her hard nipple.

He grinned at her. “The kind of girl who fucks guys out in the open then brings them home to do it again!”

She tried to look shocked but failed, bursting out laughing. “Damn! You know me too well!” She assumed a demure look and placed one foot in front of the other, coquettishly crossing her long legs. “So, if I show you my tits, you’ll finish undressing?” He nodded. She pretended to think about it, then reached for the bottom of the cut-off t-shirt. “Well, all right. But don’t think this means I’m putting out.”

Steve’s eyes met hers and the fire in them was as bright as it was in hers. It was obvious they were both becoming even more turned on by this little game. “Oh, you’ll put out all right. But first you’re gonna suck my cock.”

She was about to lift her shirt over her head when she stopped. Her face had a surprised expression but her eyes sparkled with sexual excitement. “I will not!” she exclaimed, dropping her hands. She started for the door but he moved to stop her, placing his arm across it. She looked over at him and he grinned.

“Oh yes you will, and you’ll like it.” He reached out to fondle her tit but she teasingly slapped his hand away. His eyebrows went up and he did it again, this time stopping her hand with one arm while grasping her firm tit with the other hand. She gasped and looked up at him. “Now, take off that top.” He looked down at her beautiful body. “And the skirt too. Then you’re going to undress me and get into the shower, where I want you to wash me, then suck my cock.”

Katie managed to maintain her shocked little innocent girl act, but this was really making her hot. She loved the way he was ordering her to do things. His hand roughly kneaded her tit over her shirt, which only increased her arousal at this sexy game.

“And what if I refuse?” she asked, trying to make her voice sound a little scared.

Steve smiled and grabbed her hair, yanking it. “I don’t think you will.”

She cried out, once again faking fear. She loved having her hair pulled and hoped he liked to spank too. “All…all right…please…let go!” He didn’t let go but he did ease up a bit. She reached for her top again and pulled it up.

He released her hair long enough for her to pull it over her head, then grabbed it once again, his eyes moving down to her full breasts, the nipples ripe and ready for suckling. “The skirt,” he said, giving her hair a little tug. Katie unfastened the button and unzipped it, letting it fall to the floor at her feet. She stood completely naked before him now and he spent a moment examining her svelte body. “Mmm…very nice. Now, my pants and shorts.”

Obediently, she unzipped his pants and began to work them down. He released her hair and she knelt before him to take them off. She could see the large tent in his boxers and the scent of his arousal wafted to her nostrils. She looked up at him once she had his pants off and he nodded to his boxers. Feigning reluctance, she grasped the waistband and slowly lowered them until his hard cock emerged, almost tapping her in the face. She took them all the way off, then leaned in until her mouth was almost touching the glistening tip before standing up without touching him.

He grinned and shook his head. “Why you little cock tease,” he declared. “It looks like I’m going to have to teach you some manners!” She said nothing as he grabbed her wrist and pushed her toward the shower. He opened the door and she went in first, then he followed. He watched as the water hit her golden skin and beaded on it, her wet hair plastered to her shoulders. Fuck, she was sexy!

Remembering the role-play, he passed her the soap. “Wash me.” He stood before her expectantly. After a moment, she began to lather him up, moving her hands over his hard chest and broad shoulders, then down his toned arms. He turned around and she washed his back, then down to his ass. Then she knelt down and washed both legs and his feet. He turned around so she could finish, his cock almost slapping her in the face. She washed up his legs and after a brief look up, began to clean his groin and cock. He inhaled a deep breath as her wet hands caressed his shaft and balls.

When she was finished, she started to get up, but he forced her back down. “Uh-uh…remember what I said?” She was really becoming turned on now. Touching and caressing him while washing him was exciting and when she finished with his cock and balls, she could barely stop herself from sucking it into her mouth right away. But she wanted this sexy role play to continue so she forced herself not to.

Steve placed a hand on the back of her head and pushed her toward his throbbing cock. “Come on, you tease…do it!” She pretended to resist for a bit, then opened her mouth and allowed him to push his cock into it. She felt instant gratification at the feel of his cock in her mouth and began to work it, no longer pretending to be a reluctant participant. There was no way she was going to ruin his blow job by acting like she didn’t want to do it. Her lips clamped down on his hard shaft and she murmured contentedly as she began to move back and forth, taking almost all of it into her hot little mouth.

Steve looked down at the beautiful naked girl before him and continued to hold his hand on her head, gently urging her on. There was really no need for him to help her; she was doing very well all on her own. He moaned as her tongue rolled over the soft tip and steadied himself by placing one hand on the shower wall. He closed his eyes and let the warm water hit his face and stream down his body. Shower head was definitely something he intended to do again!

He allowed her to suck on him for a few minutes then pulled away and helped her to her feet. She looked a bit disappointed as she wiped the water from hr eyes. “You didn’t let me finish,” she complained with a pretty pout.

He pulled her to him and kissed her hard, pushing his tongue into her mouth. “It’s my turn to wash you now,” he answered after the passionate kiss.

She grinned and licked her lips. “Mmm…ok!”

He picked up a washcloth and began to lather up her sexy body, now even sexier with the water beading on her soft skin. He started at her breasts, slowly scrubbing them with the cloth, then used his hands to help rinse the soap off. Her nipples stood out in full arousal and he couldn’t resist giving each of them a pinch. Katie yelped a little and he immediately released the little knots of flesh, then continued washing her. He turned her around and did her back. She placed both hands on the wall and leaned forward slightly as he methodically washed every inch of her back…twice. Then he moved down to her smoking hot ass, carefully washing each cheek before pushing her feet apart and running his hand up her inner thigh until he felt the heat of her slit. He heard her gasp even over the sound of the shower and he slipped one, then two fingers inside her. He felt her pussy clamp down on the invading fingers and she began to wriggle her ass from side to side slightly. He continued to finger her for a minute or two, then pulled his fingers from her hot pussy and knelt down to wash her long, sexy legs.

He quickly did the backs of her legs, then urged her to turn around. As she did, her pussy was eye level and he had to force himself to look down to admire her shapely legs as he worked his way back up to where they met. He examined her little bare beaver, her lips swollen and the inner labia peeking out from between the outer lips. Her vulva was also engorged and he knew her clit would be hard and sensitive. He licked his lips at the thought of tasting her sweet pussy and began to wash it slowly and methodically. He knew some of his cum from earlier was still inside her and although that wouldn’t’ve stopped him from going down on her, he welcomed the opportunity to freshen her up a bit.

He rinsed the suds from her pussy, making sure he got all the soap from inside as well, then stood up and embraced her, kissing her hard and long under the streaming water. Katie was the one who eventually turned the shower off and opened the door.

“Come on, baby…let’s go to bed,” she said as she passed him a towel. They dried off, helping one another, then walked across the hall to Katie’s old room - now the guest room. He watched her perfect little ass as he followed her until she turned to face him. He looked her over, once again taken back by her beauty and amazing sexuality. Her damp hair hung to her shoulders, reminding him of some picture he’d seen somewhere of a swimsuit model walking along a beach. It made her seem more desirable… sexier… exotic, and he wanted her so bad.

“So,” she said, glancing at the bed, “…what are you going to make me do next?” Her eyes sparkled and he smiled to himself. Game on.

“Lay down on the bed and spread those legs wide for me,” he replied. “You’re a very bad girl and you need a good licking!”

She laughed at his cheap porno-type line, but he was trying so she did as he instructed. As she opened her legs, her beautiful pink flower opened for him and he licked his lips as he went over and knelt at her feet. She looked so sweet that he just wanted to dive in and bury his face in her delicate pussy. Instead, he decided to tease her a little and began to kiss up her inner thighs. As he did, he placed a hand just above her mound and started to move it in small circles, each time moving a little lower. Katie murmured happily and almost involuntarily lifted her hips a little, urging him closer to her needy pussy.

After a few minutes her moans of contentment became grunts of frustration as he continued to tease her. “Oh my god,” She panted, trying to push her pussy to where his mouth was. “Please…stop teasing me!” His response was to lick slowly along her slit, causing a small gasp to escape her lips. “Oh, fuck, yes!” He continued to lick up and down her engorged labia, then moved his fingers down to tug back the protective hood over her clit. She whimpered as it was slowly exposed, red and fully erect. Steve touched the little sex organ and she responded with a grunt and a twitch. Then he moved his mouth to it and felt her inhale a deep breath in expectation. He closed his lips around it and sucked on it, causing her to cry out and twist under him. Then, he closed his teeth around it and bit down gently.

Katie let out a yell that surprised him with its volume and intensity. “Ow! Shit!”

He released it and looked up at her. “Sorry, did that hurt?”

She looked down at him. “Only a little. You just surprised me is all.”

He gave her an apologetic smile, then deciding he’d teased her enough, he lowered his face to her pussy and began to lick and suck on it for all he was worth. She moaned softly and lay back, finally getting some satisfaction after all of his teasing. His tongue flicked and tunneled, moving all around her slippery labia, up to her clit, and then inside her hot hole. He moved up to her clit again and pushed two fingers into her at one point and she groaned in pleasure. He pushed his fingers into her wet pussy, forcing her juices to coat her labia and even trickle down over her little asshole.

Steve was really getting into it, loving the way she gasped and twisted as he orally pleasured her. When he felt her slick juices running down over her taint the got an idea. He began to suck on her clit, flicking it with his tongue. As soon as she was distracted by that, he pulled the fingers from her pussy and slowly rubbed them down over her taint to her tiny little back door. He didn’t try to push in, just rubbed it slowly.

“Oh fuck! Yes!” she moaned, pulling her legs up to better expose her asshole.

He smiled to himself. She liked it! He decided to push it a little further and began to work a finger into her tight hole. She moaned louder and he felt her relax until his finger slipped in to the first knuckle.

“Mmm…more,” she moaned, reaching back to spread her cheeks. He inserted another finger and she groaned again. Slowly, he pushed them into her steamy ass as far as he could. She only seemed to become more turned on. “Oh god yes! Fuck my ass!” He began to push in and out of her ass and went back to work on her pussy with his mouth. It wasn’t long before she began to quiver and shake and he felt her strong vaginal muscles tightening. She came quickly, again with no sound except for a long exhale and a low whimper. Her body shuddered and tensed as wave after wave coursed through her, then she fell back to the bed and he withdrew his fingers from her ass. He crawled up and kissed along her stomach until he reached those deliciously firm, pert little titties. His mouth sought out and found each nipple in turn, sucking and nibbling on them until she pulled him from her breasts and brought his mouth to hers, kissing him hungrily.

After a moment, she broke off the kiss and adjusted herself so that his cock was positioned at her pussy. Her eyes met his and he knew exactly what she wanted. With only the slightest movement, and without breaking eye contact, he slid into her easily, burying himself to the hilt in her hot, wet cunt. She inhaled a long breath, then let it out as he began a long, slow fuck.

For a long time, neither said anything, just looking into one another’s eyes as they fucked slowly and deeply. Finally Katie said, “What made you do that…with my ass?”

Steve moved in and out a couple more times before replying. “I don’t know. You were so wet and I know some girls like that, so I thought I’d try.”

She waited a couple more strokes, then asked, “Have you ever fucked anyone up the ass?”

His face flushed a little and he nodded. “Yes.”

Katie grinned. “Not my little sister!”

He chuckled. “No, not Kristi.”

She sighed as he pushed in a little harder. She loved the way he was going slow, but she was ready for something harder. She pushed back against him a little harder the next time and he responded by picking up the pace a little.

“I love…getting…fucked in…the ass!” Katie gasped between thrusts. Steve was just about to ask her that very question and before he could ask the next obvious question, she asked first. “Will…you…fuck…my ass?”

He pushed himself up, bracing himself on his arms as he slammed into her hot, wet hole. “Y…yeah!” he gasped.

She stopped moving and pulled him down to kiss him. His cock was all the way in her pussy and they kissed hungrily before she broke it off. “I have some lube in my suitcase…and some condoms, if you want one.”

He nodded. “Ok, sure.” Reluctantly, he withdrew after a few more strokes and rolled off of her. She got up and padded across the room to the closet and took out a small carry-on bag. Setting it on the dresser, she went through it for a moment and took out a tube of lube and a condom. She turned and walked back to the bed, then sat down next to him. His hard cock was pointing straight up and she gave it a quick suck along with a little kiss before slipping the condom over it. Then she applied a generous amount of the gel to his condom-covered cock before smearing some on and inside her anus.

She climbed onto him, straddling his body and looking down into his face. “I like to do it in this position if you don’t mind. That way I can control if it gets too hard.” He nodded without speaking as she leaned over to kiss him. She sat back up and he could feel the heat from her pussy on his stomach before she rose up and placed the tip of his cock against her tiny back door. “Ready?” she asked.

“Yeah.”

She began to wriggle a bit, working the tip of his dick into her ass. Compared to her pussy, she felt incredibly tight and he tried to concentrate on not blowing his load too soon. With a little gasp, he felt her ass expand and the head of his cock slip inside. She removed her hand from his shaft now that he was started and placed both hands on his chest to steady herself. Slowly, she pushed down a bit, then pulled back up before pushing down again. Even if she hadn’t told him so, it was obvious that not only wasn’t this her first time doing anal, but it appeared she was actually quite experienced at it.

Slowly, she finally took his entire length into her hot bowels, then opened her eyes and smiled down at him. “Fuck, I love having a big cock in my ass!” She closed her eyes and began to move, at first very slowly, then a little faster as she became used to him. He watched her face; her tits; her entire body as she humped him. Her ass was so hot and so tight he felt like he was going to explode at any time. But something was preventing him from going over that final hurdle. Was it that her sphincter was squeezing him so tight it was working like a cock ring to curtail his orgasm? Whatever it was, he was truly loving the sensation of almost cumming without letting go. He wondered how long she was going to keep it up. Could she cum from this? He watched as she brought her fingers to her clit and began to diddle herself. Her flushed face and chest told him she was certainly very aroused and he was now certain she was going to cum. He hoped he could hold out long enough to bring her to that point.

Katie was on cloud nine. Steve’s cock was pounding her tight little ass and when she began to finger herself, she knew she was about to experience a very intense orgasm. She threw her head back, her hair trailing well down her back. “Ohhh…” she moaned as the orgasm built stronger and stronger. She began to really slam herself down on him, driving his hard cock deep into her ass.

When she reached the breaking point, she opened her eyes and looked down at him. His face was also flushed red and she could tell he was forcing himself not to cum, but it was a battle he was about to lose. Her fingers moved rapidly across her clit and her movements became jerky a moment before she felt her pussy contract and gush a fresh batch of her juices all over her hand and Steve’s stomach. She groaned, this time unable to maintain her regular quiet demeanor while cumming, as the powerful orgasm gripped her body and took over her senses. Through the haze, she heard Steve cry out and felt the condom swell inside her as he filled it with his hot seed. She lamented briefly that she couldn’t feel his cum filling her ass but another orgasmic wave hit her and she was off into its dreamlike state of mind again.

When Steve finally came, it felt like he was cumming through a very tiny straw, his jism slowly forced from his balls. Her ass was clamping down so tight it almost hurt, but he loved the look of pleasure on Katie’s face enough that he didn’t care. It felt like it took forever for him to finish, but the feeling was amazing. When Katie came again, he was still fully hard and so turned on he half expected to have another one as well. But alas, that didn’t happen and she eventually collapsed onto him, his cock still wedged deep in her ass.

“W…wow!” she panted, her breath hot in his ear. “That was really, really good!”

He stroked her hair, once again damp but this time with perspiration. “Yeah.”

They lay there for several minutes until Katie looked over at the clock. “Damn, after four. Mom will be home soon, and Kristi, too.” She shifted a bit and his now deflated cock slipped from her ass, leaving most of the condom trapped inside her.

“Oops,” he said, noticing the missing condom. “Sorry.”

She shook her head and reached back to grab it, then slowly tugged it free. “Happens all the time,” she said, “No biggie.” She went into the bathroom and he heard her flush it, then heard water running before she came back. She was carrying their clothes but was still naked.

“I really wish I could stay in town longer,” she told him as he sat up and began to get dressed. “I think we’re great together, don’t you?”

He pulled on his shorts and looked over at her. “Sure, it’s been great…”

“But you have a girlfriend. I know,” she finished for him. She sighed and stood up, leaning in for a kiss. “She’s a lucky girl, Steve.” She went over to her bag, pulled out a pen and a small notepad and jotted something down on it. She came back over as he was buttoning up his shirt.

“Here’s my cell phone number and email. I’m gonna be here for another week. Give me a call and we can get together again before I leave, ok?” She chuckled and shook her head. “Who’d’ve thought I’d fall for my little sister’s ex.” Steve accepted the note and was about to tell her it may not be appropriate to call as long as he had a girlfriend, then stopped. Did she say fall for him? He shot her a quizzical look and she nodded, stroking his arm. “Yeah, what can I say. You just make me feel all warm and fuzzy inside.” She leaned in and gave his groin a quick rub and whispered, “And nobody’s ever made me cum like you do!”

He smiled at that, feeling his ego grow a little. “Really?”

She patted him softly on the chest of his dusty work shirt. “Uh-huh. You’re definitely a keeper, babe. And I’m gonna warn you now - if you still have a girlfriend the next time I’m home, I’m gonna do all I can to steal you away from her!” She took the note from him and stuffed it into his pocket. “Don’t lose this, ok?”

He nodded dumbly, looking into her warm brown eyes. Was she being serious? She was in college and he was still in high school! Trying to keep his voice even, he said, “I promise, Katie. I’ll call.”

She smiled and kissed him, pressing her naked body against his. “You better. ‘Cause when I masturbate, you’re gonna be the guy I’m thinking of!” She slipped her hand into his. “Come on, you better go before anyone sees us together. We don’t want to get you in shit with the girlfriend.”

She led him out into the kitchen without putting any clothes on and stood there watching as he tied up his work boots. He stood up and she rushed into his arms, kissing him tenderly. “Goodbye, Steve. See you soon, I hope.”

He smiled and nodded. “I can’t wait.” He started to go, but she grabbed him again and pulled him to her naked body, kissing his hungrily. When she finally pulled away, they were both a little breathless. “Bye, Katie.”

He opened the door and stepped out, looking back at her through the screen door. She blew him a kiss before he got on his bike, waved, and rode off wondering what he’d gotten himself into.

 

 

 

Chapter 95

The next couple of days were spent working on the cabin. Steve wasn’t working so they’d taken him to the build site, which he proclaimed an excellent choice. As per the rule, they’d all stripped off their clothes and Angie was strongly pushing for an all out orgy. But Steve reminded her that they needed to get to work on the cabin as soon as possible. They’d have much less time to do it once school started. Everyone agreed, although Michelle suggested that they still needed time for play too. Everyone laughed and Steve acquiesced, but said that they needed to at least do some work first.

Angie grinned and dropped to her knees before him. “I know one job I don’t mind doing!” she exclaimed before inserting his dick into her mouth. Everyone laughed, but Michelle and Kristi were soon also on their knees pleasuring Artie and Jake respectively.

After she swallowed his load, Steve pulled Angie to her feet and kissed her. “Ok, thank you babe. But we need to get to work now.”

She pouted and turned to watch as Michelle and Kristi finished up and wiped their mouths. “All right, all right.” They all made their way through the trees towards Jake’s grandmother’s farm, stopping at the edge of the woods to get dressed.

Angie pulled on her jeans and t-shirt and waited while the others dressed. “So, what are us girls going to do while you men do the real work?” she asked, winking to Michelle and Kristi.

Jake shouldered his backpack. “You can do light chores…” he grinned, “…and take care of any needs we may have!”

Kristi smacked him playfully on the arm. “What about our needs? You guys all just got blow jobs but we got nothing!”

“Yeah,” Michelle piped up.

Jake rolled his eyes and looked over at Steve. “How are we going to get any work done with these three horny chicks around?”

Steve chuckled. “They are a serious distraction.” He hoisted his backpack. “Come on. I’d like to get at least one of the sheds torn down and loaded onto the wagon today.”

They started off toward the farmhouse and waited while Jake went in to get the key to the barn where the tractor and wagon were kept. He emerged a few minutes later with his grandmother standing in the doorway. “You kids be careful, now,” she warned, “I don’t want anyone to get hurt!” They all replied that they’d be careful and as Jake and Kristi went to the barn to get the tractor, the rest of them walked over to the larger of the two sheds and started the dismantling process.

A couple of hours later, only the frame remained. Most of the useful boards were stacked onto the wagon and the girls were hard at work pulling rusty nails from the last few on the ground.

Jake used the bucket of the tractor to pull down the frame and they began pulling it apart and loading it onto the wagon as well. By noon, the first shed was completely torn down and they moved over to the other one.

“We’re making good time,” Artie exclaimed. “Why don’t we break for lunch?”

Everyone mumbled in agreement. It was another fairly hot day and they all needed a rest. All the guys had stripped off their shirts shortly after starting and the girls were becoming more and more turned on at the sight of their bare, sweaty chests and shoulders. Angie brought Steve a sandwich and soda from the small lunch cooler and sat down next to him.

“You’re making me crazy looking like that, you know,” she teased, licking her lips.

He laughed as he took a bite of the sandwich. “Is that all you think about?”

She knelt on her knees behind him in the tall grass and began to rub his shoulders. “It’s hard not to watching all you guys working shirtless and getting all sweaty. It’s quite a turn-on.” She looked around at Kristi and Michelle. “Am I right girls?” Both girls nodded in agreement.

Jake looked across the field to where the house was. “You know, the grass is tall enough here that if we were to lie down…”

Angie pulled off her t-shirt before he had a chance to finish the sentence. She’d had the exact same thought and was waiting until Steve finished his lunch. He tits bounced out and she leaned in, rubbing them against his bare back. Despite his vow to put work before pleasure, her seductive movements were definitely causing a stir.

“Yeah,” Michelle chimed in as she watched Angie. “We have time for a quickie, don’t we?” She reached over and began to fondle Artie’s groin.

Steve pulled Angie’s head down and kissed her. “I think we can spare a few minutes, babe.”

She grinned and lay back, unfastening her jeans and wriggling out of them. Kristi and Michelle were doing the same thing and within a minute all three girls were lying naked in the tall grass. Angie looked around as the guys stripped down.

“Wanna play musical pussies?”

Everyone turned to her, puzzled looks on their face. “Musical pussies?” Kristi asked.

Angie giggled. “Well, we don’t have any music, but why not have them fuck us for a while, then switch?”

Everyone stared at her for a moment, then Michelle grinned. “I like it!” She looked over at Kristi, who seemed a little apprehensive at the thought of trying to take Artie’s big cock again. But then she smiled and nodded.

“Sure, let’s do it!”

Angie looked to the guys, now all naked with their hard cocks on display. “Ok, guys, pick a girl!”

Steve looked at Jake, then Artie, who shrugged and moved over to where Angie lay. Jake went over and knelt between Michelle’s long legs and they began to fuck without pausing long enough to kiss. He heard Angie moan and knew Artie hadn’t wasted any time either. He went over to Kristi, who lay there looking up expectantly. He smiled and moved into position and as his cock slid into her hot pussy, he remembered thinking that her sister was the last girl he’d fucked. Looking down into her face, he suddenly realized all the physical similarities between her and her Katie. They had the same eyes and now that he was on more intimate terms with both of them, he was amazed at how much they looked alike.

She moaned softly and placed her arms around him as he sunk into her again and again. Jake had become a better lover since they’d started having sex, but Steve was still her favorite. He seemed to know just how hard to do it, where to touch her, and his cock was just the right size. She murmured contentedly as she pushed her hips upward to meet his. Why hadn’t she done this earlier, before Angie and all this wild sex? He could’ve been hers - all hers. But she was a different person then, not so sexually liberated. Hell, she’d believed all the hype that had been drilled into her head since she was a little girl about how sex was bad, dirty, and only for married people. She couldn’t believe she’d been so naïve.

“Switch!”

Angie’s voice startled her from her reverie and as Steve leaned in to kiss her, she accepted it with a smile. He grinned and got up, his cock slowly slipping from her wet hole. Then Artie crawled over.

“Hi. Want to try this again?” She nodded and reached out for him. He moved between her legs and positioned his thick cock over her aroused pussy. “I’ll go easy. Just tell me if you want me to stop, ok?” She smiled and pulled his head to her shoulder as she felt his wide head spread her pussy open and slip in. She grunted and he paused, but she pushed upward to tell him to keep going. She was determined to take at least part of him this time and let him fuck her until he was satisfied. As he pushed deeper, she felt some pain, but it felt really good too.

“Oh yes…” she murmured, wanting to let him know she was enjoying it too.

Meanwhile, Angie was doing Jake, which was a bit of a let-down after having Artie’s huge dick inside her, but she was loving this too. Any time she had a cock in her pussy it was a good thing so she wasn’t being picky. “Mmm…fuck me, Jake,” she whispered, arching her back as he thrust into her. He began to hammer even faster and she wrapped her legs around him, pulling him in. She wanted Steve to fuck her too, but she could feel an orgasm starting and she didn’t want Jake to stop. Would Steve still want her if he came inside her first? She hoped Jake wouldn’t, but she needed to cum so she kept encouraging him to keep up the fast pace.

Finally, the pressure built and she came hard, wrapping her legs around him and pulling him all the way into her clenching vagina. She didn’t feel him cum and once her orgasm eased, she relaxed her legs and allowed him to pull out. They kissed and she met his eyes afterward. “Thank you, Jake. That was wonderful!” He smiled at her and kissed her on the nose, then withdrew as she called out, “Switch” again.

Michelle and Steve were going at it full tilt when they heard Angie call out to switch. As Steve slowed she wrapped her legs around him. “No…not yet…please…I’m so close!” He smiled down at the pretty brunette and nodded, then began to hammer away at her harder. She closed her eyes and gripped him tightly, feeling the orgasm building to its imminent release. She bit her lip to stifle her cry as she came, her body tensing under him and shuddering with each wave. Finally, she released him and looked into his face, her eyes holding a look of contentment. “Wow…thank you!”

He laughed and slowly extricated himself from her sopping pussy. “My pleasure, my dear,” he replied.

“Hey, you two! I said switch!” they heard Angie say.

Steve kissed her one last time, then moved off. Artie took his place and she welcomed his big, thick cock as it pushed into her still tingling pussy. She felt like she was going to cum again almost right away and relished the feel of him completely filling her. “Oh, god yes!” she murmured, grinding against him as his thick cock slid into her dripping cunt. “You feel so good!” she whispered into his ear as they began a slow, sensual fuck. She arched her back and gripped him tightly, forcing her hips off the ground and crying out against his shoulder as her orgasm flooded her body with waves of pleasure. She faintly heard him moan and felt a warm surge inside her pussy as he came, filling her with his hot, wet seed. He remained there for a long moment, his body covering hers as their skin began to cool. She held him tight and nuzzled his neck as he began to slowly deflate inside her.

“Wow,” she whispered, feeling a trickle of his cum seeping from her hole. “You always make me cum so hard!” She felt him shift and his hot breath was suddenly in her ear.

“You have the same effect on me!” he breathed.

As he spoke, he moved up and his still thick cock slipped from her slippery pussy. A warm surge of cum dribbled down over her ass and to the towel under her. He kissed her and moved off, laying down next to her. They lay there listening as the others finished up, their hushed moans and whimpers giving way to louder moans and finally cries as they all consummated the impromtu orgy with their own orgasms.

Angie’s body tensed as Steve drove into her and she felt him erupt, setting off her own orgasm. She locked her legs around him and held him deep inside her until she finished, then slowly released him. Their eyes met as he began to withdraw and she smiled up at him, her mouth twisting into a grimace as he pulled out of her dripping cunt. “Aw, I hate it when you do that!” she teased as he lay down next to her to catch his breath.

He chuckled and pulled her to him. “Sorry, babe.”

They all lay there for a few minutes, then Steve called out, “Ok…break’s over! Back to work!” Everyone laughed and began to get dressed. As the girls put away the lunch leftovers and towel, the guys moved the tractor and wagon to the other shed. Artie eyed the shed, then the over half loaded wagon.

“Maybe we should get this load to the site before we get started on this one,” he said.

Steve and Jake examined the load and tried to calculate how much the other shed would add to the pile. Jake wandered into the shed, looked around, and came back. “He’s right. There’s more here than we can fit on the wagon.”

The decision was made and everyone piled onto the back of the wagon while Jake drove through the field and into the woods. As soon as they were in the shelter of the trees, Angie peeled off her top and began to unfasten her shorts. Michelle soon followed suit and Kristi a moment later. Steve and Artie sat on the boards and watched the girls strip off their clothes, with Jake looking back over his shoulder as much as he was watching where he was driving. Angie was the first one undressed and soon realized the folly of following the naked rule in this situation. The wagon itself was made of rough lumber and with the other wood piled on it, there was really nowhere to sit without risking picking up a few splinters. Steve and Artie exchanged a grin and Angie stuck out her tongue, placing her clothes so she could sit on them.

“Rules are rule, guys,” she said as she sat down, her tits quivering as the wagon bounced over the rough trail. “Right girls?” Michelle and Kristi took a seat on their clothes as well and nodded, folding their arms over their own bouncing breasts.

“Yeah, c’mon…get ‘em off!” Michelle said, plucking at Artie’s shorts.

After some half-hearted resistance, Steve and Artie stripped down and Jake did a moment later. After about ten minutes of bumping along the trail, they arrived as close as they could get the wagon to the cabin site and spent the next couple of hours carrying all the lumber down to the clearing. Afterward, they all lay on the grass drinking water and talking about how to build the cabin. The fact that everyone was naked was almost second nature at this point and after their little orgy, no one even broached the subject of another round.

They chatted for a while as they rested, then gathered up their clothing and made their way back to the wagon. With only a short stop to get dressed, they drove back to the farm and biked back to town, the hard work in the hot sun leaving everyone a little worn out and quiet. One by one, they all splintered off to their respective homes, agreeing to get together in the morning to tackle the other shed.

Family Friend - Part 26

bjcortland on Teen Stories

 

Chapter 92

Angie was packing her little backpack for the trip to the spot Kristi and Jake had found for the cabin. Michelle called her a couple of hours earlier and told her they were all going out to check it out, with the exception of Steve, who was still at work, and her mind immediately switched to orgy mode and an idea she’d been thinking about since her and Steve’s little rape role play the night before.

Tossing her backpack over her shoulder, she raced up the stairs and told her mother she was going to the creek, then jumped on her bike and rode over to the school to meet the others. As she rolled toward the bleachers, she saw Michelle and Kristi sitting there but Artie and Jake still hadn’t arrived. Perfect.

Read More
She could run her idea past the girls before letting the guys in on it.

“Hey there,” Michelle said as she pulled up and dropped her bike.

Kristi also greeted her with a warm smile and a friendly, “Hi”.

“Hey,” she replied, taking a seat next to Kristi. “How’s everyone this morning?”

“Great,” Michelle said, looking at her closely. “Did I notice a slight limp in your step this morning?” she teased with a wink to Kristi.

Angie laughed. “Oh my god! Wait until I tell you what we did!” Hurriedly, she told them about the rape fantasy she lived out with Steve and the others listened with interest. “…and I came soo hard!” she exclaimed when she finished. “Fuck, it was hot!”

“Wow,” Michelle said, “ Sounds like a lot of fun!” She remembered how good it had been when Steve and Angie treated her rough at the creek and thought it did indeed sound hot to pretend to be raped.

Kristi looked thoughtful. “Didn’t it bother you to let him do that? I mean, tying you up and hitting you?”

“He didn’t actually hit me,” Angie explained, “He just gave me a really good spanking when he caught me trying to escape…and I loved it! It was so fucking cool! You guys should try it!”

Michelle nodded. “Sounds fun, all right. I’ll ask Artie, but I don’t think he’d go for it. He’s not the violent type.”

“Steve was a little hesitant at first,” Angie said, “But once we got going, he really got into it and I think he had as much fun as I did!”

Kristi listened to this and remembered some times when things had gotten a little rough, and even though she was only a spectator to that type of sex, she was intrigued by it. Maybe Angie was onto something here.

“I have an idea,” Angie said, looking at both of them. “Why don’t we do something like that today? All five of us. We could, I dunno, pretend to be lost in the woods and these guys find us and have their way with us. What d’ya think?”

Michelle and Kristi exchanged a look and Michelle could see some apprehension in Kristi’s eyes. “Uh, maybe we should hold off on that for today.” Angie looked at them with questioning eyes. Hadn’t she properly explained how fucking hot it was? Michelle continued, looking back to Kristi. “Kristi’s never been there when Artie was around. I don’t think a game like that would be the proper way to start off.”

Angie looked over and saw the look of relief on Kristi’s face that Michelle had been the one to bring it up and she didn’t have to sound like a whiney kid. Angie’s face immediately softened.

“Oh my god, I completely forgot! You’re right, babe. Sorry, Kristi.”

Kristi gave her a smile. “It’s ok, Angie, but thanks for understanding. As fun as that sounds, I’d rather wait and see how things go with him before I try something like that.”

Michelle nudged her and grinned. “Especially the way he’s hung! That alone takes a little getting used to!”

Angie and Michelle laughed and Kristi grinned. She remembered seeing Artie’s huge cock that day at the creek when she’d watched them from the bushes. She’d been some distance away but was still astonished at his size.

 

They all were silent for a few seconds, then Michelle looked up suddenly. “Oh, hey! Kristi, tell Ang about what you and Jake did yesterday!” She glanced over at Angie. “You’re gonna love this!”

Kristi’s face broke out into an embarrassed grin and she shuffled her feet on the dusty ground. “We, uh…we were naked the whole time we were in the woods,” she said, looking down as if embarrassed to be telling them.

Angie looked over at Michelle, the surprise evident in her eyes. Michelle grinned and nodded. “Holy shit, Kristi! That’s fucking awesome!”

Kristi felt her face get hotter but looked up, briefly meeting Angie’s eyes.

“Tell her what you guys talked about,” Michelle urged.

Kristi looked up, some of her confidence returning at Angie’s enthusiastic response to an idea she’d come up with. “Jake suggested that we should all always go naked up there,” she said.

Angie looked from her to Michelle and began to giggle. “Oh my god! That’s genius! I love it!”

Kristi looked up, an uncertain look on her face. “You do?”

“Hell yes!”

Michelle nodded in agreement. “Me too. I told you she’d love it, babe.”

“Jake was…well, it was his idea for us to do it yesterday, but he said if it was just the guys up there working it’d be kinda gay for them all to be naked.”

Angie laughed. “They’re so homophobic! But whatever, when we aren’t around I guess it really shouldn’t matter. But I like it…I like it a lot!”

They heard the sounds of approaching bicycles and looked over to see Artie and Jake coming across the football field toward them. As the girls put their backpacks on and began to pick up their bikes, Angie whispered, “Let’s definitely do the no clothing thing, ok? We can think about my idea for another time.” Michelle and Kristi exchanged a quick look, then they both nodded, grinning. “Cool! This is gonna be so fun!”

The guys rolled up and they all greeted one another. Michelle gave Artie a wet kiss and Kristi gave Jake a hug and a quick peck on the lips before they all got on their bikes and began the ride to the woods. Angie was already becoming excited at being naked in the woods all afternoon…and hopefully getting another ride on Artie’s big cock!

 

Chapter 93

 

Steve tossed the last two two-by-fours into the back of the dusty pickup and banged on the tailgate to let the driver know he was done loading him. As the truck pulled away, he looked at his watch. Almost twelve-thirty. He wondered if he’d have time to run home for a quick shower before meeting Katie after work.

It was almost one when he heard a honk outside the warehouse and got up to go fill what he hoped was a quick order so he could get out of there on time. He wasn’t all that concerned about Angie wondering where he went after work because she’d told him she and the others were going out to the site of the cabin to look it over. He didn’t feel right about hiding his ‘affair’ with Katie from her, but not because of the usual reasons. He only did it because he knew she’d want to bring her into their group and she was something he wanted to keep separate from that, sort of a normal sexual relationship. He knew from experience there’d be more going on than just looking the area over so he figured he’d have most of the afternoon to spend with her.

When he stepped out into the bright sunshine, he was surprised to see Katie leaning against the fender of her mother’s car, wearing a very short mini and a baby tee that left most of her stomach bared. Damn, she looked hot!

“Katie! Hi! What are you doing here?”

She grinned and took a step toward him. “I just thought I’d drop by and see if you needed a lift.”

Steve heard voices and turned in time to see Bill and Jack watching from just inside the warehouse door. He couldn’t really blame them; Katie looked smokin’ hot and if he were them, he’d be doing the exact same thing. He scratched his head and looked at the Subaru Outback she was driving. “Well, I have my bike with me.”

“No problem,” she said, walking around to the back. He couldn’t stop his eyes from moving down to her long legs stretching from under her short skirt. “Lots of room for it if I fold the back seat down.” She opened the tailgate and crawled in, and he stared in surprise at her bare ass peeking out from under her skirt. She had nothing on under the very short mini! She looked back over her shoulder and caught him checking her out. “Like what you see, handsome?” She wriggled her ass suggestively and gave him a sexy wink. He took a good look, catching a glimpse of her pink pussy between those sexy thighs, then grinned and stood back, taking her hand to help her out. She stood up and smiled, gesturing into the back of the small station wagon. “See, lots of room!”

He looked down at his dirty clothes. “I need a shower, too,” he said.

She grinned. “Well guess what? We have one at our place!” She leaned in closer. “I could use one too. Maybe we could share!”

He laughed and nodded. “Ok, you talked me into it!” He checked his watch and saw it was a few minutes past one. “Just let me go punch out and get my bike, ok?”

She kissed him quickly and sat down on the tailgate, watching him with a wild look of sexual desire. He turned and ran toward the warehouse and grimaced as he saw Bill and Jack standing in the door with their arms folded and big shit-eating grins on their faces.

“Well, well, Jack…it seems ol’ Cassanova here has added another one to his stable of women!”

Steve tried to ignore their good-natured jests and went over to the time clock to punch out.

“Yep,” Bill replied, “And this one seems to be all woman. She don’t look like no high school girl! Think you can handle her all by yerself, young fella?” Steve grabbed his bike and pushed it toward the door where they stood. “‘Cause, ya know, I’d be happy to help out if ya need me to!”

Jack nodded, grinning. “Yeah, you seem a little wet behind the ears for someone like her!”

Steve just kept his head down. “You guys are just jealous!” he said as he pushed past them.

“Damn right we are!” Bill exclaimed. “Now you be careful! We don’t want you to hurt yerself!”

Steve shook his head and hoped Katie didn’t hear any of that. When he got to her car, she stood up and grinned at him. “It seems your friends don’t think you can satisfy me!” He couldn’t think of any reply so he just grinned foolishly and began to put his bike into the back. She leaned in and he felt her hand grope his ass as he pushed it in. “Want me to give them a little show? Just tease them a little?”

Before he could respond, she disappeared and he stood up, looking around the side of the car. She walked up to the front of the car and bent over as if examining something on the front bumper. Her ass was pointed directly at the open door where Bill and Jack stood and he laughed to himself, imagining the looks on their faces. She stood up and turned around, then stretched, raising her arms over her head and forcing her short tee to ride up even higher so that the bottoms of her tits were almost exposed, not to mention that her skirt rose enough that he was certain they got a glimpse of her shaved beaver! Her shirt stretched tight across her tits and Steve could clearly see her hard nipples leaving little bumps in the fabric. He looked over at Bill and Jack and could read the shocked expressions on their faces. While not as close as he was, they were less that fifty feet away and still had a pretty good view. He couldn’t help chuckling out loud. Katie was so cool!

She heard him close the hatch and came around to the driver’s door, winking at him. “That’ll give ‘em some spank bait for a while!” she exclaimed as she opened the door and got in. Steve waved at his two buddies and got in the passenger seat, unable to wipe the grin off his face.

“Katie, you are amazing!”

She laughed and ran her hand up his thigh and over his growing cock. “Hmm…seems they’re not the only ones who liked it!” He felt his face heat and she gave his cock a gentle squeeze. “Why don’t we make a little pit stop before we go to my place?”

He looked over at her. “A pit stop? Where?”

She gave him a mischievous smile. “You’ll see!”

He tried to get more out of her but she refused to say where they were going so he just sat back and allowed her to fondle his increasingly harder cock over his work pants as he began to tease her pussy under the short skirt. He was pretty sure he was going to like whatever she had in mind anyway.

They drove down a few streets in the light industrial section of town and eventually ended up in a newer part of the area where many of the lots were still vacant. She turned down a street with no buildings on it and he saw that it dead-ended after a few hundred yards at a gravel turn around. She drove to the end and parked so that the left side of the car was facing the road they’d just driven down. She turned off the engine and looked over at him.

“I thought maybe we could get started here,” she said, winking at him.

He glanced over the seat at his bike that filled the entire back of the vehicle. They’d be a little exposed here but if that’s what she wanted, he was up for it. “Uh, ok, sure. Just let me take out my bike and we can…”

She cut him off, shaking her head. “No, not back there.” She grinned and gestured outside. “Out there.”

He stared out the windshield, his mouth open in surprise. Yes, they were on an empty dead end street, but it was the middle of the day and there were cars passing by on the street they’d just turned off of, only short distance away! He looked over at her. “Are you serious?!”

She nodded, biting her lip seductively. “Oh, yes! Haven’t you ever had sex in public before? It’s such a turn-on!” She opened her door. “Come on, you’ll love it!”

He watched her get out and walk around to the front of the vehicle. She smiled at him and beckoned with one hand while the other pushed her top up to expose her tits. “Come on, sexy…right here…let’s go!”

He reached for the door handle, still not believing what she wanted him to do. As he opened his door, she moved around to the relative privacy of the right side of the car and leaned over the hood, allowing her short skirt to ride up enough to expose her ass. He stepped out, his eyes never leaving her sexy pose. Slowly, she turned to him and lifted her skirt to show him her pussy, already glistening with moisture. He could only stare as she pushed up her short tee with her other hand to show him her fantastic tits. She could see he was becoming excited and licked her lips.

“Come on, get undressed and fuck me!”

He glanced down the street, then turned back to her in time to see her lean over the fender again, wriggling her ass invitingly. He gulped at the sight of her nearly naked body and began to tug at the button of his own pants. She watched him, her fingers teasing her nipples as he unfastened his pants and pushed them and his boxers both down at once. She licked her lips at the sight of his full hardon, never once looking up the street to see if anyone was watching them.

He started to pull off his work boots so he could take his pants completely off, but she stopped him. “Never mind that, just get over here and fuck me now!” She turned and bent over the hood, spreading her legs and looking back at him with lust-filled eyes. “Come on, Steve, fuck me hard!”

Never one to argue with a horny woman, he made his way over as fast as he could with his pants around his ankles and stepped up behind her, his hard cock bobbing in front of him. He pushed her little skirt up and aimed his cock at her swollen pink hole, then thrust all the way in in one long stroke. She gasped and pushed back against him, wriggling her body.

“Oh fuck, yes!” she cried. He pulled out and drove back in and she yelled out more words of encouragement. As he began to move in and out of her steamy cunt, he looked over her head at the cars passing by on the other road. Katie was moaning and crying out every time he bottomed out and he discovered that she was right - sex in public was indeed very much a turn-on! He continued to pound at her, slamming harder and harder into her until he felt his balls start to contract.

“Oh fuck!” he gasped, slowing down.

“What’s wrong? Don’t stop!” she cried, looking back at him.

He pushed all the way in and paused there. “I nearly…lost it!’ he panted.

She pouted. “You don’t want to cum inside me?”

He shook his head. “No, no…it isn’t that.” He paused to catch his breath. “You didn’t cum yet.”

She laughed and he gasped as her body shook and her pussy rippled along his cock. “That doesn’t matter,” she said, “I want you to get off here.” She winked. “You can get me later!” She wriggled her ass. “Now come on, baby, fuck me hard and shoot that hot load deep inside me!”

He began to move again. “All right…if that’s…what you…want!” She began to moan as his thrusts came faster and harder. The short pause had allowed him to quell the urgent need to cum and he found he was able to pound at her for several more minutes before he felt the need arise once again. By then, she was gasping and moaning along with him and he had the feeling she was going to cum too. He increased his speed even more, their bodies slamming together so hard the car was rocking on its shocks. Katie’s hands pushed along the surface of the hood, squeaking against the smooth metal as she fought to get a grip. Finally, she let out a long wail and Steve felt her pussy contract a second before he let loose and groaned as his cum shot into her tight cunt, her spasming pussy milking his cock. He held himself all the way in, enjoying the sensations her clenching vagina was inflicting on his very sensitive cock.

She finally eased up and she felt her body relax, only twitching occasionally as she came down from her orgasm. He felt a flood of their combined fluids leak out and drip to the dusty gravel between her legs.

“W…wow!” she gasped, pushing herself up so that she was leaning against him. He brought his hands up to cup her breasts, squeezing them gently as her trembling body cooled in his arms. He felt his cock start to soften in her oozing pussy and she sighed as it finally slipped out, unleashing a flood of cum that ran down her inner thighs and dripped down to add to the growing puddle on the ground.

Steve was enjoying the feel of their post orgasmic hug and it wasn’t until he heard the whoosh of cars passing by on the street that he realized Katie’s breasts were fully exposed to anyone who happened to look down the street they were on. Well, exposed except for his hands, but the point was anyone who looked down would know exactly what they were doing. He released her firm tits and allowed her tee to drop back into place.

“Katie,” he murmured, kissing her shoulder.

“Hmm?” she breathed, rubbing herself against him.

“We’re uh, a little exposed here. Maybe we should get going before someone sees us.”

She lifted one of his hands from under her breast and kissed it. “So what? Let them see. I love this…being held by you afterward.” She sighed deeply. “I can’t believe how hard you make me cum!”

He felt a surge of pride to know he was able to please an older, more experienced woman but he wasn’t as much at ease out here in the open as she seemed to be. The creek was one thing, but this was completely different.

“Come on,” he said. “We better go. I really need a shower now!” He backed away and she turned to him, then embraced him and they kissed long and deep, tongues exploring and tasting.

“I wish I could take you back to LA with me,” she said, smiling. “I’m really gonna miss this!”

He laughed. “I don’t think I’d like LA,” he said. “I mean, it’d be cool being able to be with you, but it’s too big, too…”

“Weird?” she finished, grinning at him.

“I’m not really a big city kind of guy,” he said with a smile as he pulled up his pants.

She gave him one more quick kiss, then opened the passenger door and grabbed a handful of Kleenex from the console. She turned around and began to wipe the cum from her legs and dabbed at her still drooling pussy, then they got back in the car and headed toward her house. It was almost two and he wondered if Kristi and the others were still in the woods. He hoped so. Getting caught by one of his girlfriends fucking her older sister would not be cool.

 

Chapter 93

 

Jake led the rest of them to the old logging road he and Kristi had come out of after leaving the spot they’d chosen for the cabin. It was maybe another five minutes bike ride past the trail to the creek, so it was a good location as far as distance went. They all pushed their bikes into the woods and Jake pointed out the orange ties he’d left on the trees to mark the path.

They’d only gone a few steps from their bikes when Angie stopped them. “Hey, wait a minute!” Everyone turned to her and she glanced over at Kristi and then to Jake. “I thought you guys made a rule about coming here.”

Jake turned red and Kristi’s face flushed a little as well. Artie looked at her, puzzled. “Rule? What kind of rule?”

Angie looked at Kristi. “Why don’t you tell him?”

Artie looked over at Jake. “Do you know what she’s talking about?”

Jake sighed. “Yeah, kinda.” Artie looked at him expectantly, but Kristi was the one who spoke up.

“When Jake and I came here yesterday, we, uh…we took off our clothes as soon as we were in the woods. We thought it’d be cool if we always went nude here.”

Artie looked at Jake and he nodded. “Yeah, but I told her I didn’t want to do it if there were other guys here.”

Kristi corrected him. “Uh-uh, you said if it were only you guys here, and I said that was ok. But there are three girls here today!”

“Shit,” Jake breathed, looking away.

Angie took all of this in with an amused smile. It was fun to watch Jake squirm. “I think it sounds cool!” she said, and without a seconds’ hesitation, pulled her top off. Everyone stared at her for a few seconds, then Michelle grinned and took hers off as well. Artie and Jake stared at the two topless beauties, then all eyes went to Kristi. She smiled nervously, then reached down and lifted her blue halter top off to expose her own perky tits. All three girls turned to the guys.

“Your turn,” Kristi said, tucking her top into her backpack

Jake looked over at Artie. “Well, bud, looks like they got us.” He lifted his tee shirt off. Artie grinned. Unlike Jake, he’d been involved in group sex when Steve was there and being naked in the company of three beautiful girls more than made up for any homophobic feelings he may have. He quickly removed his shirt, then began to unfasten his jeans. Angie grinned and slid her shorts down, revealing her pale pink bikini style panties under them. Michelle quickly followed suit, pulling off her khaki hiking shorts and smiling as her aversion to underwear became apparent to all.

Kristi was also working her shorts down as Angie laughed when she saw Michelle wasn’t wearing panties. “Right on, Michelle!” Michelle’s smile turned into a wide grin as she worked her shorts over her cute little pink and white sneakers and stood up, her beautiful body fully exposed to all.

“I’m starting to find underwear a little uncomfortable,” she said as she watched Angie remove hers. Kristi had on a pair of white boy shorts and she quickly removed them, leaving all three girls completely naked. Artie had his jeans off and was tucking them into his backpack before Jake finally began to unfasten his shorts.

“Yeah, let’s go guys!” Michelle cried, whistling a cat-call as Artie pulled off his boxers to a gasp from Kristi and some lustful looks from Angie and Michelle. Michelle looked over at Kristi. “What d’ya think, babe? Think you can handle my guy?”

Kristi turned her head away and felt her face heating up. A few weeks ago, the idea of having sex with Artie was as foreign as, well, as having sex with another girl. But she couldn’t deny her feelings as she looked back at his long, thick cock, which seemed even larger than it had that day at the creek when she watched him plowing into Michelle.

Jake tugged off his shorts and couldn’t resist a peek at Artie’s package. He couldn’t believe that little fucking geek had a tool that big! He looked away quickly and pulled off his own underwear. While never uncomfortable with the size of his dick, compared to Artie he looked like a little kid and he suddenly began to feel a little self-conscious. Angie finished packing away her clothes and noticed his apparent unease. She noticed him stealing glances at Artie and immediately understood. She went over to him and gave him a hug, pressing her bare flesh against his and taking his semi-hard cock in her hand. Their eyes met and neither spoke, but Jake gave her a little smile and she gave his cock a couple of strokes before releasing it.

Michelle zipped up her backpack and slung it over one shoulder, looking around at the others. “Ok, everyone naked?” A quick scan answered her question. “Good, let’s go!”

Everyone started out along the trail Jake had marked, with him in the lead. Angie followed him, with Kristi behind her and Artie and Michelle at the back of the line. They were trying to hold hands as they pushed through the bushes but soon gave up and Artie was content to walk behind her and watch her sexy ass.

After a few minutes, Angie looked over her shoulder at Kristi. “Awesome idea, Kristi! This is fun!” Michelle called out her agreement and Artie added his approval as well. Jake mumbled something and continued to push forward.

Kristi just nodded to Angie. “Thanks, but it was really Jake’s idea.”

“Well, then I thank you both!” Michelle said with a laugh.

Kristi seemed uncomfortable with compliments, so they let it drop and walked along in silence for a few more minutes until they topped a low ridge and Jake stopped. Everyone moved up beside him and looked down to the little clearing below. He pointed to the grassy area.

“See that group of trees behind that patch of grass?” Everyone confirmed they did. “If we chop down a couple of small trees in the middle, we can build it in there. That way it’s not right out in the open.”

Angie spoke up. “And we can have a bit of grass to play on! Excellent!” Everyone chuckled and they began to move down the gentle slope to the clearing. They stepped across the trickle of water in the stream bed and Jake explained how it usually held more water, so they should have enough for their needs once the dry weather ended. They all dropped their backpacks on the grass and Jake took Artie over to show him the exact spot he thought they should build.

Michelle watched the two naked guys walk off as they laid out their towels on the grass and said, “Looks like they’re becoming a little more comfortable.”

Kristi nodded with a grin. “Yeah, but notice how they don’t get too close?”

Angie and Michelle giggled. “Yeah, but it’s a start!” Angie quipped. Not that she ever believed any of the guys would ever do anything with one another, but she was hoping for a little double-teaming, or maybe even triple-teaming at some point. Just the idea of a cock in each of her holes at the same time made her pussy leak.

She went over to Michelle and gave her a quick kiss, then took Kristi’s hand and kissed her as well. As Michelle and Kristi shared a more intimate kiss, Angie looked over at the guys, who were watching them and starting back over to where they stood. She could see Jake’s cock was nearly at full mast and Artie’s monster was definitely starting to fill out as well. She licked her lips and left the girls to their increasingly sexual kiss and met the guys a few feet away.

“Hey there,” she said in as sexy a voice as she could muster, her eyes moving from Jake to Artie, then down to their hard cocks. She licked her lips and looked back up at them. “Hmm…what do we have here?” She grabbed one in each hand and began to stroke them. Artie reached out and began to fondle one tit and a second later, Jake’s hand was kneading the other. She moaned softly and closed her eyes, enjoying their touch almost as much as having a hard cock in each hand.

After a few minutes, Angie gave each of them a quick kiss, then with a sultry smile, she squatted down in front of them, her hands never leaving their hard cocks. She looked up at them, licking her lips, then pressed her lips to the sensitive tip of Jake’s cock. She heard him gasp, then pushed forward until his cock filled her mouth. She began to bob her head back and forth on him while still stroking Artie’s thick cock. She continued with Jake for a few seconds, then pulled off and turned to Artie’s long, thick cock. Stretching her mouth wide, she began to kiss and suck him while stroking Jake. She felt her pussy getting wetter and wetter as she performed oral sex on both guys, switching back and forth every thirty seconds or so.

Michelle and Kristi were soon lying on the towels on soft grass, their arms and legs entangled as their make-out session intensified. Michelle shifted so that she was more or less on top and began to nibble and suck on Kristi’s hard nipples. She heard Kristi moan softly and felt her hand press against the back of her head, urging her to continue. She loved the feel of Michelle’s soft lips and warm tongue on her tits and almost forgot about Angie and the guys until she heard a moan and turned her head in time to see Angie kneeling before them with Jake’s cock in her mouth while giving Artie a hand job. Then she switched and Kristi watched in amazement as the sexy blonde began sucking on Artie’s huge cock. Two guys at once? Was there anything she wouldn’t try?

Michelle looked up from Kristi’s tits and noticed her attention was diverted elsewhere. She turned to see what she was watching and her eyes lit up when she saw what Angie was doing. She bit one of Kristi’s nipples a little harder and she let out a small yelp and looked down at her sexy girlfriend. Michelle grinned up at her. “Does that turn you on, babe?” she asked, tilting her head toward Angie.

Kristi nodded. “I can’t believe how big Artie is!” she half whispered.

Michelle grinned and moved up to kiss her. “Just wait until you feel him in that tight little pussy of yours!” she said before kissing her, pushing her tongue all the way into her mouth. Kristi responded to the hot kiss, sucking on her tongue and wrapping her arms around the sexy brunette’s naked body. She felt her soft breasts pressing against hers and could even feel the heat of Michelle’s aroused pussy on her pelvis. The idea of that huge cock inside her was at the same time exciting and terrifying. She’d seen him fuck Michelle before and knew it was possible, but she couldn’t picture it fitting in her own little cunt.

**************

Angie was loving having two guys at once and going down on them both was making her hornier and hornier with each passing second. She pulled her mouth from Jake’s cock and looked up at him. “I need your cock in my pussy,” she said, a hand stroking each of them. She looked over at Artie. “I want to suck your cock while Jake fucks me doggie style, then switch, ok?”

Artie grinned down at her and nodded, then looked over at Jake. Jake was looking a little uncertain, but finally looked down at the sexy blonde and nodded. Angie moved over to her towel, then grinned and dropped to all fours, motioning to Artie as Jake moved around behind her. “Lie down here, Artie.” Artie lay down, spreading his legs so her head was positioned over his throbbing hardon. She looked back over her shoulder as she felt Jake’s hands on her hips, then the soft tip of his erect cock touching her enflamed labia. She mewed and pushed back, letting him push easily into her dripping cunt. “Oooo…yes…” she gasped as he entered her, not stopping until his pelvis pressed against her ass. She could feel his heavy balls swing against her clit and ground back even harder. He began to move as she turned her attention back to the other cock in her face.

Artie watched Angie’s reaction as Jake pushed into her and began a slow fuck. When she turned back to him, the look on her face was so fucking sexy he almost blew his load right then and there. He imagined his hot cum plastering her face as Jake hammered her and had to close his eyes to fight the urge and regain some semblance of control. He wanted to hold out at least until his turn at her tight little pussy. He managed to quell the feeling somewhat and when her mouth engulfed his throbbing meat, he moaned his approval and leaned back on his elbows, watching as her body moved with Jake’s thrusts and her head bobbed up and down on his cock.

Angie was in heaven. She loved giving head and getting fucked. Doing both at once made her pussy tingle and she knew she’d be cumming hard very quickly. Jake’s cock was touching on her g-spot and the feel of Artie’s massive cock in her mouth made her little body tremble with excitement. She soon felt her orgasm nearing and pulled her mouth from Artie’s cock to say, “Oh, fuck, yes! Fuck me! I’m cumming! I’m oooohhh…”

Her body stiffened and she gripped Artie’s cock in her little hand, dropping her face down so that it rubbed along her cheek as Jake hammered her to a powerful orgasm. Her pussy clenched on his cock and she grunted as wave after wave coursed through her. When she finally could speak, she gasped, “Switch!” She released Artie’s cock and felt Jake pull from her spasming cunt. She pushed herself up so Artie could extricate himself and there was a flurry of naked bodies as the two guys exchanged positions.

Jake sat cross-legged on the grass before her, his hard cock glistening with her juices. As she was licking her lips in anticipation of tasting herself, she felt the thick tip of Artie’s massive head press against her still buzzing pussy. He applied pressure and she groaned loudly as she was stretched wide to accommodate his girth.

“Oh my god!” she cried, her hand wrapping around Jake’s hard, wet cock. She felt Artie’s hands grip her waist tighter and pull her back onto him, pushing him deep into her cunt. She was still coming down from her first orgasm and as she began to suck on Jake’s cock, Artie’s movements brought her to an almost immediate second orgasm. She cried out, Jake’s cock muffling her scream of pleasure, and pushed back until she felt like Artie was pressing against her cervix. She pulled Jake’s cock from her lips and cried out, “Ohhh… fuckkkk…!” her eyes clenched shut as the powerful climax swept through her.

Jake watched her face twist into an ecstatic grimace and felt his balls constrict. He knew he wasn’t going to be able to hold off any longer. “Shit! I’m gonna cum!” he gasped.

Through her orgasmic fog, Angie somehow heard Jake and her mind grasped what he was saying. She opened her eyes and began to pump him as she continued to cum on Artie’s thick cock. “Y…yes!” she grunted, lowering her mouth to his pulsing head.

When her mouth engulfed his cock, Jake couldn’t stop himself. He felt the cum surging from his balls and erupt into her mouth. “Ohh, fuck!” he groaned, his hands going to her head. He felt her swallowing his thick cream, shot after shot until he finished and leaned back, propping himself on his arms as she sucked the last of his load from him.

Artie heard all of this and saw the look on Jake’s face as he came into Angie’s mouth. While watching his friend get off didn’t appeal to him, the feel of Angie’s hot pussy gripping him was quickly bringing him to the edge. As Angie was licking the remaining jism from Jake’s cock, he leaned over and gasped, “I’m gonna cum!”

She gave Jake’s cock one last suck, then turned to him. “Cum in my face!” She moved forward and moaned as he slid out of her gaping cunt, then spun around, gesturing for him to stand up as she got to her knees. Out of the corner of her eye, she caught a glimpse of Kristi lying on her back with her mouth open in a silent scream as Michelle’s head bobbed between her spread legs. Then Artie’s wet cock was in her face and her attention went back to him. She licked all of her juices from his long shaft, then began to suck on the large purple head, her hands working his shaft and balls as she did. Artie began to moan louder and his hips moved involuntarily, pushing his cock further into her mouth. Finally, he stopped moving and she felt his balls contract a second before she received her second mouthful of hot cum. Artie’s hit the back of her throat almost forcefully and she almost choked trying to get it down. While some did trickle out and drip down her chin, she did manage to get most of it down and continued to lick and suck him until she was satisfied he was finished. She let him slip from her lips with a popping sound and looked up at him, grinning from ear to ear.

“Wow, that was fucking hot!” she exclaimed, sitting back on the grass and licking the dribbles from her face. Artie returned her grin as Jake reached up to fondle one of her breasts.

“You are such a slut!” he exclaimed with a grin as she turned to him. She laughed and playfully slapped his hand as she pinched her nipple.

“Fucking right I am!” she shot back, “And you fucking love it!” Jake chuckled and nodded and she leaned back against him, her attention shifting to Kristi and Michelle. They were lying wrapped in one another’s arms and kissing. Apparently Michelle had completed her mission between Kristi’s legs and they too were basking in the post-orgasmic afterglow.

Artie sat down next to them and watched the girls making out. Angie noticed that he and Jake seemed a little more comfortable being naked in such close proximity and smiled to herself. She didn’t expect anything to happen between any of the guys, but the fact that they seemed a little more at ease after double-teaming her gave some hope of further multiple cock sessions. She’d read about double penetrations and wondered if there was any chance she might get the opportunity to try it. Just the thought of all those cocks in her was making her horny again.

********

Michelle and Kristi watched as Angie and the guys got started, then Michelle began to move down over Kristi’s tight little body. Her mouth left kisses down her neck, then she nibbled on her earlobe for a few seconds before moving lower. She loved kissing her soft skin, so much more delicate than a guy, and when she reached the swell of her dainty breasts, she squeezed them as her mouth sought out her hard little nipples. She heard Kristi gasp when she began to suckle one, then the other. She nibbled softly on them, her tongue rolling across the tip and eliciting further murmurs of gratification from the cute little brunette.

Feeling her own excitement rising, Michelle moved lower, her tits brushing over the soft skin of Kristi’s stomach and thighs. She kissed her way down to her belly button and pushed her tongue into it as she hands urged her legs apart. Kristi didn’t resist and spread her legs wide, allowing her girlfriend to kiss lower. When her lips brushed across her mound, she felt her juices really starting to flow and brought her knees up, opening herself even wider and inviting Michelle in.

Michelle knew the art of seduction and wanted to tease Kristi just a little in order to enhance her pleasure. She left soft kisses on her bare mons, then moved over her puffy slit, allowing her warm breath to tease her wetness before moving to her inner thighs. Kristi let out a moan that was a combination of frustration and desire as Michelle’s lips moved up first one of her legs, then the other, stopping just short of her needy pussy.

“Oh, god, Michelle!” she cried, reaching down for her head. “Please!”

Michelle smiled and looked up at her friend. “Mmm…please what, baby?”

Kristi arched her back, thrusting her drooling pussy closer to Michelle’s mouth. “Please…” she repeated, her voice taking on a more pleading tone.

With a grin, Michelle lightly ran her tongue along Kristi’s engorged slit, only once. Kristi cried out, once again pushing her pelvis upward. “Oh, yes! More! Please!”

Michelle looked up, grinning. “You taste delicious,” she breathed, leaning down to kiss her mons again. “Do you want me to do it some more?”

Kristi’s response was a carnal cry of desire. “Yes! Oh god, yes!”

Michelle grinned and lowered her mouth to Kristi’s steamy cunt. She loved watching her squirm, but she’d teased her enough. Besides, the scent of her aroused pussy was almost more than she could bear and needed to push her tongue deep into her friend’s honey pot almost as much as Kristi needed her to. She locked her lips around her swollen labia and worked her tongue into her hot pussy, tasting her sweet juices as Kristi cried out and began to thrust her pussy against her mouth.

“Ohhh…Michelle…mmmm…” she moaned, her head rolling from side to side on the towel.

Urged on by her reaction, Michelle pushed in deeper, then began to lick all over her aroused pussy, moving up to suck on her clit while pushing two fingers deep inside her. Kristi’s moans soon became louder and more urgent as she moved closer and closer to her impending release. Michelle felt her own arousal growing as well and wondered if it were possible for her to have an orgasm just from eating out her friend’s delicious little pussy.

Suddenly Kristi’s body tensed and her back arched, raising her hips off the towel. Michelle could feel her pussy contracting and knew she was about to explode in orgasm. She tunneled deep into her hot pussy in anticipation of getting a good taste of her sweet cum.

She was rewarded only a few seconds later as Kristi’s gasps and grunts turned into a cry of orgasmic bliss. Her pussy gushed her juices into Michelle’s tongue as her orgasm released and sent her tight body into a series of writhing spasms that made it a challenge to keep her mouth on her delicious pussy. She somehow managed to, sucking and lapping until Kristi finally dropped back to the towel, her body twitching and shaking as Michelle’s tongue cleaned the remnants of her cum from her swollen lips.

“Oh my god!” Kristi gasped, her hands lifting Michelle’s head from her very sensitive pubic area. Michelle crawled up, leaving a trail of pussy juice kisses along her bare stomach and suckling lovingly on each hard nipple before taking Kristi’s mouth in an intense and deep kiss. Kristi held her tight, their tongues probing and bodies pressed together. She loved holding her lover after such an intense orgasm and Michelle was the one she loved being with the most. Their loving kiss lasted for what felt like a long time until they both sensed they were being watched and turned to see Angie, Jake, and Artie all sitting and watching them. Angie had a big grin on her face.

“That was fucking hot!” she exclaimed with a wink.

Kristi felt her face flush but Michelle kissed her one more time before rolling off and lying next to her, her hand resting just below her bare breasts. “Doesn’t she look incredible when she cums?” she said, giving Kristi a loving caress and smile.

Everyone agreed and Jake squeezed Angie’s tit. “You look pretty fucking hot yourself.” She giggled and adjusted her position so he could get a better handle on her breasts, then looked over at Michelle and Kristi.

“You guys have got to try two guys at once! What a fucking turn-on!”

Michelle grinned and nodded. “I’m up for that!” she exclaimed, looking at Artie and Jake with a wink. “What about you, babe?” she asked Kristi.

Kristi felt her face heat again. She couldn’t believe she was still so self-conscious about talking about sex when she’d just been eaten out by her girlfriend while watching Angie suck and fuck Jake and Artie. She nodded hesitantly, her eyes moving to Artie’s semi flaccid but still very formidable cock. “Sure…maybe later.”

Angie grinned at her and reached out to fondle Artie’s cock. “Oh, that’s right, you still haven’t had the pleasure of this monster between your legs!”

Now it was Artie’s turn to blush and Jake shot him an almost warning glance. In spite of their unusual arrangement, he still thought of Kristi as his girlfriend and the thought of some other guy fucking her was a little hard to take, especially when he was hung like Artie. Michelle seemed to be the only one who noticed Jake’s look and interpreted it correctly. She decided to take the initiative and stood up, brushing some dried grass from her bare skin. All eyes turned to the sexy brunette as she made her way over to where Jake was sitting. She knelt next to him and smiled as her hand moved to his thigh and higher, until she was fondling his soft, but growing penis.

“Don’t worry, baby. Ang and I will take real good care of you.” She leaned in to kiss him while Angie moved in on his other side. She lay her hand along his cheek and turned his head to her, kissing him softly as Michelle began to kiss along his chest. She could feel his cock responding to her and Angie’s touch and began to slowly stroke him as her mouth closed over his nipples.

Kristi watched Michelle and Angie get to work on Jake, a pang of jealousy going through her as she watched her girlfriend and boyfriend making out with one another. Then she sensed Artie looking at her and turned her attention to him. He was watching her intently, seemingly oblivious to the action taking place next to him. She felt a rush of excitement as their eyes met. Here she was, naked with Artie, a guy she never would’ve expected in a million years to be in a sexual situation with. But something about him was different now, aside from the fact that he was naked with a huge cock. He seemed somehow more mature now, not so nerdy. Maybe getting laid on a regular basis had changed him, but for whatever reason, she now felt like something could happen between them.

He gave her a timid smile and she found herself smiling back at him. He glanced over at the others and saw that Michelle’s head was now in Jake’s lap and he was leaning back on his arms as Angie waited patiently for her turn. When he looked back over at Kristi, she was still watching him but her hand was now on her breast, her fingers rubbing over her nipple. He swallowed hard and felt his cock twitch. Like Kristi, he never believed they’d ever get together. They weren’t even really friends, just acquaintances who had common friends. He’d always felt very insecure around her, even more so than with other girls. But now, as he saw her eyes move down to his hardening dick, he realized that he had something very few guys had and that she now wanted him. He was in the drivers’ seat now; all he had to do was take control.

Taking a deep breath, he slowly pushed himself to his feet and walked the four steps over to where she lay. The whole time, she continued to fondle her tits and watch him, her eyes glued to his thick cock hanging semi-rigid between his legs. As he stood before her, she looked up at him, squinting against the bright sun. She knew this was going to happen now.

“Please…just be gentle, ok?” she said in a quiet voice.

He knelt on the towel beside her taking in her full nakedness. He could see that her pussy was still wet from Michelle’s cunnilingus, her bare lips puffy and beading with her juices. He met her eyes and gave her a smile. “Of course.” She was lying on her side and he reached out to rest a hand on the curve of her hip, then slowly moved it along her soft skin. She closed her eyes and inhaled a long breath. He could feel her trembling and wondered if it was from excitement or fear? She didn’t tell him to stop or move away, so he took it as excitement and continued his sensual caress.

His cock was now pretty much fully hard again and his eyes dropped to the vee of her legs where he could see just a hint of her puffy labia. His hand moved down her thigh, then with the lightest touch, he pushed his fingers between her legs. Without any hesitation or resistance, she parted her legs for him and he began to move along her inner thighs. She still had her eyes closed, her fingers pulling and twisting her hard nipples. As he moved closer to the heat of her aroused cunt, she tugged harder on them and low moans began to escape her sweet lips.

When his fingers finally brushed against her excited sex, she let out a long groan and pulled even harder on her stiff nipples. She couldn’t believe how much just his touch was turning, her on! She rolled onto her back and spread her legs for him, letting out a small cry as his fingers began to probe into her wetness.

Artie watched as Kristi became more and more aroused. When he began to rub along her wet pussy lips, he suddenly felt a need to fuck her like he’d never felt before. The look of sexual desire on her face and the way her body writhed as she pleasured her tits made his already hard cock even harder. Knowing she’d need to be taken slowly because of his size, he leaned over and inhaled the musky sweet scent of her arousal. Her clit was stiff, protruding from its protective cover and swollen with arousal. He flicked his thumb across the little pearl and she yelped.

“Ah…oh my god!” She opened her eyes and looked down at him, her desire burning in the dark orbs. “Do that again!”

Happy to oblige, he began rubbing in circles around her clit, letting his fingers dance over it. She gasped and continued to watch him as he brought her closer and closer to orgasm. She was becoming extremely turned on now and the sight of that huge cock now rubbing against her thigh made her want him more than ever. His size seemed a small price to pay to have a cock in her needy pussy, and she was more than ready. She pulled his fingers from her pussy and brought them to her lips, sucking her juices as her eyes burned into his.

“Mmmm…” she murmured, licking her lips, “I need you to fuck me. Now.” The look in her eyes told him this wasn’t a request and he quickly moved into position between her legs, the tip of his cock poised at her tiny opening.

“Are you ready?” he asked, rubbing his head over her slick labia.

Kristi felt like she was about to explode at the touch of his dick and she nodded, unable to speak. Artie leaned forward and the pressure grew stronger. She could feel her pussy stretching, trying to accept his girth, but he felt so big! He leaned down and nuzzled her neck, his breath warm. “Just relax…let it happen,” he whispered. She felt him push harder and suppressed a cry as the tip of his cock spread her and pushed in. She’d never felt anything like this and although it felt like she was being split in half, the incredible sensation of being stuffed by such a big cock overshadowed any feeling of pain. Her arms went around him and she pulled him closer, forcing his cock even deeper into her tight cunt.

“Oh fuck…” she gasped, burying her head in his shoulder as almost half of his thick cock slid into her. “S…stop…please,” she said. Artie immediately stopped and looked into her eyes, brushing her hair from her face.

“Are you all right?” he asked, barely able to control his urge to cum in her tight cunt.

She nodded. “Yes, I just need a minute.” She tried to relax widely stretched vagina, but the thick cock just seemed far too big. After a moment, she said, “We can try now, but don’t go in any further, ok?” Artie nodded and slowly pulled back until just the glans remained inside, then pushed back in with the same slow, steady pace. Kristi gasped and bit her lip to stop from crying out. Unlike Angie and Michelle, the longer they fucked she found it more and more painful to have Artie’s huge cock even half way in. It was so thick it stretched her tiny pussy wide open and even though he was being very gentle, she couldn’t prevent a few whimpers from slipping out.

Artie paused, then withdrew completely. She opened her eyes and looked up into his concerned face. “Why’d you stop?”

He shook his head and moved from between her legs, his cock brushing across her thigh as he lay down beside her. “I don’t want to hurt you,” he said, meeting her eyes. She opened her mouth to protest, but he shook his head. “It’s no good for me if I know you aren’t enjoying it.” He gestured toward Angie and Michelle, who were taking turns sucking on Jake’s cock in between kisses. “Besides, I’m sure I’ll be taken care of.”

Kristi looked over at the others as Michelle looked up, apparently overhearing Artie’s comment. Angie attacked Jake’s cock with a vengeance, taking nearly all of it into her mouth as he moaned his approval. When Michelle saw that Kristi and Artie weren’t fucking, she came over and knelt down beside them.

“What’s wrong? I thought you two were going at it a minute ago.”

Kristi and Artie exchanged a look and Artie simply looked down at his still very hard cock. Michelle caught on right away. “Ohh, ok.” Kristi’s face turned red but Michelle leaned down and kissed her. “Don’t worry about it, honey.” She looked up at Artie and winked. “He does take a little getting used to!” Kristi giggled and now it was Artie’s turn to be embarrassed. Michelle gestured to where Angie was still happily sucking on Jake’s dick. “Why don’t you go join them and I’ll see if I can take care of Artie.”

Kristi looked up at Artie and he nodded, giving her a reassuring smile. “Go ahead. Maybe another time?” Kristi returned his smile gratefully, nodded, and gave him a peck on the cheek. As she got to her feet, Michelle was already lowering her mouth to the thick glans, murmuring softly.

Angie was getting hornier by the minute as she slurped on Jake’s hard cock. She was aware that Michelle had moved off and wondered where she went. Then she felt a warm hand on her bare back and looked up, the soft tip lodged between her full lips. She was surprised to see it was Kristi and not Michelle. She released the cock from her mouth and grinned at the sexy naked brunette.

“Hey, I thought you were doing Artie?”

Kristi shook her head. “Michelle wanted to switch.”

Angie looked over her shoulder to where Michelle’s head was bobbing up and down in Artie’s lap, then looked back to Kristi. “Oh, ok.” She was still stroking Jake’s cock and pointed it toward her. “Want a taste?” Kristi accepted it, wrapping her small hand around the hard shaft, then bent over and slowly took him into her mouth. Angie alternated between watching Kristi and Jake’s face as she began her blow job. She was so turned on she could feel her juices coating her engorged labia and desperately needed a hard cock in her pussy really soon! Her eyes traveled over Kristi’s nude body, and suddenly felt an almost overwhelming need to taste her pussy.

She allowed her to pleasure Jake for a minute or two, then gently lifted Kristi’s head up and kissed her. At first Kristi seemed startled by her sudden kiss, but then responded, kissing her back passionately.

Angie broke off the kiss and carefully pushed Kristi down until she was lying on her back on the towel. She smiled down at her, then began to kiss her neck and shoulders, eventually moving down to her perky tits. As she began to suckle her left one, Jake appeared at her other side and started on the right nipple. Kristi moaned as two mouths suckled her tits, closing her eyes and losing herself in the pleasurable feelings.

Angie began to rub across Kristi’s belly, then lower until her hand covered her pubic mound and her fingers slipped down to her wet pussy. Jake saw what she was doing and released her nipple, then started to move his head down to Kristi’s sweet pussy. A hand stopped him and he looked up into Angie’s wide grin. She shook her head, then indicated silently that she wanted to do it. With a shrug, he nodded. He enjoyed eating pussy, but part of the enjoyment was Kristi’s reaction. He’d still be able to watch that and the bonus of watching the sexy blonde do it was well worth the sacrifice. And he was certain he could find something to do!

He watched as Angie knelt between her legs and lowered her mouth to Kristi’s tight little snatch. Kristi cried out and arched her back as Angie made contact and began to lick and suck. Jake was so enthralled by the girl-on-girl action it took him a few moments to realize Angie’s hot little ass was up in the air, swaying sexily from side to side as she munched on his girlfriend’s twat. A smile came to his face and he quickly got to his knees and crawled around behind her, gripping her hips and pushing her feet apart.

Angie was about to give up and just tell Jake to fuck her when he finally caught on and moved into position. She felt his hard cock touch her upper thighs briefly before pressing against the slick lips of her highly aroused little cunt. She pushed back against him and moaned softly into Kristi’s sweet pussy as Jake’s cock began to push into her, instantly sending a wave of pleasure emanating from her uterus. She attacked Kristi’s pussy with even more gusto as Jake began to pump in and out of her, slowly at first, then faster and harder. She lifted her mouth from Kristi’s pussy, her lips and face covered with her juices.

“Oh yes, Jake! Fuck me while I eat your girlfriend!”

Jake looked down over Angie’s head to Kristi’s squirming body. She was lying back with her eyes closed and both hands gripping her breasts and tugging at her nipples. The vision of the two of them almost sent him over the edge, but he paused for a few seconds, then resumed a slower, steady fuck. He still found it hard to believe he was fucking this hot blonde while she ate his girlfriend after losing his virginity only a few weeks ago. As a male teenager he constantly thought about sex, of course, but this was way beyond any fantasies he could’ve ever dreamed up.

Angie began to hump back faster, meeting his forward thrusts and grinding herself against him. She turned her head and he could see the wild look in her eyes. “Fuck me hard!” She exclaimed, her pink tongue licking the juices from her lips. “I’m gonna cum all over that big cock of yours!”

Jake increased his speed, slamming hard into her and she let out a little yelp before once again going down on Kristi. He noticed Kristi was watching them and he gave her a subtle wink as he pounded into Angie’s hot cunt. As Angie’s tongue went back to work, Kristi closed her eyes and began to moan, her head rolling from side to side. Angie’s body began to shudder, her movements becoming halting and jerky. Suddenly, she arched her back and cried out as she drove back hard against him. He felt her pussy clamp down on his impaled cock, her vaginal muscles contracting and rippling over it.

“Ohhhh…fuck!” she gasped, shuddering as the orgasm ripped through her. Jake continued to fuck her, the tightness of her clamoring pussy heightening his own sensations. He gripped her hips tightly and concentrated, hoping to allow her to fully experience her orgasm before he blew his load. Finally, he had to stop moving, her contractions making it too difficult to move. She eventually eased up on him as the orgasm subsided, then pulled forward, gasping as his hard cock slipped out of her. She turned to him and gave him a sleepy smile.

“Mmm…very nice, Jake.” She looked down at Kristi, who was still laying there with her legs spread and now had one hand on her pussy. “I think Kristi needs some cock, too!” She moved aside and gave Jake a warm kiss, then whispered into his ear, “Make sure she cums hard!”

He nodded and moved between Kristi’s legs, his hard cock still glistening with Angie’s juices bobbing before him. Kristi looked up at him with an almost animalistic look of pure lust and pulled her fingers from her cunt. She brought them to her lips and began to suck on them, her eyes locked on Jake’s. No words needed to be spoken. She needed his cock. Now.

He leaned over her and felt the tip of his cock bump her inner thighs, then settle against the warm wetness of her excited slit. She put her arms around his neck and pulled him down for a deep kiss. As their lips met, his cock parted her labia and slid into her slippery hole, causing her to gasp into his mouth. He buried himself all the way in and didn’t move until she pulled her mouth from his and their eyes met.

“Fuck me, Jake.”

He’d never seen her like this before. Yes, they’d had sex in groups before, but this was somehow different. It was like she’d unleashed a part of her that he’d never seen before; some kind of wild, sexual animal. He felt her vagina squeezing his cock and began to move with her, their bodies locked together. Her hands went to his back and she wrapped her legs around him, drawing her feet up to his ass and using her legs to help pull him inside her. He could feel her fingernails digging into his skin as her breathing began to come in short gasps.

Suddenly, her body tensed and he felt a warm wetness flood his groin. She held him tight, her body jerking against his and her face buried in his neck. Her legs clamped tightly around him and although he managed to keep pumping her pussy, he wasn’t able to keep up the same pace. He felt her body ease somewhat and she pulled her face from his shoulder, her eyes blazing.

“Oh fuck, Jake,” she moaned as they resumed their previous speed. “I want to cum again and again and….ohhh…” He felt her tense up again as another orgasm consumed her. He wondered how many times she’d be able to do that, although he knew he wasn’t going to be able to hold out much longer. He held her trembling body until it passed and she once more met his eyes. She gave him a slight smile and kissed his neck. “I feel like I’m still cumming,” she said, “God, this feels so fucking good!”

He nodded, feeling the sweat trickling down his face. “Yeah…you’re fucking amazing, Kristi!”

She hugged him to her and he felt her hot breath in his ear. “Fuck me baby. I want to feel you cum inside me!”

He felt his balls tighten at her words. Knowing she wanted him to cum was all the incentive he needed to stop holding back. He began to move faster and felt the sensations building as his cock pistoned in and out of her gripping wet hole. He felt a tingling sensation start in his groin and spread outward, growing stronger with each passing second. He grit his teeth and drove deep into her, unable to stop the tide, and unleashed a flood of hot jism deep inside her. Through his own orgasmic haze, he faintly heard her cry out and felt her pussy clench his cock harder than before. They remained locked together as time stood still, each experiencing a mind-numbing orgasm like none they’d ever felt before.

After what felt like a long time, their minds began to clear and they slowly emerged from the fog of their intense simultaneous orgasms. Their eyes met and they kissed before Kristi removed her legs from around him and allowed him to roll off. He lay on his back and she rolled onto her side, placing one leg over his and pressing her drooling pussy against his thigh. He held her close and they turned their attention to the action on the other towel.

*****************

Angie watched as Jake and Kristi began to fuck, then turned her attention to Artie and Michelle. By now, Michelle was straddling him and leaning over him so that her tits were in his face as his big cock filled her pussy. Artie was nipping and sucking on her nipples as she fucked him, seeming oblivious to anyone else.

An idea came to her and she crawled over to her backpack. She fumbled through it for a few seconds, then found what she was looking for. She fastened the strap-on dildo around her waist and spread a generous amount of lube on it, then went over and knelt next to Michelle and Artie. Michelle looked over at her and grinned, then her eyes fell to the lubed up strap-on and her mouth dropped open.

“Up for a little DP?” Angie asked, giving her a quick kiss.

Michelle hesitated, then nodded, settling down onto Artie’s cock. “Uh, ok…we can try it.” Artie watched them in wonderment. Was she really going to let Angie fuck her ass while he fucked her pussy?

“Are you sure about this?” he asked as Angie moved into position and she bent over to expose her asshole.

“I want to try,” she replied in a hushed voice. “If it hurts, we’ll stop.”

He seemed skeptical but shrugged. It was her body. Angie ran two fingers over the plastic cock to capture some of the lube, then pressed them against Michelle’s puckered opening. Slowly, she worked them inside as Michelle grunted and moaned. She pushed in deeper until she could feel the hardness of Artie’s cock through the thin membrane that separated her bowels from her pussy. She felt her own pussy leak a little at the prospect of anally fucking her girlfriend as Artie worked on her cunt. She leaned over Michelle.

“Ready, baby?”

Michelle’s head bobbed and Angie straightened back up. She took the slippery fake cock in her hand and positioned it at the puckered brown hole, then slowly began to work in in. Michelle groaned loudly and reached back to spread her cheeks. Slowly, the tip slid in and Michelle cried out as both of her holes were stuffed with hard cock.

Angie stopped after a couple of inches were in. “Are you ok?”

Michelle nodded and turned her head. “Yes…just let me adjust a little…” She rose up so that most of Artie’s cock was out of her pussy, then nodded to Angie. “Ok, try a little more.”

Angie pushed in another inch and stopped when Michelle indicated for her to. She moved so that only the tip of Artie’s cock was still in her pussy, then gestured for Angie to go deeper. This time, she didn’t stop her until all seven inches of the plastic cock was buried in her ass.

“Oh, fuck,” Michelle cried. “That feels so fucking good!”

“It’s not too much?” Artie asked. The concern in his voice was very evident.

Michelle shook her head. “N…no, I don’t think so. Just…” She looked back at Angie, “…when you go in…” Back to Artie. “…you pull out. I can’t take you both in at once.”

“Sure baby,” Angie said soothingly. “Pulling out now.” She began to withdraw the dildo and when she was almost all the way out, Michelle pushed down and she felt the thick cock moving against the plastic one. Michelle groaned, taking Artie all the way in, then moved back up. As soon as she paused, Angie drove the dildo back into her ass. They began a slow, but steady rhythm and Michelle closed her eyes. The feel of two cocks at once was incredible. There was a little pain, but the pleasure more than made up for it. She could feel the stirrings of an orgasm almost from the beginning. Her hands went to her breasts and she began to tug and twist her hard nipples as she moved closer and closer to her impending release.

Angie watched Michelle’s reaction to being doubled fucked. It was so fucking hot to be doing this that she knew she was going to cum as soon as Michelle did, if not sooner. She could feel Artie’s cock moving against the dildo and it seemed to transfer right back to her own aroused pussy. It was almost like all three of them were fucking each other, as strange as that sounded.

Michelle’s moans grew louder and louder and Angie knew she was about to cum. And from her body language, it was going to be a really good one. She felt herself very close as well and began to fondle her tits. Michelle cried out suddenly and Angie felt her ass tighten so hard she was unable to move. But that no longer mattered. As Michelle erupted into orgasm, her own pussy flooded and she gripped Michelle’s hips as she came with her, the dildo buried deep in her ass.

Artie watched Michelle’s face as she fucked him. He too could feel Angie moving in and out of her ass with each stroke and it did add to the sensations her pussy was inflicting on his cock. Of course, knowing it was a fake cock and it was really another girl helped. He didn’t know if he could do this with another guy. Regardless, when Michelle’s orgasm gripped her, he was mostly out of her pussy, but he felt the warm wetness ooze from her and coat his cock. He watched her face twist as she came hard, her body jerking and her jaw set. When she finally stopped cumming and began to relax, he felt Angie slide the dildo from her ass completely. She immediately pushed herself back down onto his cock and after only a few times, she began to cum again. This was all too much for him and he began to pound up at her as his own orgasm built.

“Oh, fuck!” he cried, “I’m gonna cum!”

Michelle’s second orgasm was waning and she quickly scrambled off of him. “Cum in our faces, baby!” For some reason, it only seemed right for both her and Angie to share his load. Angie had removed the strap-on and quickly knelt beside him as Michelle grasped his thick meat and pumped it. They kissed until Artie cried out that he was cumming, then both of them lowered their faces just as he shot a huge load, hitting both of them with the first shot, then finishing by alternating between the two sexy girls. When his shots stopped, they took turns sucking him clean, then kissed again and licked some of the cum from one another before collapsing to the towels in a twisted pile of naked flesh.

“Wow,” they heard Jake say. All three looked over to where he and Kristi were lying watching them. “That was amazing!”

Michelle and Angie shared a grin. “I’m gonna be sore for a week,” Michelle replied, “But it was worth it!”

Everyone chuckled at that and began to clean up. It was getting late and their sexual needs were more than sated for one day. After a few last minute discussions on the cabin, they shouldered their backpacks and began the hike back to their bikes.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Family Friend - Part 24

bjcortland on Teen Stories

 

Chapter 82

By the time Michelle arrived at Steve’s house the next morning most of the boxes were already loaded into Angie’s parent’s van and the O’Connell’s car. Fortunately, they’d only brought the things they’d need while they stayed there - mostly clothes - so there wasn’t a whole lot. The real work would be arranging everything from the moving van inside the new house.

 

Angie greeted her with a hug as Karen placed a box in the trunk of the car, trying to watch them without being too obvious about it. Steve caught her eye and she gave him a baleful look before going back into the house. After Michelle and Angie hugged, Michelle gave Steve a somewhat less enthusiastic one

Read More
for appearances and they waited for their parents to finish up in the house.

“The movers should be there by nine,” Angie said, glancing at her watch. It was almost eight-thirty.

“Artie said he was coming to help,” Michelle told them.

Angie grinned and playfully reached down toward her crotch. “Oh, yeah, I almost forgot! Artie’s home! How’d your ‘date’ go?”

Michelle giggled and sidestepped her hand. “Hey! Behave!” she scolded, playfully slapping her hand away. “I’m a little tender, ok?”

Angie laughed and nudged Steve. “I bet you are!”

“Speak of the devil,” Steve said, shading his eyes as he looked down the street. Artie was coasting up on his bicycle. He slowed to a stop when he came up to where they stood in the driveway. “Hey buddy, welcome back.”

“Thanks,” he said. His eyes moved to Michelle, then Angie. “Hey Michelle, Angie.” They both greeted him with a warm hug, although Michelle added a quick kiss. “Did you tell Steve your idea yet, Michelle?”

Steve looked curiously at her and she shook her head. “No, I wanted to wait for you.”

“What’s this?” Steve asked, slipping an arm around Angie.

“I was saying to Artie yesterday that we won’t have anywhere to go once the weather gets cold. I thought maybe we could build a little cabin somewhere near the creek - kind of a shag shack!” She grinned and Angie laughed at her name for it.

“Shag shack! I love it!”

Artie spoke up. “And all that land around the creek is crown land and it’s just sitting there. No one will care if we build something there.”

Steve thought about it for a moment then nodded. “I like it. What do you think, Ang?”

Angie grinned and hugged him to her. “Sounds great!” She smiled at Michelle. “Good idea, babe!”

“Think you could get us some wood scraps, or damaged stuff we could buy at a discount?” Artie asked Steve.

Steve nodded thoughtfully. “Yeah, I think so. It might take some time to get all we’d need, but I think I can. I’ll talk to Bob on Monday.” Bob Werner was the owner and general manager of the lumber yard.

“Cool.”

Just then their parents came out and after a brief greeting, and introduction of Artie to Angie’s parents, the O’Connells and Delaneys got in their respective cars and pulled out. The kids all jumped on their bikes and followed them to the new house.

The move went as expected. Cathy and Karen directed the movers on where to place the furniture while the movers seemed to always bring in a piece of furniture that went into whatever room Angie or Michelle happened to be in at the time. Steve grinned when he overheard them commenting on both girls. Far from feeling jealous or threatened, he was pleased that other guys considered his girlfriends to be hot too. Of course, Cathy and Karen got their fair share of lustful stares as well.

By noon the movers had emptied the van and left. All of the big and heavy furniture was more or less where it was supposed to be, leaving only the tedious job of unpacking the boxes and putting all the smaller items in their respective places. While the parents worked in the upstairs rooms, Angie took her friends downstairs to where her room was.

“After what happened last night, I didn’t think Mom would let me take this room,” Angie said as they walked into the large bedroom off the downstairs family room.

“Why? What happened?” Michelle asked.

Angie brought a hand to her mouth and looked over at Steve. “Oh, shit! I forgot to tell you!” She went over and checked to make sure no one had followed them downstairs, then turned back to Michelle and Artie. “Steve and I were getting a little…uh…friendly on the couch last night,” she began. “To make a long story short, Mom caught the tail end of a very messy blowjob!”

Michelle’s eyebrows shot up and she clamped a hand over her own mouth. “Oh my god!” she exclaimed, looking from Angie to Steve. “What did she do?”

Angie quickly related the resulting lecture as everyone listened intently. When she finished, Artie grinned up at Steve. “Holy fuck, man, it must have been hard sitting there with her while Angie was in the bathroom!”

Steve nodded, feeling his face flush. “Yeah, not a good time, bro.”

Michelle looked around the spacious bedroom, which was somewhat removed from the other parts of the house. “And they still let you have this room? Wow! My folks would have had me sleeping at the foot of their bed if they caught me doing that!”

“Little do they know,” Angie quipped with a wink.

Everyone chuckled at that and they began unpacking Angie’s things, talking about some ideas for the shag shack, as Michelle had so appropriately dubbed it. Steve made the suggestion that Jake’s grandmother had an old farm that hadn’t been worked in years and there were a few old outbuildings that they may be able to tear down for lumber. He explained that even with damaged lumber from work and using his discount, it would still be a very expensive way to do it. He also mentioned that the farm also had a lot of wooded land that wasn’t being used for anything. It would be better to build on that land, with Jake’s grandmother’s permission of course, than to take a chance on crown land, so he planned to ask Jake about it. By the time they finished and went back upstairs, they had a general idea of what they’d need to do.

 

Chapter 83

 

Later that night Angie flopped down on her bed in her new room. While she was happy to finally have a home of her own here in Mason, she was going to miss sleeping in the room next to Steve. Not to mention all the impromptu trysts those living arrangements allowed for! She sighed and glanced over at her computer on the desk, then got up and turned it on. There were a few e-mails promising her a larger penis and several offers from foreign officials pleading for her help in getting millions into the country, but one caught her attention immediately. It was from Lin! She opened it up and read it quickly.

Hey sexy! How’s life in Mason? Gettin’ any? lol. Not much happening here,

except that Jason and I split up. Kind of a bummer, but hey, that’s life, right? I’m

not gonna dwell on it.

The reason I’m writing is because 1) I don’t have your new phone number so I can’t call you! and 2) my parents are taking my brother to college and they’ll be passing right by Mason, so I asked if they could drop me off for a visit. Would that be cool? I don’t want to impose but I miss you so much and I can’t stop thinking about …well, you know! ;) Give me a call when you get this - no matter how late it is, k? Love ya!

Lin.

Angie stared at the words, re-reading it several times. She missed Lin terribly and wanted to see her very much, but she still hadn’t told Steve or Michelle about what had happened with her and Jason when she’d gone back to Williamstown. Since Jason no longer seemed to be in the picture, maybe they’d be ok with Lin and he’d never come up. She hated lying to them, but some things were best kept secret. Besides, it was only a one-time thing with him. And if Lin were to come for a visit, who knew what may transpire? She picked up the phone and dialed her number. As soon as she heard Lin’s voice, she couldn’t help smiling.

“Hey beautiful!”

“Angie! Wow, it’s so good to hear your voice!”

The talked for a few moments, Lin filling Angie in on why her and Jason had broken up. It seemed that since their threesome, he assumed she’d be open to having one at anytime and with anyone. When he showed up to pick her up for a date one night with a cute blonde in the back seat, she was stunned and refused to get in the car. A shouting match ensued and insults were hurled, the worst of which inferred she was a dyke slut who only wanted Angie. They’d never spoken again.

“Aw, baby, I’m so sorry. I feel like it’s all my fault…”

Lin interrupted her. “Don’t be ridiculous. If he thinks I’m just some sex toy who’s only there for his pleasure, it’s best I found out now before I wasted any more time with him.” She sighed. “Too bad, though. He seemed like a nice guy up ‘til then…and he was my first.”

“I know, baby,” Angie said in a soothing voice, then brightened. “But now you’re free to play the field! And a hot number like you won’t be single for long!”

Lin laughed, her laughter tinkling like delicate bells. “I hope you’re right!” She paused, then said, “So, how are you and Steve getting along? Anything juicy I should know about?”

Angie giggled. If she only knew the half of it! “Things are great! He’s a wonderful guy, Lin. I can’t wait to introduce you to him.”

“Does that mean I can come for a visit?”

Angie giggled. “You better! I have this room all to myself and this great big bed. It seems empty with just me in it!”

“Ooo…bad girl!” Lin teased, but Angie could hear her breathing deepen. “It’ll be next weekend. They can drop me off on Thursday night, then pick me up Sunday afternoon. They’re going to help Sean get settled in his dorm, then spend the weekend at a hotel resort nearby, so we’ll have three days together!”

“Awesome!” Angie replied. “Let me check with Mom and Dad and I’ll call you back, ok?”

They said goodbye and hung up. Angie sat thinking for a minute before getting up and going upstairs, her mind working on ways to get Lin, Michelle, and Steve into bed with her. Maybe even the rest of them as well. If Lin thought having sex with two other people was hot, wait until she tried a full-on orgy!

Her parents were at first a little hesitant to agree because they’d just moved in and things would still be in a state of disarray when Lin planned to visit. But they also knew how close the two girls were (or at least they thought they knew) and eventually agreed she could come and stay with them. Angie thanked them both with a kiss on the cheek and bounded back downstairs to call Lin back. When she heard the news she practically squealed in excitement.

“Before you get here, I need to talk to you about something, Lin,” Angie said after the initial excitement had worn off.

“Uh-oh…sounds serious,” Lin replied.

“It is, but hopefully in a good way,” Angie answered. “I need to tell you about my friends here so you know what you’re getting into.”

Lin chuckled. “Why…are they all freaks or something?”

Angie hesitated before replying. “Well, some people might say that.”

There was a short pause before Lin asked in a puzzled voice, “What the hell does that mean?”

Angie sighed and wandered over to her open bedroom door, then quietly pushed it closed. She lowered her voice. “Well, remember that night we spent with Jason?”

“Of course.” Angie took a deep breath. This was harder than she thought it was going to be. “Ang?”

“Sorry, I’m just trying to think of the best way to explain my relationships with my friends here in a way you’ll understand.” She could hear Lin’s breath catch and continued. “I…uh, that is, Steve and I…well, we kind of have an open relationship.” She paused again, listening to Lin’s breathing. “There’s this girl I met here, and we…well, we all get together sometimes.” She felt a burden lifted from her shoulders as she finally managed to say the words. Lin still didn’t say anything and after a few seconds, Angie couldn’t take her silence any longer. “Lin, please say something? This doesn’t change the way I feel about you.”

“I…wow, Ang…I don’t know what to say,” she finally said.

“Are you mad at me?”

“No, no, not mad. Just…surprised. I just thought it was a first time for you, too…when you were here, I mean.”

Angie hung her head. “I know, Lin, and I’m sorry. I just didn’t know how to tell you.” There was a long moment of silence before Angie finally spoke again. “I still miss you and want you to come for a visit, if that’s ok.”

“Yeah, I want to…of course. But what about your…” she hesitated before continuing, “… what about your girlfriend? Won’t she be jealous?”

Angie felt a smile creep across her face. “No, not at all. As a matter of fact, I think Michelle would like you very much.”

The insinuation didn’t slip by Lin. “I…uh, wow…are you saying what I think you’re saying?”

“Only if you want to. I’m pretty sure Michelle would be up for it, and I know Steve would, if you’re interested in him.”

“You’d do that?” she asked in a disbelieving tone of voice. “I mean, share the guy you’ve had a crush on since you were seven?”

Angie giggled. “I share him with Michelle, so of course I would with you!”

Lin couldn’t believe what she was hearing! This was her best friend? The girl she’d known since kindergarten? “I…uh…” she paused, gathering her thoughts. “Let me think about it, ok?”

“Sure, no problem. But can you promise me you and I will still have some fun together, even if nothing else happens?”

Lin remembered the hot sex they’d shared and smiled. “I think I can promise that much.”

Angie laughed and then lowered her voice to a sexy whisper. “In that case, I can’t wait to see you baby!” Lin giggled and after a few more words, they said good night. Angie stared at the phone for several moments, imagining the possibilities of having another partner for a few days. And she was from out of town so it wouldn’t be like inviting someone like Ashley into the group. She began getting ready for bed, her mind racing with the memory of Lin’s sexy, naked body and picturing Steve plowing his hard cock into her tiny little slit. Despite her still tender pussy, she lay in bed naked and pleasured herself before falling asleep.

 

Chapter 84

 

While Angie was talking to Lin, Steve was on the phone with Jake. He told him about the idea for the cabin and Jake was all for it. When Steve asked about some of the buildings on his grandmother’s farm and maybe even building it on her land, he agreed wholeheartedly.

“Fuck, yeah…Gram’s been bugging my dad and uncle to get rid of the two closest to the house for a couple of years now. I think there’s still plenty of good wood in both of them.”

“Cool,” Steve replied, mentally calculating how much wood it would take to build something like they’d talked about. If he remembered correctly, one of the sheds was about the same size they’d need and the other was bigger. The roofing was long since deteriorated so they’d have to come up with something for that, but for the most part their lumber needs should be taken care of.

“Why don’t we go out in the morning and see if there’s any useful wood, then we can scout out a place to build?” Jake suggested.

Steve frowned. “I can’t. I promised Dad I’d mow the lawn and clean the garage tomorrow. Why don’t you and Artie or one of the girls go?”

“Sure, no problem. I think I know a pretty good spot. It should be perfect.”

“Yeah, somewhere well-hidden but not too far from the road.”

“The place I’m thinking of is near one of the old roads back there so we’ll be able to use the tractor and wagon to haul everything in,” Jake said. The tractor at the farm was old, but his father and uncle kept it in good running order so they could plow the long driveway in winter and do odd chores in the summer. “And it’s not a long walk from the main road either.”

“Sounds good,” Steve replied. “Call me after you get back, ok?” Jake agreed and they hung up. He thought about calling Angie, but decided against it. Her increasingly hunger for sex - any kind of sex with almost anyone - was beginning to bother him. He needed some time to think.

 

Chapter 85

 

The next morning Kristi stood in the kitchen pouring herself a glass of water. She gulped it down and stared out the window over the kitchen sink. It was almost eleven o’clock and another hot day, although not as stifling as it had been. As much as she hated to admit it, the long, warm days of summer were drawing to a close and school was only three weeks away.

She set the empty glass in the sink and listened to her sister Katie talking to one of her old high school friends on the phone in the next room. It was nice having Katie home and she’d enjoyed the time they’d spent hanging out and shopping together, but she needed a break from her and she sensed that Katie felt the same way. As close as they were as sisters, they were three years apart in age and didn’t exactly have all the same likes or circle of friends. Besides, she was going to be home for another week so they’d have plenty of time to be together before she went back to California.

“Kristi! Phone!” Katie called out. Kristi met her at the kitchen door and Katie handed her the phone with a grin. “It’s Jake!” she whispered with a wink and a grin. During one of their chats Kristi admitted to her that she’d recently lost her virginity and Katie suspected - somewhat correctly - that it’d been either Steve or Jake. She accepted the phone with a reddening face and Katie gave her another grin before disappearing down the hall.

“Hey, Jake,” she said, watching Katie go into her room and close the door.

“Hiya, babe,” Jake replied. “What’s up?”

“Nothing much…what are you doing?”

“Want to go for a hike in the woods with me?”

Kristi felt a rush of excitement as she read between the lines. A walk in the woods more likely meant slipping away to the creek for a little naked romp. “Sure, sounds like fun,” she said.

“Cool. Meet me at the school in a half hour, ok?”

“Ok, see you then.” They said goodbye and she went to freshen up before grabbing her backpack and telling Katie she’d be gone all afternoon. As she hopped on her bike, she felt her anticipation growing. Ever since being introduced to sex, she found she craved it more and more and she hoped Jake’s techniques had improved since their last time together.

She rolled into the school yard and saw that Jake was already there. As they rode side by side toward the creek, he explained to her what the purpose of their excursion was and that they were going to his grandmother’s farm about a half mile past the trail to the creek. Kristi’s hopes for an afternoon of sex fell until he explained that they’d also be scouting locations for the cabin. She smiled to herself. Surely there’d be lots of opportunities to jump him in the woods. She looked over and couldn’t help admiring his lean, tanned body as he stood up to pedal up a hill. She leaned into her bike to keep up, driven on by her desire to get him alone in the woods.

They arrived at the farm and had a nice chat with Jake’s grandmother, who seemed pleased to see Jake with a girlfriend. She heartily endorsed their taking down the dilapidated buildings and even gave her approval for them to build on her land, provided they were careful and made it look ‘nice’. They said goodbye to her and walked across the overgrown pasture to the first building and Kristi looked around the dusty interior while Jake examined it for salvageable lumber. She was happy she wore jeans, even though it was warm. The field had many burdock and briar bushes and her legs would have been badly scratched with shorts.

They went over to the other building and Kristi slipped her hand into Jake’s as they walked. He squeezed her hand and she felt the urge to kiss him. She stopped and pulled him close, wrapping her arms around his neck and pressing her body to his. As she ground her pelvis against his, she pushed her tongue into his mouth, making certain he understood exactly how she felt and what she wanted. After they pulled apart he smiled down at her.

“Wow…that was hot!”

She licked her lips and ran her hand over his groin, where she could feel his cock beginning to grow inside his jeans. “If you think that was hot, wait until I get you alone!” she replied with a sly smile and a wink. Before he could react, she gave him a playful push and ran toward the other shed, looking back over her shoulder at him with a playful grin. He only hesitated a brief second before a wide grin spread across his face and he took off after her. She squealed when she saw him coming and ran faster, reaching the shed and ducking inside just before he caught up to her.

When Jake entered the shed through the open door, it took his eyes a few seconds to adjust from the bright sunshine to the gloominess inside. He looked around, trying to see where Kristi had gone, then sensed movement to his right. He turned quickly and could just barely make out her slender frame standing a few feet away. As his eyes slowly adjusted to the darkness, he saw she was leaning against the far wall, her hands moving sensually over her tits. He took a step toward her, his footsteps sounding hollow on the wooden floor. She remained where she was, watching him approach, her excitement growing with each step he took.

“Well, little girl,” he said with a lustful grin, “what are you doing alone in the dark?”

She looked up at him as he stopped in front of her, then her eyes dropped to his jeans and she reached out to unfasten them. She looked back up at him as her fingers deftly undid the button and lowered the zipper. He reached out and cupped her breast over her top but she gently removed his hand and shook her head.

“Later,” she said as she reached into his open jeans and wrapped her fingers around his growing erection. He gave her a curious look and she slid down the wall until her face was level with his protruding member. With a look up at him, she moved her mouth to the tip and gave it a long lick, her eyes never leaving his face. He gasped and watched her as she licked her lips, then took him into her mouth, murmuring contentedly. He moaned and closed his eyes as her warm, wet mouth enveloped his hard cock. She began to move her head back and forth, holding one hand on his butt for balance as she stroked the base of his shaft with the other. Her technique had definitely improved and it wasn’t long before he felt the warmth spreading to his balls and knew he was about to unload into her sucking little mouth.

“Oh shit, Kristi,” he gasped, resting a hand on her head. “I’m gonna cum!”

That only fueled her desire and she began to move faster, her tongue rolling along his length as her mouth worked back and forth. She felt his body tense and braced herself to receive his load. He let out a low groan and she felt him release his hot seed into her mouth. She swallowed it immediately, then quickly made short work of the remainder of his cum. She took a few moments to make sure she cleaned him up properly, then pushed herself back up, licking her lips and smiling.

“Wow,” he said as he fastened his pants. “What brought that on?”

She shrugged and wiped a small drop of cum from the corner of her mouth. “I just felt like doing it. You didn’t mind, did you?”

He chuckled and kissed her. “Hell no!”

She laughed and slipped out from between him and the wall, turning to him. “Well, come on then. Let’s go find a spot to build a cabin!” She took his hand and they went back out into the warm sunshine.

As they walked toward the trees, neither said anything, both reliving what they’d done in the shed. They stepped into the shade of the trees and had just started down an old trail when Jake stopped and took off the small backpack he had slung over one shoulder. He unzipped a small side pocket and retrieved a baggie containing several joints. He looked up at Kristi and grinned. “Let’s change the day,” he said as he lit one up. She watched him inhale deeply, then passed it to her. As they smoked it, Jake told her about the place he had in mind. It was in a small valley between two low hills where a small stream flowed on its way to the creek. “It should be perfect,” he said as he took one last pull off the roach before grinding it into the ground with his toe. “We’ll have water and the cabin will be partially hidden by the hills. And it’s only a short hike from the road.”

Kristi nodded, her head spinning from the weed. As usual, it was very good stuff and she had a pretty good buzz happening. Jake looked over at her and laughed. “Wow, you look wasted!” he joked.

She grinned at him and playfully slapped his arm. “So do you!”

His laughter faded and their eyes met. The next thing Kristi knew he was kissing her, his tongue probing into her mouth. She welcomed the intimate kiss, returning it with the same passion. When they pulled apart, Jake looked down at her and caressed her long hair.

“I have an idea,” he said, giving her a peck on the forehead. He grinned at the cute brunette, his eyes sparkling. “Why don’t we do this in the buff?”

She gave him a curious look. “You mean get naked? Here?”

“Sure, why not?” He chuckled as he scanned her sexy body. “It’s not like we haven’t seen each other naked before.”

She giggled nervously. It did sound like fun, but she had some reservations. “What if someone sees us?”

He laughed. “No one ever comes here…it’s all private property. You did it at the creek where there was a much better chance of getting caught, so what’s the big deal?” He grasped his shirt. “Come on, I dare ya!”

She studied him for several long seconds before her own face broke out into a wide grin and she nodded. “All right.” She took the bottom of her top in her hands and met his eyes, then they both pulled off their shirts. Jake had nothing on under his shirt, of course, but Kristi was wearing her bikini under her clothes. Her firm breasts strained at her bikini top and her nipples left very prominent bumps in the fabric. Acting swiftly, before she changed her mind, he undid his jeans and pulled them off, hopping on one foot as he worked them over his sneakers. Kristi watched him for a second, then unfastened her own jeans and slid them down. She felt a rush of adrenalin as she took them off and stood up wearing only her socks, sneakers, and bikini.

Jake looked down at her, his cock beginning to show a small tent in his boxers. It sure hadn’t taken him long to recover from her impromptu blow job! She saw his eyes drop down to her tits and looked around as she reached behind her back and untied the string. She lowered it, revealing her small but still very erotic B-cup tits with her hard, stiff nipples protruding from her pink areolae. She felt her face warming and wondered why she was feeling like this. He’d seen her naked before - hell, she’d participated in orgies! Still, the idea of them resuming their hike naked was making her even hornier than she’d been earlier - and she liked it!

He hooked his thumbs under the waistband of his boxers and looked at her. Kristi took a deep breath, holding his eyes, and did the same with her bikini bottoms. As if by some unspoken signal, they simultaneously pulled them down and off and stood facing one another in the woods wearing only socks and sneakers. Jake grinned at her and she couldn’t help grinning back.

“Wow, this feels so cool!” he said.

Kristi nodded, but wrapped her arms around herself and looked around. Despite her nervousness and fear of getting caught, it was very thrilling to be naked outdoors. Sure, she’d done it while camping, but she’d had alcohol to lower her inhibitions. This felt very different.

Jake began putting their discarded clothes into the backpack. Kristi watched him, his sinewy muscles rippling as he stood up and slung the pack over one shoulder. He took a long look at her sexy nude body, then took her hand and led her down the trail.

After about fifteen minutes he stopped and pulled a small hatchet from the backpack. He pointed toward an opening in the thick brush that lined the trail. “In here,” he said, his eyes automatically making a quick scan of her nude body. She was beginning to feel almost comfortable being naked but his lustful look immediately brought back the rush of doing something so taboo. He paused as if thinking, then dropped the backpack and walked over to her, placing his hands on her bare shoulders. She noted that his once semi-hard cock was now back to full hardness, almost touching her lower abdomen. He gave her a sly smile and cocked his head to one side. “You know, I never did properly thank you for that incredible blow job back there.” Before she could respond, he bent over and began to lick and suckle her still hard nipples. She inhaled a deep breath, enjoying the feel of his mouth and tongue on her sensitive nubs.

He kept this up for a few moments, switching from one to the other, then looked into her eyes. He grinned and gave her lips a quick kiss, then dropped to his knees before her, kissing at her stomach and moving his hands around to clutch her ass and pull her closer. He licked her mons and she instinctively parted her legs to allow him access to her now swollen and moist pussy. He moved lower, teasing her clit, then licked back and forth over her engorged labia. Her juices had started to flow when he was working on her tits and now she was practically dripping with wetness. His tongue rolled along her slit, capturing her sweet nectar and sending shivers of pleasure through her young body. When his tongue pushed between the folds of her labia and into the warm wetness of her pussy, she gasped and grabbed a nearby tree for support. He teased her cunt for several seconds, then moved up to her clit. When he began to lick and suck on it, she felt her orgasm build quickly and before long she was moaning loudly as he brought her to fulfillment again and again, until her knees felt weak and she begged him to stop before she collapsed.

He grinned up at her, his face wet from her excretions, then stood up. Her face and chest were both flushed red and she was breathing hard. “There, I feel better now,” he said, licking her cum from his lips.

She managed a smile and leaned in, holding him. “Me too!“ she gasped. He took her trembling body into his arms, holding her until she felt strong enough to stand on her own again. They kissed deeply and she tasted herself on his lips and tongue, reminding her of her and Michelle’s sexual adventure. After a moment, they pulled apart. Jake picked up the backpack and taking her by the hand, they started off through the bushes.

After making their way through the tree and bushes to the spot Jake had chosen, Kristi was beginning to have some second thoughts about naked hiking, and it had nothing to do with embarrassment. While Jake was good about clearing the big branches from their path with his hatchet, she was still getting scratches all over her body from the smaller ones he missed. Only the sight of his naked ass ahead of her and how hot it was to be naked with him like this kept her from asking for her clothes. The oral sex was great and Jake had definitely improved, but she really needed to get fucked. And her anticipation grew with each passing second. If they didn’t reach the place soon, she was going to have to attack and rape him.

Fortunately for Jake, they emerged from the trees a few minutes later and he stood aside to hold a large spruce bough out of the way. She stepped past him and into a small clearing on the bank of a tiny stream. They were in sort of a hollow between two hills at a bend in the stream. The ground was flat and grassy and was big enough for a small cabin and still leave lots of room for outdoor activities.

“What do you think?” Jake asked, walking into the middle of the clearing. He pointed to the stream, which barely had any water running it. “There’s usually more water in the stream. It’s just been so dry this summer.” He pointed to the hills. “We should be well hidden here and the hills will even hide some of the smoke from the stove.”

“Yeah, it’s nice.” She turned to him, nibbling on her lower lip and looking down at his cock, which had reverted to a somewhat limp state. “Maybe we should…try it out. You know, make sure everything works like it should here.” She took a step closer and began to pull on her nipple.

He chuckled, but his face became serious when he saw the look of pure lust in her eyes. “Hmm…yeah…maybe we should.” She stopped and picked up a twig from the grass, then sat down and spread her legs. Her pussy opened up to him, pink and glistening in the sunlight. He felt his cock go from semi hard to rigid in just a few seconds. Kristi watched it rise to attention before her eyes and beckoned him over. He dropped to his knees at her feet and she pushed herself onto all fours, crawling over to him until their faces were almost touching. She gave him a quick peck on the lips, then looked down at his hard cock.

“Mmm…looks like you’re ready.” She gave him a gentle push and he sat down, his cock pointing straight up. She winked at him, then lowered her mouth to his cock and began to suck on it, the taste of his precum filling her mouth. It was turning her on even more to be sucking his cock, but she was already more than ready to be fucked. She planted a soft kiss on the tip, then crawled into his lap, pushing him back until he was lying under her on the grass. She rose up and placed the head of his cock against her opening, then slowly sank down onto him, sighing as his cock filled her needy pussy.

“Oh fuck yes!” she moaned as their pelvises met. She rocked back and forth, rubbing her clit against the base of his shaft. His cock felt so good and she relished the feel of it after waiting so long. It was hard to believe that she’d closed off this part of her life for so long until finally giving up her cherry. Now she couldn’t imagine life without sex!

She leaned down and braced her arms on either side of Jake’s head, her hips rising and falling. Her tits were just above his face and he pulled her down more so that he could capture them in his mouth. The combination of his cock pumping in and out of her pussy and his mouth on her tits was enough to make her cum quickly. She felt it start and release almost before she knew what was happening. It wasn’t a huge orgasm, but never before had it happened that quickly. She only paused for a brief moment as she came, then resumed fucking Jake with renewed vigor.

Jake watched Kristi mount him and sighed as her warm pussy surrounded his cock. When she bent over him, her tits simply looked too delicious to ignore and he began suckling and nibbling on them. He felt her quiver for a moment and her pussy tightened on his dick, but she made no sound and continued to pump his cock as if nothing happened. It felt like she came, but he couldn’t be sure. In any case, he was determined to show her how much better he’d become and concentrated on not cumming too soon. He wanted to have her in every way possible first!

Kristi felt another orgasm starting deep inside her and she knew this one wasn’t going to be a lightweight like the first one. She began to hump hard, driving her pussy down hard on his cock and rocking against the base. She sat up, pulling her tits from his mouth, and braced one hand on his chest, the other on his leg behind her. She threw her head back and began to slam up and down, using her legs for full leverage. Her orgasm built, faster now. Jake’s cock was hitting on a really good spot and she was aware of her moans becoming louder but was powerless to do anything about it. She concentrated on the sensations deep in her womb while using his cock to increase her pleasure.

When she couldn’t take it any longer, she felt her vaginal muscles contract and arched her back, crying out in blissful ecstasy as her orgasm exploded. Wave after wave of pleasure overpowered her senses and she felt a wet release between her legs. She rocked back and forth, her hair swinging into her face as she came again and again, her body gripped in one of the most intense orgasms she’d ever experienced. Finally, after what seemed an eternity, she stopped cumming and her muscles relaxed. She collapsed to Jake’s chest, still shuddering with the occasional aftershock.

Jake watched Kristi’s orgasm with a look of amazement. He felt a flood of warm wetness pour down his cock and balls, soaking his entire genital area. Had her orgasm been so intense that she lost control and peed on him? Whatever happened, she seemed blissfully unaware and continued to cum for what felt like several minutes. Her pussy clamped down so tight on his cock that it effectively prevented him from cumming. He watched her writhe and twist on his cock until she fell to his chest, her skin damp with perspiration and red with exertion. He held her until her breathing returned to a somewhat normal state, then kissed her neck softly.

“Are you ok, Kristi?” he asked in a quiet voice.

She didn’t answer right away, but he felt her shift her position and gasp as his cock moved inside her. Finally she lifted her head and smiled down at him.

“Oh my god!” she gasped. “That was…amazing!”

He smiled and kissed her. “Really?” She nodded and put her face into his neck, kissing him. “Then I guess we need a new rule…no clothes in the woods!”

She giggled, then gasped as his still hard cock shifted again inside her sensitive pussy. “Oh!”

Slowly, she pushed herself up to a sitting position and brushed her damp hair from her face. Her skin was still flushed and she looked like she’d just performed an intense workout. “I’m so sensitive,” she said, inhaling sharply as she moved up and back down slowly on him. “Oh geez…that feels good!”

He still hadn’t cum and he wasn’t through fucking her yet. Reaching up, he grasped her arms and gently rolled her over so that he was on top with her long legs wrapped around him. His cock was still buried in her tortured pussy and she closed her eyes as he withdrew, then pushed back in.

“Mmm…you feel so wet,” he said as he moved in and out slowly, watching her facial expressions change each time he penetrated her to the hilt. She didn’t say anything, just rolling her head from side to side. He continued talking. “I’m gonna fuck you so much, you’ll be begging me to stop.” She moaned softly, still enraptured by her orgasm and the feel of his cock as he pumped in and out of her overly sensitive cunt. While this felt good, he needed more. He wanted to really pound her and drop a huge load inside that pussy, then finish on those perky little tits.

He withdrew from her and she looked up at him as if to ask why he was stopping. He got to his knees and took her legs in his hands, folding them and pushing them to her chest. He’d seen this position in a porno and it looked like fun. Kristi allowed him to manipulate her, not caring what he did as long as he put his cock back inside her quickly. He leaned over her and did just that, sliding into her wet hole easily. She moaned and closed her eyes again, smiling as she was once again filled with hard cock. As he began to move, she felt another orgasm building. It seemed that in this position he was touching on new and very sensitive places. She hoped she’d be able to handle another round.

Jake pushed into Kristi’s tight little cunt and he had to pause part way in. In this position, with her legs together, she felt even tighter and he loved it. He pushed all the way in and began to move, watching as a smile formed on her face. Taking that as a good sign, he started pumping faster, relishing the feel of her tight twat on his throbbing cock.

“You like that?” he gasped. “You like being fucked like this, out in the open? Where anyone could see us?”

Kristi barely heard his words, but acknowledged with a gasping, “Uh-huh!”

He grinned and slammed hard into her. “You little slut!” She cried out and he continued to hammer away at her until her cries became shorter and he felt her body tense in another orgasm. She groaned loudly through clenched teeth and once again he found it difficult to move as her muscles contracted around his cock. Needing to continue, he pulled her legs up, spreading them wide and holding her ankles above his head. This relieved some of the pressure on his shaft and he began to pound away at her mercilessly once again. Her staccato cries became even louder and he soon felt the cum boiling in his balls.

“Oh fuck yeah!” he grunted as he slammed into her over and over. “Get ready…here it comes!” She moaned something he couldn’t make out and he continued to slam into her until her felt the cum surging through his shaft. “Oh yeah!” he cried. He felt a huge load shoot into her waiting cunt, quickly being squeezed out. He withdrew and aimed his spurting cock at her chest, pumping still more sticky white cream all over her tits and stomach.

The sensation of his cumming inside her triggered another orgasm and when he suddenly pulled out, she opened her eyes and looked up in time to see him finish ejaculating onto her chest. She hadn’t been expecting that, but it was so hot!

He finished stroking his cock and remained there, eyes closed and his drooling cock still aimed at her stomach. Still feeling very turned on, she pushed her weakened body up and took his cock in her hand. He opened his eyes and looked down at her as she took his cock into her mouth and looked up at him as she sucked the remaining cum from him and cleaned their combined juices from it.

“W…wow, Kristi,” he exclaimed, stroking her damp hair. “That was so fucking good!”

She released his cock and smiled, nodding. “Yeah…I know…I’ve never cum like that…ever!

He chuckled and lay down next to her. She rolled over and lay her head on his chest, placing a leg over his. “We need to do this again, baby. This naked hiking thing. I mean, look what it leads to!”

She giggled and caressed his chest. “I really liked the way you were talking to me. Calling me a slut, telling me you were going to fuck me.”

He glanced down at her. “Really? Cool…I wasn’t sure if you’d like it or not.”

“Mmmm…” she murmured, “I like it! Where did you learn that?”

He hesitated before answering, not wanting to ruin the moment. “Angie and Michelle,” he finally conceded.

“Right,” she said without a hint of jealousy, “I guess I should have known that. Sorry.” She made a mental note to thank the girls for tutoring him on that and many other things, it seemed!

He kissed her head. “We should all be naked when we’re here. It should be a rule, don’t ‘cha think?”

Kristi lifted her head and grinned at him. “I think that’s a great idea!” She kissed him. “As long as you don’t mind being here with Steve and Artie too. We can’t be selective you know!” Her eyes twinkled.

“Oh yeah…I forgot about that,” he said in a dejected tone.

Kristi laughed and sat up. “Aw, come on! Don’t be so homophobic! If we’re going to have orgies, you’re gonna have to be around them too. It can’t always be just you and us girls!” Jake grunted a response. She reached down and teased his flaccid cock. “Besides, I may want to have two or more guys sometime.” She looked down and gave him a wink. “So you better get over it!”

“Oh geez!” he groaned. “All right, but not if there are no girls here. That’s just gay.”

She laughed. “Come on, stud. It’s getting late.”

They stood up and Jake picked up the backpack. Kristi looked expectantly at him. “What about our clothes?”

He grinned and gestured around. “We’re still in the woods, remember? We can’t be breaking the rules right after we make them, can we?” She giggled and nodded. He put an arm around her and they walked toward the stream. “The road is only a few minutes walk this way,” he said, pointing in the opposite direction from which they’d arrived. He retrieved a roll of orange ribbon form the back pack. “We’ll tie pieces of this to trees so we can find it easily from the road.” He tied one to an overhead branch, then they began the trek to the road.

 

 

 

 

Chapter 86

 

That same morning, Steve awoke at seven am and got to work right after breakfast, hoping an early start would allow him to salvage some of the afternoon. He went in after finishing cleaning the garage around ten-thirty and called Angie, but her mother said she’d gone to the mall with Michelle. He went back out and tackled the lawn, his thoughts on his increasingly anxious feelings about Angie’s lustful behavior. He had to figure out some way to tell her enough was enough without jeopardizing their relationship, or any of the other ones they were involved in. What they had now was fine with him, but he felt if anymore people were brought in, eventually the secret would get out.

The chores hadn’t taken as long as he thought they would and by noon he was downstairs in the shower. He needed to talk to someone about this, preferably a girl to get a female perspective. Michelle was too close to Angie so he couldn’t really talk to her. And while his mother had offered her advice, there was no way in hell he was bringing this up with her! That left only Kristi. While she wasn’t his first choice, she was a friend he’d known for years, and the only available option. He toweled off, got dressed and went upstairs to get some lunch, then got on his bike and rode over to her house.

A few minutes later he leaned his bike against the fence at Kristi’s house and went over and knocked on the back door. As he stood waiting, his thoughts once again drifted to Angie’s suggestion that she hook up with Ashley and he was startled from his thoughts when the door was opened not by Kristi, but her older sister Katie.

“Hey, Steve! Wow, you’re looking good!” the cute sandy-haired girl said with a wide smile.

He was slightly taken off guard and it took him a second or two to respond. “Oh, hey, Katie. How are you?” He couldn’t stop himself from checking her out. She was a little taller than her sister, with the lithe, deeply tanned body that only came from hours of basking in the warm west coast sun. While she didn’t have large breasts, they were larger than Kristi’s and her low cut halter top gave him a nice view of her cleavage. Matched with a very short pair of cut-offs, she was certainly a vision that would’ve made any guy look twice. “Uh…is Kristi home?” he finally managed to stammer.

Katie shook her head, her long hair swaying and falling across her face. She brushed it aside. “No, sorry, she went out with Jake this morning.” Steve frowned and kicked at a pebble. “Hey, why don’t you come in and keep me company? It’ll give us a chance to catch up!”

He looked up as she held the door open for him. “Sure, ok, thanks,” he mumbled as he slipped past her, the scent of her suddenly filling his senses.

“Cool!” she said as she pulled the door closed and followed him into the kitchen. “Go on in and have a seat,” she said, waving toward the family room, “I’ll get us some iced tea.”

Steve returned her smile and went in, taking a seat on one end of the couch. The TV was on with the sound muted. Julia Roberts was arguing silently with some lawyers in Erin Brockovitch. He watched the scene absently, wondering just what he and Katie had to catch up on. He knew her a little as Kristi’s older sister of course, but they were never really friends. She was three years older and while always nice to her younger sister and her friends, she was never really close to any of them. He turned as she came in and passed him a tall glass of iced tea before taking a seat next to him on the couch.

“So, what have you been up to?” she asked, her warm brown eyes taking him in as she crossed her long legs. “You sure look a lot older this summer.”

“Thanks,” he replied, taking a sip from his tea. Katie began talking about how much she was enjoying being home but was also looking forward to getting back to LA. They began talking about universities and what California was like and soon he began to relax. Unlike Kristi, Katie was very open and loved to chat. Steve supposed that until now, she hadn’t considered him old enough to relate to. But now she was talking to him like someone her own age, and he wasn’t missing her subtle looks when she thought he wasn’t watching. He’d learned a lot about girls in the past few weeks and he knew when he was being sized up.

Gradually the talk turned to Mason and Kristi, and the rest of his friends. Katie told him Kristi seemed to be a lot more at ease this summer. When she said that, Steve caught a twinkle in her eye and felt his face getting warm. “I finally got her to tell me what happened to make her…um, a little less tight-assed,” Katie said before taking a sip from her glass. Her eyes studied him as she took a drink.

“Oh?” he said, taking a sip of iced tea and trying to sound nonchalant.

“Mmhmm,” she replied, still watching him. “So tell me, Steve…” She paused. “…are you the guy who took her cherry? Or was it Jake?”

Steve nearly choked on his tea and forced himself to look over at the sexy girl next to him on the couch. During their conversation she’d turned to face him, folding one leg under her. She was watching him with a serious look on her face, but her eyes were sparkling mischievously.

“I…uh…” he stammered, feeling his face getting even hotter.

Katie laughed and set her glass down on the coffee table, giving him an even closer look at her cleavage as she leaned forward. “Relax, I’m just teasing you!” she exclaimed. He relaxed somewhat, but was still sitting very still. She leaned in closer, so close he could feel her breath on his cheek. “I only asked because she told me the first time wasn’t that great, but the next time was with a different guy and he was incredible!” She moved closer. “Now, she wouldn’t say who either guy was, but I know you’ve both dated her.” Her hand moved to his leg. “So tell me Steve, were you the first guy to fuck my little sister, or are you the one who really rocked her world?” Her hand moved higher and he felt his cock respond.

“I…I wasn’t her first,” he managed to say.

Katie moved her hand to where his cock was starting to push against his shorts. “But you did fuck her, right?” He managed to nod and she moved even closer, so that her firm breasts pressed against his arm. “I’m curious…how someone your age could be so good in bed,” she whispered, her lips brushing against his ear. “Did you have a good teacher? Or are you just a natural? Hmmm?”

Steve shook his head, watching as her hand began to stroke back and forth over his growing erection. Suddenly, his shorts were feeling very constrictive. “I…I don’t know,” he gasped.

She turned his head to face her. “Then why don’t you show me.” She kissed him, her soft lips pressing against his, her tongue snaking into his mouth. They kissed long and deep until she pulled away and reached for her top. She slowly lifted it over her head and tossed it to the floor, revealing her completely tanned and beautiful tits to him. She cupped each one, her fingers rubbing her stiff nipples. “I haven’t gotten laid since I came home and I really need some cock!”

Steve took a look at her gorgeous tits and the look of wanton desire in those pretty eyes. What the hell, if Angie could have sex with other girls, so could he. He reached out and began to caress and knead her tits as they kissed again.

After a few moments, Katie pulled away and began unfastening his shorts. He welcomed the release as his fully hard cock was freed from the confines of them and lifted up so she could take them down and off, followed swiftly by his boxers. She looked down at his hard cock and back up to him, licking her lips and grinning.

“Wow, not bad!” she exclaimed as she slid to her knees in front of him. He watched as she grasped his cock and began to pump it slowly. Then she bent over and he felt her mouth encircle his head, her tongue moving over it and her silky hair spilling across his stomach and thighs. He moaned his approval and she took him deeper, her tongue continuing its sensual movements. She was obviously no novice to giving head and he leaned back as she began to bob up and down, her hand stroking him at the same time.

“Oh fuck!” he breathed. Her mouth was so wet and she was sucking him so hard it felt like he was fucking a very tight, wet pussy. The sensations she was creating were very quickly bringing him to the point of no return and he gently reached down and lifted her mouth from his throbbing penis. She looked up at him. “Katie…you’re going to make me…”

She smiled and caressed his wet shaft. “Isn’t that the idea?” She dropped down and kissed the sensitive tip. “Let me finish you.” Before he could say anything, she’d swallowed over half of his cock, sucking noisily. He leaned back and closed is eyes. If she wanted it, who was he to argue?

She continued her same technique, her warm mouth engulfing his cock tightly as she moved up and down; in and out. It wasn’t long before he felt the familiar feeling and knew he was getting close.

“Oh fuck…I’m gonna cum!” he gasped, his hand gripping her hair.

“Mmmmph” she mumbled, and increased her pace. He felt the cum rising in his balls and thrust upward involuntarily. She accepted him without missing a beat and as he felt the cum surging through his shaft, he let out a low guttural groan and came hard in her mouth. She murmured contentedly and continued to suck the jism from his balls, swallowing it as she did. When he was finally spent, she pulled her lips from the sensitive knob and kissed it a few times before looking up at him.

“Mmmm…that was fun. You lasted longer than most guys do.” She winked. “I’m told I give very good head!”

He managed a grin and nodded. “No argument here!”

She giggled and stood up. As he caught his breath, she unfastened her cutoffs and began to slowly and sexily wriggle the tight shorts over her sensual curves. She turned around and he watched as her beautiful ass was revealed to him. She had on a very tiny thong under it and both cheeks were bared to him. She paused in her strip-tease so he could knead and fondle her firm ass. When he slipped a finger between her legs, he could feel the heat from her excited twat and the wetness on the small patch of fabric that covered it. She moaned softly and parted her legs slightly so he could continue for a few moments, then turned around to face him again. She was holding her breasts, her shorts lowered part way to her knees, with only that tiny little patch of white fabric covering her pussy. The thong was so wet that her lips could be seen through the nearly translucent material and he noted she was completely shaved. He looked up into her pretty face and knew instinctively what to do.

He reached out and grasped her hips, pulling her closer, then leaned in and licked the wet cloth of her thong, tracing the outline of her excited pussy with the tip of his tongue. She moaned and her hand dropped to his head as she pushed herself tighter to his mouth.

“Oh fuck yes!” she hissed through clenched teeth.

Steve’s hands went to her shorts and he tugged them down until she kicked them off. Without pausing, he pulled her thong down and inhaled the sweet fragrance of her pussy. She bent over to remove her thong and he immediately moved back in, clutching her ass and pulling her to him. As his mouth closed over her pussy, she parted her legs and began to rock her hips against him. He licked at her outer lips, then pushed inside, parting her inner labia and delving into her hot, wet hole. Katie’s moans grew louder and his tongue darted and twirled inside her sweet pussy. When he moved up and began to nibble and suck on her clit, her body began to tremble. Her breathing became shallow and he could hear a small strangled sound coming from her. Then, with a long release of a held breath, she came, but without a loud cry. He could hear only a small gasp and whimper, but her pussy gushed sweet love juice into his mouth and her body shuddered and shook. He lapped up all of her nectar until she finally pushed him away and flopped down next to him on the couch, her flushed chest heaving and her tits swelling with each breath. The sight of her after he’d made her cum was all it took to bring his cock back to life.

She looked over at him and smiled sleepily. “Wow…you’re very good at giving head too!” She took his hand and pulled him closer. His face was wet with her juices, but she kissed him anyway, long and deep. By the time they finished their kiss, he was back to full functionality. She looked down at his hard cock and smiled. “Mmmm…time for round two?”

He grinned. “Round two? We haven’t finished round one yet!” With that, he pulled her up into a sitting position, then motioned for her to kneel over the arm of the couch. She complied with a small smile, her pussy lips poking between her legs as she knelt over and presented her ass to him. “You said you wanted some cock, so here it is!” He knelt on the couch and placed his hands on her waist, then guided the tip of his cock to her swollen pussy. He rubbed it up and down her wet lips, causing her to rock and push back against him, a low moan escaping her lips.

“Please…” she panted, looking back over her shoulder at him, “…please fuck me now!”

He grinned at her pleading words and applied pressure, forcing the tip of his cock into her wet snatch. She let out a small yelp of pleasure and lowered her head, grinding back against him. The feel of her hot pussy gripping his cock made him pause for a second and he resisted her attempts to force him in deeper. She moaned louder and begged him to go deeper, but he held her firmly, enjoying her pleas.

“Tell me you really want it, baby,” he growled. “Tell me how much you need my cock!”

“Oh god…please….I need your cock so bad!” she gasped, looking back at him again. Her eyes held a look of lust that was unmistakable and he loved teasing her like this. Imagine, he was only sixteen and this hot college chick was begging him to fuck her! He pushed in a little deeper and her pussy walls gripped his cock. He could feel the muscles of her tight vagina flexing on his cock and the feeling was incredible! He drove all the way in, unable to resist the hot tightness of her any longer. She groaned when he bottomed out and lifted her head, arching her back.

“Oh fuck yes!” she gasped. Steve didn’t move for a few seconds, the sensation of her rippling vagina trying to milk the cum from his balls. She began to rock her ass against him and he slowly withdrew and pushed back in. She looked back at him, her eyes wild. “Oh yeah, baby…fuck me!”

He began to move at a slow but steady pace once the initial urge to cum had passed. There was no way he would’ve lasted more than a few strokes if she hadn’t blown him first. She moved with him, her toned body rolling sensually as they fucked slowly. Gradually, they began to pick up the pace and after a few minutes, Steve was hammering hard into her. His grunts mixed with her moans and the couch shook with the force of their thrusts. Without thinking, he reached out and grabbed her hair, giving it a pull. She let out a mewling cry and pushed back harder against him, grinding her ass against his groin as his cock was buried inside her. Katie was moaning almost non-stop and he sensed she was about to cum. Sure enough, a few seconds later he felt her pussy clamp down on his shaft, making her already tight cunt feel even tighter. She shuddered and dropped her head down, but otherwise made no sound. He continued to fuck her as hard as he could until she gasped and groaned and he heard a small yelp as she came again.

This time, he did slow down. Watching this sexy girl cum was almost the final straw and he nearly blew a huge load inside her steamy pussy. But he didn’t know if she was on the pill and was hesitant to cum inside her. Besides, she seemed to enjoy the rough sex and dirty talk. It would be so fucking hot to explode all over her pretty face.

When she came down from her second orgasm, he withdrew and turned her to face him. She sat on the couch and looked up at him as he stroked his hard cock, glistening with her juices. “Where do you want it?” he asked.

Her face was still flushed and her hair was damp along her brow. She looked so fucking sexy sitting there with her pussy swollen and red and her nipples hard. She looked down at his hard cock, then back up to him.

“Wherever you want,” she said in a low, submissive voice.

He grinned. “Then suck my cock until I’m ready, then I’m gonna cum all over your face.”

She nodded and leaned forward, taking his cock in her hand before slipping it into her mouth. Steve sighed as she began to suck him the same way she had earlier. Her mouth felt so good he began to feel the buzz in his balls almost right away.

“Oh fuck yeah,” he gasped. She began to move faster and he knew it was only a matter of seconds. He waited until he was about to blow, then pushed her head away. “Oh yeah…!” he groaned as he aimed his cock at her open mouth and pumped it. A second later, he came hard, shooting his creamy jism all over her face and into her mouth. He kept stroking his cock until he was finished, then pressed it to her cummy lips. She licked some of his seed from her upper lip then took the sensitive tip into her mouth, sucking on it until she’d collected all of it. She sat back, looking up at him, his cum running down her face and hanging from her nose and chin in long strings. She looked incredibly sexy like that!

“Nice,” he said, wiping a gob from under her left eye. She took his hand and sucked it from his finger, all the while watching him. She took his finger from her mouth and licked at her lips again, collecting some more of his sticky seed.

“Wow,” she said with a sexy smile, “…you really are pretty fucking good!”

He felt his face flush. “Thanks…you too. Were you…doing something when we were…you know, fucking? I could feel you squeezing me.”

She laughed and stood up, wiping another gob of cum from her nose. “You like that, huh? Maybe I’ll teach my little sister how to do it!” She kissed him quickly. “I’ll be right back…I think I need to clean up a little.” He watched her cute little ass as she went down the hall to the bathroom, then chuckled and began to get dressed.

When she came back a few minutes later, she was still naked. Her face glowed from the scrubbing and she looked so hot he felt his cock trying to respond once again. She picked up her clothes and began to get dressed, pulling on her top first. She picked up her thong, then looked at him and tossed it to him, grinning. “Something to remember me by,” she said with a wink as she pulled on her tight shorts.

Steve put the sexy panties to his nose and inhaled her musky scent before putting them in his pocket with a smile. “Thanks.”

She took a seat next to him and lay a hand on his leg. “My sister’s one lucky chick to have a guy like you,” she said.

“Well, actually, I’m kinda seeing someone else,” he replied. “She’s with Jake now.” Appearances had to be kept up, right?

Katie moved her hand up to his crotch and gave his cock a quick squeeze. “Then she’s one lucky chick!” she said with a little laugh. “Hey, look…I’m gonna be in town for another week.” She leaned in and gave him a kiss on the lips. “I’d love to hook up again, if you want.”

He smiled and nodded. “Yeah, that’d be great!”

“Cool,” she said, giving him one last rub. She looked over at the clock. “Kristi could be home soon,” she said. “Maybe you better go.”

He nodded in agreement and they both stood and walked to the back door. He turned and kissed her one more time. “This was great, Katie.” He paused, then added, “Um…I don’t think there’s any need to mention this to anyone, ok?”

 

She giggled. “You can relax, Steve. I don’t think my kid sister needs to know I balled her boyfriend! I won‘t say anything.” She touched his arm as he opened the door. “But I was serious about doing this again. Would that be ok?”

He hesitated, then nodded. “Yeah, sure. But we have to be careful.”

She thought for a minute. “Kristi and Mom are going out tomorrow for the afternoon.” She smiled seductively. “I’ll be all alone.”

He thought for a moment, then nodded. “I have to work until one, but I can come over right after that. I’ll just say I had to stay later.”

“Awesome,” she said as he went outside, “It’s a date then.” She grinned. “A fuck date!”

He laughed and with a final wave, hopped on his bike and pedaled down the driveway toward home. He did feel a pang of guilt about cheating on Angie, but they did have an open relationship. At least that’s how she saw it. He decided there was no reason to say anything about it though. Katie was leaving in a week anyway. What would be the point of risking what he had with Angie and the others over nothing more than a roll in the hay? He rode home, thinking of how tight she’d been. He was beginning to get hard again just thinking about fucking that hot little pussy again tomorrow!

 

 

 

 

Teasing Sister

realstories on Incest Stories

I wiped the sleep off my eyes as I slowly woke up from my afternoon nap.  I decided that I needed a shower to fully wake up.  Normally I wouldn’t give a care but my Mom was coming over to my apartment to drop off my 14 year old brother.  My parents had decided that they badly needed a secluded vacation so they decided to leave my brother to the only free nanny in the world.  Lucky me. 

I unclasped my bra; letting my D cup pear shaped breasts come free.  I’m sure in a couple of decades my boobs might start to sag down to my stomach but for now at the prime age of 20 they seemed to defy gravity and surely were the picture of perfection in any man’s m

Read More
ind.  I played with my mid-sized nipples for a bit before I ran my fingers down my toned tummy and peeled my thin white under wear off.  My small clean shaved pussy stared at the mirror.  I then turned around and revealed to the mirror what every man who has ever met me has been begging to see, my perfect bum. 

My butt developed very early in my life, it was always pretty big but by no means fat or saggy.   Because of this I learned very early in life how to use my prized possession to get what I wanted.  In high school I could get any grade I wanted simply by wearing tight pants and “dropping my pencil” in front of certain male teachers.  To add to my natural asset, ever since I moved out of my parents house I’ve been working out pretty relentlessly to shape my ass as perfectly as possible.  It truly is my pride and joy.

I entered the shower and turned on the hot water.  After a long hot shower I toweled off and applied lotion to my entire body.  I put my silky blonde hair up into a loose bun when the doorbell rang.  I quickly put on some tight pants and a small t-shirt and left my thong on the counter.  I went to go answer the door.

“Hey Carly!” said my Mom cheerfully

“Hey Mom.” I said, not quite as cheerily “Hey Dave.” I said to my little brother.

He smiled

My mom and I talked for a bit before she decided she needed to go home and get ready for her flight.

“Bye kids, see you in a week.” My mom said “and thank you so much for taking care of Davie.”

“No problem Mom, have a good trip!” I replied

She left.  I turned to David and asked if he wanted to watch some T.V. He said yes so he started watching basketball while I started making dinner. 

I always loved Dave, he wasn’t the typical annoying little brother.  Because of the age difference between us there wasn’t much fighting that went on when we were little, but there also wasn’t much talking either.  I always thought of him kind of as a cute little baby.  His chubby body and rosy cheeks just reinforced the image.

As I was cutting some veggies I swear I saw Dave staring at my chest out of the corner of my eye.  I Iooked down at my chest and found out why he was staring, my shirt had rode down super low and my tits were practically popping out of my shirt.  Him staring didn’t really bother me as I was used to having boys ogle at me but the fact that it was my own little brother was a little weird.  I looked up quickly and looked back down at the veggies, he was definitely staring.  I didn’t tell him not to, and even though I easily could have, I found myself unable to fix my shirt. 

I felt a strange sensation knowing that my little brother was ogling me.  I cut some more vegetables before fixing a salad and serving it alongside some hamburgers.

I sat down across the table from Dave at my small dining table.  I propped my shirt a bit lower and sat with good posture so my breasts stuck out a bit more.  I glanced up, his eyes were fixated on my tits, he looked away when he saw me look up but sure enough next time I looked he was ogling my chest once again.  I made some conversation to see how he would react

“So you’re done school for the year, excited for summer?”

He tried his hardest to stare at my eyes instead of my chest

“Um yeah.” He answered.  Clearly he was distracted.  I continued.

“So high school next year, you should be excited, a lot of good looking older girls.” I winked

This kind of brought him out of his trance and he got a sad look on his face

“Yeah I guess but I’m not really good with girls anyways.” He answered shyly

“Aw don’t worry, most boys your age are awkward with girls, you’ll learn.”

He smiled and continued eating dinner.  A short while later I heard a crack.  I looked up, David accidentally knocked over his juice.   The juice was spreading all over the table and the glass landed on the floor and shattered.

“Shit sorry!” He said in a panicky voice

“Don’t worry I’ll get it.  Don’t move you might cut yourself.” I instructed. I grabbed a wash cloth and I spotted another opportunity to tease my poor little brother.  I walked up behind him and reached over his shoulder with the washcloth.  My breasts were rubbing against his head as I scrubbed the table.  I felt strangely pleased with myself as I caught a glimpse of his raging boner through his pants. 

He cautiously turned his head so that my boobs were rubbing against the side of his face.  I pretended not to notice and continued scrubbing the table very thoroughly.  When it finally couldn’t get any cleaner I put the wash cloth down and grabbed the broom to clean up the glass shards on the floor.

This is where I planned on unleashing my primary flirtation device.  I scrunched up the fabric of my already skin tight yellow pants into my butt cheeks.  I told my brother to scooch his seat back so I could clean up the glass.  I bent down in front of him so my ass was facing him.  As I did this I swear I heard a moan from David as if my butt was making him explode on sight!  I made sure I took my time as I swept the glass shards.  After I got most of the big shards I got down on all fours and stuck my ass out as I looked for the smaller pieces.  Finally I got up, I looked back as I walked away towards the garbage can.  His eyes were fixated on my ass as I walked away, his mouth was wide open and his hand was on his crotch.  Poor kid, I thought to myself, he didn’t know what hit him. 

I washed the dishes.  David just sat in his chair and looked at my behind.  I didn’t stop him.  Finally when I finished I said

“Dave it’s getting late, I’m going to go to sleep, so I want you to brush your teeth and then you can watch T.V as late as you want.”

“Ok thanks Sis.  Good night.” He smiled

“Good night kiddo.” I replied   

He scampered into the bathroom and took a unusually long time in there. 

He came out 10 minutes later, flashed me a smile and once again said goodnight.  I went into the bathroom to wash my face and brush my teeth.  My panties were still on the counter, I guess I forgot all about those.  I picked them up and noticed that my thong was covered in cum!  That little bugger just jerked off with my panties!  It was a little weird; I guess my little bro wasn’t as innocent as I thought he was.  I shrugged it off; I mean who could blame him after the show I put on. 

After washing my face I went to bed.  I tried getting to sleep but all I could think of was the thought of my little brother in my bathroom jerking off with my thong.  It really turned me on.  This creeped me out, I mean I could get any guy I wanted so why was the thought of my chubby little brother turning me on?  I decided that it was probably because I haven’t had sex for a couple weeks since my boyfriend and I broke up.  This didn’t clear my mind for long as soon the thoughts in my head had evolved to fucking my brother instead of just teasing him. 

I peeled my pants off and stuck my index finger in my pussy.  I let out some soft moans as I masturbated to the thought of fucking David.  I imagined him fucking me hard and long.  I let out more moans.  I feared that Dave would hear me but at the same time I wanted him to.  Finally my flood gates opened and I had an intense orgasm, more intense than usual.  I put my pants back on and eventually I drifted off to sleep.

The next day I got up and walked out into the living room.  Dave was sound asleep.  I was still horny and I had an idea of what might satisfy me for the moment.  I walked into the bathroom and left the door open.  I dropped a bottle of shampoo on purpose.  I looked at David, he was still asleep.  So I picked it up and dropped it again along with the conditioner bottle.  He started to stir.  The couch was positioned so someone sitting on it could see into the bathroom if the door was open.  I faced the mirror, giving him a side view of me.  I looked out of the corner of my eye, David was definitely watching.  I took off my shirt slowly; revealing a fairly modest black bra.  I stood still for a second, I could hear him panting.  It was obvious he was very excited.  I reached back and unhooked my bra and let it fall to the floor.  This let my big round breasts free.  He got a very good side view of my boobs and could probably make out my right nipple.  My nipples stood hard with excitement.  I stood there, pretending to inspect them in the mirror.  I lifted my left breast up and let it fall, then I did the same to the right.  I alternated doing this before I squeezed them both simultaneously.  His breathing was getting louder.  After playing with my tits in front of the mirror I started peeling off my pants.  I turned so my butt was facing him.  I dropped my pants, exposing my naked ass to him.  Lucky kid, it was the first girl’s ass he’s seen in his life and it was one of the sexiest asses known to mankind.  I stepped out of my pants.  I bent down and picked them up as long with my bra and put them on the counter.

I reached around and grabbed my butt cheeks and started massaging them.  I split my cheeks and put them back together a number of times.  I gave David every view of my ass he could possibly want to see.  Finally I entered the shower.  I was so horny that I started masturbating in the shower.  I imagined David coming into the shower, grabbing me and fucking me like crazy. 

After masturbating and thoroughly washing up in the shower I turned off the water and stepped out of the shower.  I looked out of the corner of my eye, Dave was still watching intently.  I grabbed my towel and slowly dried off every inch of my body.  I finally covered up by wrapping the towel around my body and I walked out the bathroom.  Dave instantly ducked his head down and pretended to be fast asleep.

I didn’t bother putting anything on except the towel as I walked into the kitchen and started working on lunch as it was already 1 pm.  I made some hot dogs.  I ate mine and left some for Dave.  I walked up to Dave and tried waking him up.  His eyes were closed shut; it was obvious he was faking.  I shook his shoulder a bit with my hand until he opened his eyes.

“Good morning Davie, I made hot dogs.”

“Oh ok, thanks a lot sis.”

“Alright eat up quickly, lets hit the beach after.”

“Yeah sure.” He replied

“Ok I’m going to go get ready.”

I walked into my room and searched for an appropriate bikini.  Living in a beachside apartment, I had accumulated quite the bathing suit collection.  But I have a certain knock out bikini I wear when I try to pick up guys or go out on a date. 

It was a skimpy yellow string bikini.  The top was a full bra size too small.  I put its small cups around my breasts and tied the strap around my neck.  It squeezed my D cup breasts together and brought them higher up so they looked even perkier.  The thong was extra small.  I pulled it over my ass and it simply sank between my luscious ass cheeks; just the way I liked it. 

I spent a very long time doing my makeup and I tied my hair neatly into a bun.  I walked out of my room. 

“David you ready to go?”

He looked at me; it took him a while to fathom a response.  He stuttered

“Um um yeah, let me just get my trunks on.

He came out about 10 minutes later in swim trunks and a t-shirt.  He probably jerked off again so he wouldn’t get hard on the beach.

“You seriously aren’t going to wear a shirt to the beach are you?” I asked “Come on take it off.”

He cautiously took off his shirt.  He had a bit of a, but it wasn’t too bad, I thought it made him look cute.

“Ooh sexy” I laughed

He smiled

 

We walked to the beach.  It was a nice day so there were quite a few people.  I was getting a lot of sexual looks from males and dirty looks from their partners, but I didn’t mind.  I liked the attention.

I set down my purse and laid down a towel.  It was in the dead center of the beach so there was quite a crowd around of us.  I was getting ready to lie down when I heard David whimper.  I looked at him, he was looking across the beach, there was a group of 4 boys who were all rather big, and they were walking towards us.

“David what’s the matter?” I asked

“Those guys, have made my school year hell.  They bully me all the time.  We should leave.” He was panicking.

“It’s ok, I have an idea, just follow my lead.” I reassured.

I grabbed David’s hand.  They came closer.

“Who let this whale on the beach.” One of them said while the others laughed.

David’s cheeks turned bright red.

“Look how red this fag’s cheeks are getting.” Another laughed

I intervened

“Um you losers should leave.” I said

This shut them up momentarily as their attention turned to me.  They eyed my body for a bit before on said

“Who are you?” both in a angry and somewhat turned on voice

“I’m Carly, Dave’s girlfriend.” I said confidently

Their jaws dropped.  I looked at David, he was shocked at first but he went along with it.”

“Why don’t you ditch the zero and get with the hero.” One of the boys said

“Ew don’t make me throw up you sleaze ball.  And trust me Dave’s more man than you’ll ever be.  Now if you’ll excuse us.”

I leaned brought my lips to David’s and kissed him.  I opened his lips and slipped my tongue in his mouth.  This was probably his first kiss and it showed.  He was a terrible kisser; his tongue was all over the place.  I looked up at the boys, they were somewhere between disgusted and turned on.  Disgusted that a boy like David got an older sexy girl like me and turned on by seeing me in action.  They slowly walked away, I continued frenching with Dave.  He brought his hand and placed it on my right breast, he put his other hand on my ass cheek and squeezed it. 

He rubbed my breast through the fabric.  I didn’t object, and continued kissing.  Seeing that he could go farther he smacked my butt and started pulling at my top.  He reached underneath my bra and let his hand rest on my bare breast.

I thought I should put a stop to this now, I didn’t want to cause too much of a scene in the crowded beach. 

I withdrew my tongue from my little brother’s mouth and whispered

“Davie they’re gone.”

“Oh right.” He said, his hand was still resting on my bare breast.  He slowly withdrew his hand from my bra, his cheeks once again reddened.  I gave him a reassuring smile which made him relax a bit.

I looked down, he was rock hard.

I lied down onto my towel and started working on my tan.  I looked at David; he seemed kind of disappointed and bored.  I realized that there was nothing really for him to do here, I come almost daily to work on my tan and by the looks of his pale white stomach he didn’t have any interest in tanning.  So I came up with an idea to give him something to do.

“Davie can you apply some lotion on my back?” I asked

“Sure!” he said very excitedly

He fished the tanning lotion out of my purse.  I lied down on my belly and relaxed. 

“Make sure you get every spot.” I said.  I could feel his excitement.

He squirted some lotion on my upper back and started massaging it on my shoulders.  It felt really good.  He put some on the back of my neck, but stumbled a couple times on my strap.

“Here.” I said.  I reached around and untied the strap, I felt an instant release of tension on my breasts.  He finished up my neck and returned to the shoulders.

He slowly started working lower the mid back.  As he bent over my body I felt his hard boner poking my bare ass cheek.  He started working my lower back.  He skipped over my ass and went to my feet.  I guess he wanted to save the best for last.

He got every crevice of my feet, even between the toes.  He skimmed over my ankles and started spreading the lotion over my long smooth legs.  He did one leg at a time; taking careful time to massage my calf and thigh muscles. 

Then he got to my ass, he rubbed each ass cheek lightly with each hand.  He squirted a bunch of lotion straight from the bottle onto each one of my ass cheeks.  He started spreading it slowly and carefully.  He spread the lotion to each crevice of my ass.  When it was all spread he started lightly massaging; squeezing each cheek with open palms.  He started massaging more deeply.  I didn’t object.  He split my cheeks apart and pushed my thong in between them, and then squished them back to each other.

“Um Carly, should I keep massaging you?” He asked

I didn’t know how to answer this.  I wanted him to keep having his way with my ass but I didn’t want him to know that I wanted to fuck him.  So I pretended I fell asleep.  He nudged me a couple times.

“Carly?”

He concluded I was fast asleep.  He paused for a second then returned to massaging my ass.  He split my cheeks again and ran his finger over my thong covered crease.  He carefully untied my thong and slipped it off.  He once again squirted some tanning lotion on my ass, this time along my ass crack.  He split my cheeks apart and started working the lotion deep into my butt.  He rubbed lotion on the inside of my cheeks and along my crease.  He circled his finger around my ass hole.  This felt sensational. 

The beach got unusually clouded as it got kind of late, there weren’t too many people around anymore. 

Dave bent over and kissed my right ass cheek.  Then the left.  He put his nose deep in my ass and squished my cheeks together so they squished his nose.  Then he split them apart and took a long and deep whiff of my ass hole. 

“Mmmm” he moaned out loud

Then he left it alone for a bit.  In a minute some more lotion landed on my ass, a lot of it actually.  And it was warm.  I smiled as I realized Dave had just came on my butt. 

“Oh shit.” He said out loud.

He wiped it off with what I think was my discarded bikini bottom. 

Next he got on top of me.  His trunks were back on.  He reached around my stomach and slid his hands up towards my chest.  He grabbed both of my big breasts with open palms and started squeezing.  I let him have some more fun as he molested my breasts with both hands.  He obviously didn’t know how to treat a woman’s breasts as he was squeezing them way too hard.  When it started getting more painful then pleasureful I decided to stop him.

“Davie?” I said groggily

He was speechless as both of his hands were around my body and on my breasts. 

“Oh um hey, you’re awake. Um I was just putting tanning lotion on your chest for you er.” He said nervously

“O ok, thanks darling.” I replied as I pretended I didn’t really know what he was doing.  “What do you say we head home, it’s getting a little late.”

“Um yeah sure. Er I took your bottom off so I could put lotion on your bum properly, so you should put that back on right.”

“Yeah, thanks again.” I replied in cheer.

I tied my bra up again and tied my now cum covered thong over my ass.  I pretended not to notice the cum.  We walked back home.

Dave took a shower when we got home and I changed into a sweater and sweat pants as the night turned cold. 

We had dinner and then talked about what we should do for fun.  I got an idea. 

“Do you know how to play black jack Davie?” I asked

“Yeah, but it gets kind of boring.” He replied

“Not if we make it more interesting.”

“Oh yeah, we should play for money.” He smiled

“Too bad I’m broke!” I laughed “I was thinking more along the lines of stripping.  I play all the time with my friends just for fun, it makes for a real good time.”

“Strip black jack.” He smiled “I like it.”

We sat across from each other at the dining table with a deck of cards lying on the middle of the table.  I dealt.  I had a 7 and a 10.  Hit me; a 7, I went over.  He stayed at 18.  I lost.

“Take off your sweater.” He sneered

I snickered back and took my sweater off revealing a white t shirt. 

Next hand, I went over again.

I took off my shirt revealing a black bra that showed ample cleavage.  David’s breathing quickened. 

I smiled as my next hand I got 20, David decided to stay on 19 and he lost.  I snickered as he took off his t-shirt.

My next hand I got 20 again, but Dave got the lucky 21.  I had to strip.  I took off my sweatpants.  I turned around and playfully wiggled my panty clad butt in front of him.  He smiled.

I won the next hand.  David took his pants off; he was left only in his boxers.  He was trying his hardest to make sure his erection stayed in his boxers. 

Next hand I got stuck on 13, I took another card, it was an 8, I went over.  David stayed at 17. 

His breathing quickened as he knew what was coming.  He would get an unobstructed view of real breasts for the first time in his life. 

I reached around and unhooked my bra, I let it fall to the floor but I kept my arms around my breasts.  I smiled.  He looked on eagerly.  I turned my back towards him and let my breasts fall free.  I put my fingers around my nipples and turned back around.  One by one I took my fingers off my nipples and let him sit in awe of my bare breasts. 

He was so hard now that his dick sprung out of his boxers.  It wasn’t bad for a 14 year old, I would estimate about 5 inches. 

He drooled as he was in a trance with my breasts.

I laughed

“What you’ve never seen boobs before kiddo?” I asked as I already knew the answer.

He just shook his head

I walked over to him, giving him an even better view.  He stared at them for a solid five minutes, he must have memorized every little feature that makes my breasts what they are. 

“Go head, give them a feel.” I reassured

He started squeezing them like he did on the beach.

“Ouch.” I screamed as I removed his hands from my tits.

“Sorry!” he said

“That’s alright.  Here let big sis teach you a few things.  Woman don’t like having their breasts squeezed, we put up with it to please our man but when you squeeze too hard it hurts.  Instead you should play with a girl’s nipples.  That’s a quick way to get her horny.” 

I placed his hand on my right nipple and he started gently playing with it.

“There you go.”

 I sat down on his lap as he continued playing with my nipple.  My nipple turned hard, he instinctively put his hand on the other one and did the same.

“So Sis, your nipples are hard, does that mean you’re horny?”

“Well it’s only natural to get a little excited when someone is playing with your breasts.” I said

This excited him

“Good, so now you know how to play with a girl’s breasts.  Now you need to work on your kissing.” I grabbed his face and brought his closer to mine.  “Here I’ll play the guy’s role, just relax your tongue and notice what I do, then after do the same to me.

I lightly kissed his lips.  I split his lips with my tongue and gently felt the surface of his tongue with mine.  I pressed his tongue lightly down to the floor of his mouth and kept it there.  I explored the roof and gums of his mouth and played a little wrestling game with his tongue.  I withdrew.

“Now do that to me.”

He kissed me and put his tongue in my mouth.  He started off kind of sloppy but he figured it out as he got more practice.  As we started kissing more passionately I took his palm and placed it on my right breast.  He lightly squeezed my breast and played with my nipple.  As me kissed I led him off the chair on to the couch.  We tumbled onto it, I was on top.  Our mouths never separated.  I moved a bit to the side and grabbed his hard cock with my palm.  This caught him by surprise but he continued kissing me.  I stroked it slowly.  Before I could even get going into my usual routine Dave exploded.  We stopped kissing and I started laughing.

“That was the shortest hand job I’ve ever given!”

“Sorry.” Dave said looking kind of dejected

I felt bad

“Aw don’t worry, after all I am 6 years older than you, that is a lot more experience.  Here I know what will cheer you up.  Prepare yourself Davie you’re about to get your first blowjob.”

David was excited beyond belief.

I got on my knees and I spread his legs as he sat up on the couch. 

“Wait Sis, can I video tape this? So I can show it to my friends.”

I smiled

“Well I guess none of your friends know who I am.”

I went and fetched my camera from my room and came back.  I set it up on the chair where it would have a perfect view of the action.

I got back on my knees.  I slipped his boxers off and discarded them.  I brought my mouth to his limp penis and touched the tip with my tongue.  It twitched a little.  I circled his head with my tongue.   Like a snake charmer charming a snake it started to rise slowly.  I wrapped my lips around his head and slowly started moving my mouth up and down his mouth.  He moaned, his cock was fully hard now. 

I sucked faster and faster until he seemed like he was about to cum.  I deep throated his cock and soon he same deep inside my throat.  I swallowed it all and smiled at him.

“How was your first BJ?”

“Amazing…” he said, he was breathing hard.

“Good”

I sat up on his lap.  He reached around and stroked my stomach.

“So do you wanna stop here, or go further?” I inquired

“Further, much further.” He smiled

I smiled, I slipped off my thong and cast it aside.  I turned around and got on my knees on the sofa.  I pushed my chest out towards his mouth, he licked my nipple and then began to suck on it. 

He put his hand around my back and pulled me closer.  I grabbed his other hand and put it on my wet pussy.  He continued sucking my nipple.  I pulled his index finger out and inserted it into my pussy.

“Gently thrust it in and out.”

He did so.

“Mmmm good”

My pussy was getting wetter and wetter.

He instinctively went faster and faster, after a few minutes I couldn’t take it anymore and I had a huge orgasm.

“Ohhhh” I moaned

My body went limp.  I got off of him and lied on the couch.  He got on top of me and we started kissing again.

He whispered in my ear asking to get him hard again.  I rolled over him so I was on top and I slid down towards his limp dick.  I sucked it hard but no luck.  The poor kid came so much today that there wasn’t much left in him.

I wrapped my breasts around his cock and started giving him a boob job.  He moaned.  It was slowly starting to work as his dick turned semi hard after a few strokes.  With a combination of sucking and boob job his dick got rock hard again soon. 

“Sit back Dave, relax, let big sis do all the work.”

I got into cowgirl position, my pussy, dripping wet, was mere inches away from his hard penis. 

“Ready?”

He nodded

I rubbed my clit against on his penis head and slowly I pushed my pussy down on it.  The look on David’s face was one of pure ecstasy.  He was in heaven.  I moved my pussy slowly up and down his dick; he moved his hands out and started massaging my breasts.  I knelt down and gently kissed him.  He slipped his tongue in my mouth and we passionately kissed as we fucked. 

Due to all of the cumming he had done earlier, he was lasting unusually long for a virgin. 

He took control of my body as he stopped kissing me and moved my chest up to his mouth.  He licked my breasts before putting my right nipple in his mouth and sucking on it like an infant.  He moved his hands down my sleek back and rested them on my ass. He started squeezing my ass cheeks as I fucked him. 

All of this sucking and touching was really stimulating me.  I started fucking him faster.  He moaned and I screamed.  I found myself screaming louder and louder than he was.  It wasn’t long before my body started shaking and I came once again.  My body went limp once again and I lied down on his body.  I was still trying to thrust but I didn’t have the energy anymore. 

“Here Sis, let me do something.” He said

He flipped me on to the floor, and got on top of me.  He motioned me to get on all fours.  I did so and spread my legs wide.  He felt up my ass and moaned.  He stood up and split my ass cheeks wide.  He slowly entered my ass hole with his dick.  This made me gasp as it hurt. 

“Ow, Ow.” I screamed

“Please Sis let me do it.”

I agreed

“Ok but be gentle.”

He slowly entered my ass until his entire dick was in there.  Even though he was only about 5 inches the pain was still excruciating, but it felt strangely stimulating too.  He started thrusting in and out of my ass.  He was moaning like crazy, the tightness of my ass was sending him over the edge.  He started thrusting harder, his hands grabbed my hips.

I screamed in pain and pleasure, his moaning was also getting more intense with every thrust.  He put his entire length in my ass and stopped as he came.  I felt my insides getting filled with hot cum, this was a strange sensation.

I lied down on the floor, he fell back.  We were both exhausted.  We both slowly drifted asleep on the floor.

 

I woke up late in the morning.  I opened my eyes, the couch and floor was littered with cum stains, I was naked, and David was nowhere to be seen.  I got up and looked around for him, he was in my room on the computer, fully clothed, looking at our rather hot sex tape from last night.

I smiled

“Hey you.”

“Hey sis, Good morning.”

I walked over to him, sat on his lap and gave him a big kiss.  I looked at the tape, it was at the part where I was on top of his and we were having sex.

“Damn we make for a hot couple.” I laughed

“You got that right.”

I out my arm around him, he fondled my breast quite non-chalantly.

He asked “So what do you want to do today?”

“Well I feel a little icky form last night, how about a shower.”

I led him into the bathroom, he took off his shirt and pants quickly, his hard dick sprung free.  I walked into the shower and turned on the hot water, he quickly followed and jumped in with me.  I turned on the shower. 

He pushed my body against the glass door and started kissing me intensely.  He moved to my breasts and started sucking them while grabbing my ass cheeks.

“My, my, your quite horny today.” I said

“Sis you know you make me horny instantly every time I see you.”

“Mm good, let me take care of that for you then.”

I got on my knees and placed his dick in my mouth.  I started sucking it vigorously as the hot water poured over us.  Dave grabbed the shampoo and poured it on my hair and started rubbing it in.

This made me laugh, but I continued sucking him.  He exploded again, I gurgled the cum out of my mouth and rinsed it out with the water.  I stood up.  He grabbed the soap and started soaping up my breasts and stomach.  I soaped up his dick and started cleaning it. 

He reached around and soaped up my ass cheeks.  He spent a rather long time cleaning my ass.

“Hmm you’ve spent a rather long time on my ass.” I laughed

“Well it did get pretty dirty yesterday.” He replied

As the water turned from hot to warm to cold we decided it was time to step out he dried me off with a towel and I did the same to him.  He put on his clothes.

I walked into my room, he followed. 

I inspected my closet

“Hmm, what should I wear today?” I asked

“Honestly sis, nothing.  Nothing you wear is going to make you look more sexy then you look right now.”

“Awwe” I smiled “Alright.”

I proceeded naked to making some lunch while David watched T.V.  He still couldn’t keep his eyes off of me.

After lunch we decided to watch a movie.  He sat on the couch and I sat on his lap.  I couldn’t have told you what the hell went on in the movie as we spent most of the time making out.

“Dave we should go out and do something.” I said

“Yeah sure, what do you want to do?”

“Um, let’s go to the mall, you could help me pick out a few new bikini’s.” I winked

I put on a small pink tank top and some booty shorts and we went to the mall.  As we walked through the mall Dave held my hand, he wanted people to think that we were going out.  I obliged.  Occasionally we saw more kids from Dave’s school, he walked past them with a new found swagger as he held my hand.  The boys looked envious and girls looked at him in a whole new light.  I was happy I could help him out with his popularity.

We walked into the bikini store and went straight to the skimpiest ones there. 

“Wow look at this one.” David exclaimed

I looked at it

“Wow Dave you can’t be serious.” I laughed

It looked like it was made for a pre pubescent girl but I knew it wasn’t since it was a playboy bikini.  The top was completely string except for two small playboy bunny heads which I guess were supposed to cover the nipples.  The thong was completely string, there was a little more in the front but it would still barely cover my pussy.

I looked at David

“Oh come on Sis, try it on atleast.”

“Alright.” I sighed

I took off my tank top and put on the bikini top.  I laughed as I looked at myself in the mirror.  The pink bunny heads were barely covering my nipples.  But I did like how it pushed my breasts up and together.  Next I tried the thong.  The string completely sank into my round ass cheeks, the front of the thong did manage to cover my small pussy, but just barely. 

I stepped out of the stall and called David over.  His jaws dropped.

“Wow sis, you look amazing.”

“You mean, I look like a slut.” I laughed

“No, you’re way to pretty to be a slut.” He continued “Wow you know when I said nothing you put on could make you look sexier, well I think this does.”

He continued gawking

“Wow I want you now.”

“What David, we can’t, wait until we get home.”

“No, I can’t control myself Sis, you look too good.”

He led me into the stall.  I locked the door.  He reached around to my ass cheeks and began mauling them with his palms.  He licked me up from my chest to my mouth when he started kissing me.  He was really horny. 

He picked me up by my legs and lifted me up.  I was surprised by his strength.  I grabbed the hooks in the stall that were designed to hold clothes.  He whipped out his cock and moved the string covering my pussy to the side.  He started roughly fucking my pussy as he lifted my legs with his arms.  My tits were bouncing around they easily popped out of the bikini top.  I couldn’t help but let out a moan, I loved how Dave was fucking me. 

He started fucking faster, I moaned more, I didn’t care who heard it anymore.  As he fucked me at full speed I’m pretty sure I moaned loud enough for the whole store to hear.  He dropped me on the floor and stuck his dick in my mouth as he was ready to explode.  I sucked it for a few seconds before he exploded deep in my throat. 

“Wow, you’re a quick learner Davie.”

He smiled and put his clothes back on.  I went to change to my normal clothes but David stopped me.

“Sis could you please, leave your bikini on?”

“What? You mean walk around the mall in this?”

“Yeah” he said “Come on, it’s a beachside mall in California, girls walk around here in bikini’s all the time.”

“I don’t think THIS even qualifies as a bikini.” I laughed

“Please Sis, I want everyone to know how hot of a girlfriend I have.”

“Oh ok I guess I can, but you owe me.”

I adjusted the top and thong as much as I could.  I still looked really slutty though.  My pussy was wet from sex and there was a big wet spot on my panties, my nipples were hard and pointing through the top.   We walked out of the stall where there were a couple of pretty girls from David’s school who heard us fucking.  David proudly grabbed my hand and we walked past them. 

I have always been used to getting looks from guys but never to the extent I was getting now as I was walking through the mall in almost nothing.  Guys of all ages were staring at me like never before.  Partly because of how hot I looked and partly because they were wondering how in the world a short chubby kid got me to be his girlfriend.

David made sure we walked around for a long time, he was really enjoying this, and after while I was too.  The burning embarrassment turned gradually turned to fulfilling pride as I enjoyed my new found exhibitionism.  I even accepted the idea of going into a restaurant and grabbing a bite to eat.

At about 5 we left the mall and decided to soak in what’s left of the day at the beach.  It wasn’t as busy as yesterday but there were still quite a few people there.  We found a quiet corner this time because we knew exactly what we were going to do.  I lied down.  David lied beside me and started kissing me on the cheek.  He started massaging my breasts through my top.

“Mm, that feels good hun.” I moaned

Slowly he slid my bra down; revealing my breasts.

“Dave don’t there are way too many people here.”

“Oh come on Sis, not that many people will see you, besides it really turns me on showing your body off to the world.”

I’ve heard this kind of thing from David before

“Come on Dave, let’s go home, I’ll let you fuck the shit out of me there.”

“Carly I wanna fuck the shit out of you here!”

“No Dave we can’t”

He got a dejected look on his face.  I felt bad.

“Fine here, take off my bra, if that makes you happy but we can’t have sex here.”

He joyfully undid my top and tossed it aside; revealing my breasts to the beach.

  I looked around there were some old men looking on gleefully, and some kids playing nearby that got instant boners.

David saw them too; he joyfully played with my boobs knowing that everybody on the beach would like to do what he’s doing.   He played with my nipples.  I just laid back and relaxed as his hands felt pretty good.  He kissed me on the lips and I kissed back.  His left hand stayed on my breasts, his right hand slid down my stomach.  And slowly it slid to my pussy.  He rubbed my pussy.  The wet spot got bigger.  I moaned.  David took this as a green light as he peeled my thong down.

“David no” I gasped

He just shushed me, I really didn’t want to argue and it felt way too good so I let him do what he was doing.

He slid my panties down my legs, off my feet and cast them aside a few feet away where my top laid.  David stuck his finger in my pussy and started fingering me.  I moaned.  As he started going faster and faster I moaned louder. 

Luckily for me a lot of the kids and family members cleared out, but the group of old men were still watching intently. 

David moved put his mouth on my pussy and started licking away.  This felt sensational.  His tongue felt so good in deep in my pussy.

I wrapped my legs around his head as I was ready to orgasm. 

“Ohhhh Davie” I moaned as I orgasmed once again.  He kept his mouth on my pussy as he drank my juices.

When he finished, he lied back down beside me.

“I think were even now.” He whispered

“I think so too.” I laughed

He put my bikini in his bag.  I didn’t object.

He got on top of me and took off his shirt.  I slid down his pants and grabbed his cock.  I wanted it.  He thrust his cock deep inside me.  I moaned.  He did it again, and again as he found his rhythm.  I spread my legs wider and clenched the sand around me.  It was amazing how my 14 year old brother had learned to fuck me better than any of my previous boyfriends.

“Oh Davie” I moaned loudly

My tits bounced up with every blow to my pussy. 

“Fuck me harder” I begged

He did so, and he quickened his rhythm.  Every thrust made me let out a squeal.  He fucked me faster and faster.  He fucked me like an animal.  It was amazing.

He withdrew as he was near cumming, he grabbed my tits and wrapped them around his dick.  Soon he came all over my chest.  I really wanted his cum so one by one I grabbed my breasts and licked the cum off of each.

It was getting late, even the old men left as the show we put on came to an end.  We were both too tired to go home so we decided to spend the night on the beach.

“Good night David, I Love you.”

“Love you too Carly.”

I was in David’s arms; my ass was pushing against his limp penis, his hands slowly massaged my breasts as I drifted to sleep.

I woke up as the sun hit my eyes.  The sight was beautiful; the sun was rising over the ocean.  David was already up and clothed.  While I was looking at the sunrise, he was looking at me.   

“So what do you want to do today Sis?”

I smiled

“Whatever you want babe.”

Family Friend - Part 23

bjcortland on Teen Stories

 

In this installment, Angie and Steve have an embarrassing incident and Artie returns from vacation.

 

Chapter 80

 

That night, Angie took a long bath, the warm water soothing her tender pussy. She toweled off and slipped into her robe, then went down to the basement, pausing to say goodnight to her parents and the O’Connells on the way. This was going to her last night sleeping in the same house as Steve and she was hoping they could at least sleep in the same bed for a time. She was still much too sore for any sex, although she wasn’t going to rule out a blow job.

Steve was sitting on the couch watching some movie when she came downstairs. He looked up as she settled in next to him.

“W

Read More
hat’cha watchin’?”

He shook his head. “Just some western…there’s not much on.” He leaned back and began to tease her damp hair. “Feeling any better?”

She snuggled in closer. “A little, but I’m afraid the puss is off limits for tonight. Sorry, babe.”

He smiled and turned her face to his. “That’s ok…as long as I can be with you. Sex isn’t all we have, you know.”

She smiled and they kissed deeply, lovingly. When they finally pulled apart, she said, “I know, but I just love making love to you.”

He smiled and kissed her again. “And I love making love with you. But I also love sitting here and watching TV with you, kissing you, and just being together and holding you.”

She settled in against him, feeling the warmth of his body as his loving words warmed her heart. Whatever was bothering him earlier seemed to have passed, but she wanted to make sure. “Are you upset that I was flirting with Ashley?”

There was a pause until she looked up at him. “I’m not upset, but do you think it’s wise to bring more people into this?”

She inhaled a breath and released it slowly, mulling that over. “Hmm…you may have a point there. But I have to know if she’s really into me or if I’m just imagining it. Would you mind if I just hooked up with her and didn’t include anyone else?”

He considered this. “Does it really mean that much to you? I mean, you have five lovers already.”

“I know, but there’s something about her…she…reminds me of someone I knew back home.”

He raised his eyebrows. “I thought you told me you’d never been with another girl before Michelle?”

She shook her head. “She was a just friend…Lin…my best friend. And no, we never hooked up, but I often fantasized about it.” She paused. It was only a small lie. When they’d first got together with Michelle, it’d been before her, Lin and Jason had their threesome back in Williamstown. She lay her head against his shoulder and added with a sigh, “I really miss her.” When he didn’t reply for several long seconds, she said, “If it bothers you, then I’ll drop it, ok?”

He sighed and turned to face her. “Honey, I never want to stand in your way. I want you to experience everything you want to, but I just don’t want to risk losing what we have.” She started to reply, but he stopped her. “Put yourself in my shoes for a minute. How would you feel if I said there was a hot girl at school I wanted to try to have sex with. Wouldn’t you be even a little jealous?”

She held his eyes for a moment, considering what he’d said. It wasn‘t exactly the same thing, but she resisted the urge to say she’d have no problems if he wanted to bring a hot guy he met to their bed. “You’re right,” she finally admitted with a frown. “I’m sorry, baby.”

He pulled her close. “I meant what I said, though. If this is something you really need to do, then I won’t be upset. All I ask is that you keep it between the two of you.”

Angie nodded and kissed him, briefly on the lips at first, then it became more impassioned until they were practically devouring one another. Within a few minutes, Angie’s robe was untied and Steve was fondling her tits, pinching and teasing her erect nipples. She moaned into his mouth, wondering if just maybe her tender pussy could handle one more time. When Steve’s fingers began to rub her labia, she got her answer.

“Ow, please…stop,” she whimpered, pulling his hand from between her legs. She gave him an apologetic smile. “I’m sorry, I’m just too tender.”

“That’s ok, Ang. I think I’ve had enough for one day anyway.” He leaned in to kiss her again but she held him back, turning and cocking an ear toward the stairs. When he tried to ask what she was doing, she shushed him, listened for a few more seconds, then turned back to him with that mischievous grin he knew so well. Her fingers reached out and undid the button of his jeans. “Angie…” he protested, glancing up the stairs.

“Shhh…don’t worry about it,” she whispered as she unzipped his fly and reached inside his jeans. His cock was already starting to grow from their animated make-out session and she extracted it from his shorts, stroking it slowly. She looked up at him and licked her lips. “Nothing wrong with my mouth!”

Before he could respond, she bent over and took him into her hot, wet mouth. He wasn’t completely hard and she was able to take him in all the way, her lips circling the base of his shaft and his short pubic hair tickling her nose. He groaned softly and she felt his hips move as her tongue began to work along the bottom of his shaft. She pulled back and took him all the way in again, but he was now growing harder quite fast and she gagged a little. The next time, she resumed her usual style, taking him as deep as she could and pumping him with her hand. He moaned again and she felt his hand on the back of her head. This gave her an idea and she pulled her sexy mouth from his hard cock, still stroking it with her hand. She got on her knees in front of him and looked up.

“When I go down, I want you to move my head up and down, ok?” He gave her a puzzled look. “Pretend you’re forcing me to do this. You know, pull my hair, hold me down…fuck my mouth.” He gave her an ‘are you sure?’ look and she nodded, her eyes sparkling. “Uh-huh…treat me like a slut again! That was so hot!”

“All right, if you really want me to,” he said, taking another glance up the stairs. He could hear the familiar creak of the floorboards in the family room and knew they were safe for the moment anyway.

Angie grinned and opened her robe to display her beautiful breasts to him. She leaned up and squeezed them together around his cock, looking up at him. He sighed and rested a hand on the back of her head, then his lips formed an almost evil grin. She felt him applying more downward pressure on her head and released his cock from between her tits.

“Suck it, bitch!” he breathed, pushing her down even harder. She pretended to resist and he reached down and pinched a nipple, causing her to gasp. When she did, he pushed down again and moaned as her hot little mouth engulfed his cock once again. She let out a muffled “Mmmph!” and he began to pump her head up and down, his fingers gripping her long hair. “Yesss…” he sighed, “Suck it good!”

Angie was becoming more and more turned on and began to attack his cock with vigor as it was forced into her mouth again and again. How she longed to be able to deep throat him and take him all the way in when he was fully hard like this. She was going to have to learn to do that. She could taste his salty precum, becoming stronger and stronger as more of the clear, musky juice flowed from his cock.

“Oh, fuck!” he groaned after a few minutes of this. She felt his cock swell and lifted off enough to catch his seed on her tongue when he came. A few seconds later, she was rewarded with a healthy load of hot spunk, which she swallowed before pulling off and jerking the remaining shots onto her face and tits. When he was done shooting, she sucked him clean, her tongue laving his shaft and balls as he basked in the warm afterglow, his fingers entwined in her beautiful golden hair.

“Ahem.”

They both looked up to see Cathy standing at the foot of the stairs watching them with her arms folded across her chest and a very disapproving look on her face. Angie scrambled to her feet, wiping the gobs of semen from her face. Steve fumbled with his pants, his heart pounding. Of all the times to stop paying attention!

“Go clean yourself up, Angie,” Cathy said calmly, glancing at her, then to Steve. Without a word, Angie ran into the bathroom and pushed the door closed. Cathy walked over to him, still holding the same parental stance. “I thought you two might be up to something, but to be honest, I really didn’t need to see that.” Steve hung his head in shame. Busted by his girlfriend’s mother! She waited several long moments before speaking again, listening to the water running in the bathroom. “Just be thankful it wasn’t her father who came down here. As much as he likes you, Steve, I don’t know how he would have reacted to…to…that!”

“I…I’m sorry,” Steve mumbled, not knowing what else to say.

“It’s not all your fault, Steve,” she said, “Although you do bear much of the responsibility.” She sat down in one of the easy chairs as the water stopped and the bathroom door opened. A much more respectable looking Angie slowly crept out and went over to sit next to Steve, ready to accept her lecture and subsequent punishment.

Cathy studied them for a moment, then shook her head. “Angie, I thought you were smarter than that.” Angie hung her head and nodded. Cathy gave them each a long, hard look. “Look, I know I can’t stop you two from doing this. All I ask is that you never, ever do it again when there’s a chance myself or your father will catch you.” She paused for a moment, then focused on Angie. “Angie, we don’t restrict your time with Steve or impose unfair curfews, so there’s no reason for giving blowjobs in the basement while we’re right upstairs.” Angie couldn’t believe her mother just said ‘blow job’ but kept silent. “I know you’re becoming a woman, honey, and I can’t stop you from experimenting with sex. But if I ever catch you guys again doing anything beyond a little necking, there will be some serious consequences. Do I make myself clear?” They both nodded without looking up. “All right. Now, I think it’s time for bed.” She stood up and started toward the stairs. “Oh, and I’ll be doing random bed checks tonight, so keep that in mind.” With that, she was gone.

Angie waited until she was upstairs, then hugged Steve. “Oh my god, that was so embarrassing!”

“Tell me about it. Imagine me sitting here alone with your mother after that…not pleasant.”

“I’m sorry, baby. But I had your stuff all over my face. I had to clean up.”

He kissed her head. “I know, and I’m not blaming you. It was my fault. I should’ve known better.”

She sat up and took his hands in hers, her eyes wide. “Can you believe she didn’t ground me for life!? What’s up with that?”

He shrugged. “Beats me. Did you think she’d punish you?”

“Hell yes! Are you kidding? She practically caught me with your dick in my mouth! I should be packing for the convent right now!” She put her hand over her mouth. “Holy shit! My mother said ‘blow job’!” She began to laugh, trying hard to keep her giggles quiet.

Steve chuckled. “What, you think they don’t do that stuff, too? They may be our parents, but they’re still human!”

She thought back to the night she’d watched her parents having sex in their new house. She vividly remembered her mother on her knees sucking her father’s cock, although she hadn’t finish him off like that. She wondered absently if her mother swallowed too. She looked over at Steve and nodded. “Yeah, I guess that’s true.” She sighed and nestled against him. “Damn, I so wanted to sleep with you tonight!”

He pulled her closer and held her tight. “I know, baby, but there’ll be other nights.” She nodded and he added with a grin, “Besides, you need some recovery time and I’m not sure I could control my urges with you lying in bed with me!”

She giggled. “And I’m not entirely sure I’d want you to!” She sat up and kissed him tenderly. “We better go to bed before we get into any more trouble. Good night.”

He gave her a soft kiss. “Good night, Angie.” He watched as she got up and walked into her room, smiling as she turned and dropped her robe just inside. He took in her naked body and she smiled, then leaving the door wide open, she turned to go to bed. He watched her turn on the lamp and slip naked between the sheets. She blew him one last kiss, then turned off the light.

He sat there for a moment before he turned off the TV and went into the bathroom. He splashed cold water on his face and thought about what had happened and how lucky they were that her mother had been relatively cool about it. It could’ve gone bad - very bad. They’d have to be more careful in the future. He turned off the light and walked back out into the rec room, pausing in front of Angie’s open door.

“Good night, baby,” he heard her whisper from the darkness. He imagined the feel of her warm, naked body against his and felt his cock twitch.

“Good night,” he replied softly and went into his room, leaving his door open as well. Sleep didn’t come easy.

 

Chapter 81

 

Michelle awoke Friday morning with a throbbing between her legs. She gently touched her pussy, which was quite tender but wasn’t the cause of most of her discomfort. Her asshole hurt more, although it wasn’t as bad as the first time she’d had anal sex. She desperately wanted to give Artie a proper welcome home. If he was average size, she was certain she could handle him in her present state. But given his size, she wanted to do all she could to heal her tender little twat. Maybe a nice soak in the tub would help. Perhaps the warm water would sooth her pussy enough to allow her to give him what they both wanted.

She spent almost an hour in the hot water and it did seem to help. Her back door still stung, but since there was no way Artie’s monster would ever fit in there, that wasn’t a concern at the moment. She carefully shaved her pussy, being extra cautious around her tender labia, then did her long legs and underarms. She wasn’t completely sure they’d even have the opportunity to have sex, but she wanted to be prepared.

She didn’t realize how much she missed him until now. Sure, there’d been moments when she’d felt his loss. Despite the unusual circumstances that had initiated their sexual relationship, she truly liked him and enjoyed spending time alone with him. As she dried off, she began to feel a longing for him and hoped he’d call soon.

She was dressed in her light khaki hiking shorts and a white halter and playing around on her computer when the phone rang. Eagerly, she snatched it on the first ring.

“Hello?”

“Michelle?”

A wide smile spread across her face. “Artie! You’re home!”

He chuckled. “Uh-huh, and I really missed you!”

“Aw, I missed you too!”

“Those pictures you sent…wow!” he exclaimed. “Not what I was expecting, but thanks!”

She laughed. “You’re very welcome! I wanted to make sure some sexy chick didn’t steal you away!”

“Not a chance!”

They chatted for a few minutes, catching up. When the conversation turned to meeting up, he told her his parents were going to be home all day unpacking so they’d have to go somewhere else if they wanted privacy. “How about the creek?” he asked.

“Sure. Hopefully no one will be there.”

They agreed to meet there in a half hour and she hung up, gathering up a beach towel, and slipping her bikini on under her shorts and top. She threw the towel into her backpack with her sunscreen, grabbed a couple of bottles of water from the fridge, and practically ran out to her bike. Suddenly, the pain in her pussy was forgotten and all she could think about was seeing Artie and finally feeling that big, hard cock filling her once again.

She arrived at the trail fifteen minutes later and bounced along it to the clearing. A quick glance around told her she was alone and she smiled to herself. So far, so good. She rolled her bike over to the trees by the path to the place they’d camped and pushed it into the woods until it couldn’t be seen, then went back out to the clearing to wait for Artie.

It was only a few minutes later that she heard the tell-tale sound of a bicycle clattering down the rough trail and within seconds Artie flew out of the woods on his mountain bike. He slid to a stop in the middle of the clearing and looked around until he spotted her, then pedaled over to where she stood, dropping his bike and running to her. They embraced and kissed, his longing for her overshadowing any lingering shyness after being apart for so long.

When they finally released one another, he looked into her eyes and smiled. “Wow, I missed you!”

She giggled and hugged him. “I missed you too!” She took his hand. “Come on, let’s go!” She began to lead him toward the path until he remembered his bike. He ran back and quickly had it stashed next to hers and they hurried along the trail to the campsite.

They arrived to find it was also deserted. Michelle grinned and turned to him, dropping her backpack to the grass. She lowered her head and walked slowly over to him, looking up at him and biting sexily on her lower lip. Artie watched her come closer, feeling his already semi-hard cock grow even harder. She reached down and grabbed her top, then pulled it off, tossing it to the ground carelessly. Her breasts were even more beautiful inside her bikini top as it forced them higher and closer together. As soon as she had her top off, her fingers went to the button of her shorts. By the time she reached him, they’d dropped to her ankles and she kicked them away. His eyes traveled over her beautiful body in that sexy bikini and as she reached around to untie her bikini top, he thought his cock was going to burst the seams of his shorts. She dropped it to the ground and a little moan escaped his lips as her breasts were bared to him. He reached out, each thumb circling a hard nipple and his fingers sinking into the soft flesh.

Michelle sighed and reached out to his shorts, undoing the button and tugging them down. She looked down and could see his long hard shaft extending down the left leg of his boxers. She looked up at him, licking her lips, then dropped to her knees before him. Without pausing, her hands gripped his shorts and pulled them down. As she gazed once again at his mammoth cock, she licked her lips unconsciously and reached out to grasp it. She began to stroke it slowly, watching his face. He had his eyes closed and it was apparent that he was enjoying her touch. She waited until he opened his eyes and looked down at her, then stuck out her tongue and touched it to the tip.

“Oh, fuck!” he groaned as she began to kiss it and rub her full lips all over the spongy flesh of his huge head. She could taste him now and it only drove her to want him more. Slowly, she opened her mouth and took the thick head into her mouth, rolling her tongue all over it as she sucked on it. Again, he moaned, this time a little louder. She took him even deeper, but knew about four inches was the maximum she could fit into her mouth before she started to gag. Once she’d taken that much, she began to bob her head back and forth, her jaw aching as she stretched her mouth wide to accommodate him. Her hands pumped the remainder of his length and he soon began to rock his hips. She kept this up for a few minutes, then pulled off to give her jaw a break.

“Mmmm…you taste good!” she exclaimed, licking her lips and grinning up at him. Her hands continued to stroke him until she was ready to suck on it again.

“Oh, god, Michelle!” he gasped, “You do that so good!”

She kissed the tip again. “That’s because I love sucking your big cock, baby. And I love being fucked by your big cock, too!” She looked up at him, her eyes pleading. “Will you please fuck me, Artie?”

He looked down at her, surprised at her words. This talk was a new development, but he kinda liked it!

“Oh yeah, I’ll fuck you!” he exclaimed, a smile spreading across his face.

Immediately, she jumped up and tugged off her bikini bottoms, leaving her naked except for her sneakers. She looked around the clearing, then to him. “Where do you want me?”

He made a cursory sweep of their surroundings and looked back at her. “Why don’t you decide?”

She stepped closer, shaking her head. “Oh, no…I want you to tell me what to do, not ask me.”

He raised his eyebrows. “Come again?”

She laughed. “It’s something we’ve been trying lately and it’s so fucking hot! I want you to treat me like a whore, tell me to suck your cock, bend over and take it from behind, throw me to the ground and ravage me…whatever you want. If it’s too out there, I’ll say so, but anything goes unless I do.”

He studied her for a moment, then a smile crept across his face. He looked around and pointed to a tree. “So if I tell you to go over to that tree and bend over so I can do you from behind, you would?”

She nodded. “Sure, but you can do better than that.” She bowed her head submissively and put her hands behind her back. “Tell your little whore what you want her to do.”

Artie thought for a moment. This might be fun! He went over to a soft grassy area and sat down, his long cock pointing straight up. “Come here, then…whore.” Obediently, Michelle walked over to him, her full breasts bouncing with each step. He gestured to his lap. “Sit…I want to see just how much of my cock you can take.”

She straddled his legs and got to her knees, his long cock already pressing against her wet, swollen labia. He placed his hands on her shoulders and began to push her down. She closed her eyes as his thick head pressed against her tender opening, then stretched her wide and slid in. She moaned as her pussy was filled with a mixture of exquisite pain and pleasure at the same time. Even her asshole hurt from the pressure being applied to her pussy. Slowly, he pushed her down…two inches, three, four…

Michelle was caught up in the incredible sensations as Artie’s cock was slowly fed into her aching pussy. She’d become used to the average sized cocks of Steve and Jake and was having a little difficulty with his size. She set her jaw, determined to please her guy, no matter what. She felt herself being opened up as five inches disappeared into her twat, then six. Finally, she placed her hand on his shoulder.

“N…no more…please…not yet…”

He nodded and stopped forcing her down. She tried to make herself relax and felt some relief, but he was so fucking big! How had she ever managed to fit his whole cock inside her before? With some effort, she rose up until just the tip remained inside her badly distended pussy, then pushed back down. She did it again. And again. She kept moving up and down until she felt her pussy expand and her muscles relax so she could move easier. She found that she was now able to take a little more of his massive tool every few minutes, but stopped short of the entire thing. She was still sore and she knew this was going to create even more pain afterward. No point in making it worse.

She looked at Artie and could see the beads of sweat on his forehead. His face was flushed red and he appeared to be straining hard to keep from cumming too quickly. She cupped his chin and he looked into her eyes.

“Does that feel good, baby?” she breathed, her slippery pussy sliding up and down over his hard cock.

Hey nodded, swallowing. “F…fuck yes!” he gasped. “Feels…amazing!”

“Mmmm…it sure does,” she moaned, pressing her tits against his face. “Do you want to cum, baby?”

“Oh god, yes!” he gasped. “I can’t hold out much longer!”

“Mmmm…good. Where do you want to cum, lover? In my pussy?” She ground down as far as she dared and he groaned. “Or would you rather cum in my mouth? On my face? My tits? Tell me…your little whore will do whatever you say.” Her last sentence was a sultry whisper and it almost drove him over the edge.

“F…face!” he gasped, “…and mouth!”

“Ooo…all right. Tell me when you’re close and I’ll get into position.” He grunted and she leaned in, nibbling on his earlobe. “I can’t wait to feel your hot cum splashing on my face…to taste your…”

Her sexy voice was the final straw. “Oh, fuck!” he groaned, “Now! Get up!”

She extricated her twat form his cock and got on her knees as he quickly stood up, aiming his huge cock at her face. She began to pump it and suck on the tip, encouraging him by whispering, “Come on, baby…give it to me!”

He grabbed his cock and pumped it hard, throwing his head back. Michelle made sure she was still in position and opened her mouth wide. A second later, Artie groaned and shot a thick stream at her, hitting her on the cheek before moving across her open mouth to the other cheek. He kept pumping and unloaded several more shots, leaving her face literally coated with hot, sticky cum. She’d never seen him, or anyone else, shoot so much at once!

When he finished, she swallowed what landed in her mouth, then dutifully sucked the remaining jism from his cock and licked him clean. Her face was a mess and she was thankful none hit her eyes. According to Angie, that stung like a bastard!

Artie looked down at the beautiful, cum-splattered girl kneeling before him and licking his cock clean. “Holy fuck!” he panted. “I don’t think I’ve ever cum like that before!”

Michelle finished cleaning him and looked up, grinning as the cum ran down her face and dripped from her chin to her tits. “Never this much, for sure! Wow! Have you been saving up?”

He laughed and wiped a gob from her forehead before it could drip into her eyes. “I guess I just really missed you and was a little…um, excited.”

She chuckled and stood up. “A little…yeah, right,” she said with a grin. She dabbed at the thick cream on her cheeks. “I better get cleaned up.” She started for the creek. “Are you coming?” He grinned and nodded, pulling off his shirt and kicking off his sneakers. Together, they waded into the cool water and began splashing and washing up.

 

A while later they were lying on Michelle’s towel, still naked and drying off in the warm sunshine. Artie was lying on his back and Michelle lay next to him, one leg draped over his. “So,” Artie said, “What’s new and exciting around here? Is the group still together or did Angie and Steve decide to go out on their own?” Michelle didn’t answer right away and he lifted his head to look at her. “Michelle?”

She waited another couple of seconds before replying. “There’ve…been a few changes,” she finally said.

“Oh? Like what?”

She was putting off telling him about Jake and Kristi, but knew he’d have to be told sometime. It seemed this was the time. She sat up and turned to him. “Well, some more people found out and we had to bring them into the group, like we did with you.”

He sat up, his attention suddenly riveted on her words and not her naked body. “More people? Who?”

She sighed. She wasn’t sure how he was going to take this. Kristi was never real friendly toward him and Jake was…well, Jake was Jake. He put an arm around her shoulders. “Michelle? Tell me…who else?”

“Kristi and Jake,” she finally said.

He stared at her, then broke out into a grin. “Naw, you’re just playin’ around! Jake I might believe, but Kristi? No way!”

She turned to him, her eyes meeting his. “It’s true, Artie. There are six of us now.”

He could only stare at her, knowing he shouldn’t believe this crazy story. But her eyes told him she was serious. “Jake and Kristi?” he repeated. “How?”

She related how they’d both found out about their group sex by seeing them at the creek. She also said that she and Kristi discovered they had real feelings for one another that went beyond friendship. When she finished, he sat there deep in thought, not saying anything for what felt like a long time.

“Artie? Please say something.”

He looked over at her, this beautiful, sexy girl who he’d fallen in love with. He’d been able to accept their little foursome, but now she’d been sleeping with two other guys and two other girls. Steve he liked and Angie was, well…she was Angie. He could deal with that. But the idea of Jake having sex with Michelle wasn’t a pleasant thought. And what about Kristi? She was never rude to him or anything, but it was obvious she didn’t really like him and they wouldn’t even be part of the same crowd if not for their mutual friends. Would she even want to have sex with him?

Michelle was looking at him with scared eyes and he realized he still hadn’t spoken. “I’m sorry, Michelle…it’s just a lot to take in,” he finally said.

She took his hand. “Are you angry with me?”

He shook his head. “No, I’m not angry. Shocked would be a more appropriate word.”

She tried to smile. “I know, I’m sorry. I didn’t want to tell you like this but it seemed the only way.”

He looked over at her. “So, you and Kristi are…what, lovers?” She nodded. “And where does that leave me?”

She moved closer. “Artie, it changes nothing between us as far as I’m concerned.” He gave her a skeptical look and she continued. “It’s like this: I love Angie, but you and I still started something special, right?” He nodded. “So, why can’t I be in love with Kristi, too?”

He seemed to consider this, then said, “Do you love me?”

She smiled at him. “Yes, I do love you. I wasn’t sure until you went away, and now that you’re back, I know I do.” She was surprised at how easy was to say that; how right it felt.

He seemed to relax a bit. “I love you too, Michelle. I think I always did and when you and I first…made love, I was head over heels.”

She smiled again and kissed him. “And what about Angie? Do you love her?”

His face blushed a little. “Yeah, I guess I do.” He looked up at her. “But it’s not the same way I feel about you. I always considered us as something…special, you know, like boyfriend and girlfriend.”

“We are boyfriend and girlfriend, Artie,” she said. “I told you that before you left, remember?”

He nodded. “So this doesn’t change that?”

She shook her head. “Uh-uh. When school starts, everyone’s gonna know you’re my guy!”

He finally gave her a warm smile. “I’ll be the luckiest guy in school.”

She laughed and hugged him, then looked down at his still soft cock. “Any chance of an encore performance?”

He felt his cock twitch at her suggestion and nodded. “But I want to go down on you first this time!” She giggled and lay down, opening her legs for him. He crawled between them and lowered his mouth to her tender young pussy, inhaling her scent. His tongue snaked out and licked her labia, making her squirm. He began to push in deeper, tasting her sweet juices and lapping up all he could. He pulled back the little hood over her erect clit and began to roll his tongue over and around it, bringing soft moans of pleasure from her.

“Oh, god Artie…yes! Right there! Ohhh…”

Encouraged by her reaction, he began to suck on her little love pearl and she let out a soft yelp and thrust her pelvis upward against his mouth. Her hands went to his head and she pushed her fingers through his hair as she rolled her head from side to side, her moans increasing as he brought her closer and closer to climax. His tongue flitted across her clit as he alternated between sucking on it and kissing it. Occasionally, he’d flatten his tongue and run it along her dripping slit, tasting her sweet juices before returning his attention to her clit.

Michelle was riding a wave of sensual pleasure that she never wanted to end. Artie was bringing her to the very edge of release, then moving from her hyper-sensitive clit to the pink folds of her labia and vulva. Whether it was a conscious effort on his part or not, the effect was that of keeping her in sort of a pre-orgasmic limbo that made her entire body shiver in anticipation of the inevitable mind-blowing release she knew was coming. She opened her mouth to tell him how good it felt, but found she could only gasp and pant. As he began to suckle her clit once again, she felt her muscles tense and a euphoric sensation touched every nerve in her naked body.

“Arggghhhh…!” she cried through clenched teeth as she climaxed, her back arched and her pussy pressed tight to his mouth. She groaned long and hard as she built up, then released with a long gasp of breath, her body twitching and thrashing in the throes of a powerful orgasm. Artie couldn’t maintain his lip-lock on her very long and pulled back to watch as her body twisted on the ground for several long seconds before she finally dropped limply to the grass, panting and her chest heaving from the exertion.

He crawled up and lay next her, his chin resting in his hand as he watched her come down from her orgasm. “Wow, that was a good one!” he exclaimed, his other hand caressing over her heaving breasts.

She let out a small gasp and her body twitched as his fingers lightly brushed across her highly aroused nipple. “H…holy shit, Artie!” she panted, grinning up at him, “You’re getting very good at that!”

He returned her grin, blushing a little. “Thanks…I love doing it.”

She reached out and he allowed her to take him in her arms and pull him down so that their bodies pressed together as they kissed deeply. The feel of her soft, warm skin was having an effect on him and he felt his cock begin to stir once again. Michelle must have felt it as well. She pulled her lips from his and looked into his eyes.

“Again?” she said jokingly, moving her leg so that it rubbed against his tumid cock. This only served to increase its growth and his face flushed.

“I…well…do you want to?” he asked, seeming embarrassed.

She stroked his cheek and kissed him. “Would you mind if we didn’t? I’m a little…tender down there right now.”

He smiled, nodding. “Sure, no problem.” He kissed her again, then rolled off of her. For several moments they both lay there naked on the grass staring up at the few passing clouds. He tried to will his cock back to a flaccid state, but the nearness of Michelle and the fact that they were both naked made that virtually impossible. Michelle spoke up, breaking the comfortable silence.

“What are we going to do after it gets too cold to do this outside?”

Artie shrugged, turning his head to look at her. “I dunno…I guess I never really thought about it.”

“It just occurred to me the other day. I mean, we could try to get together at someone’s house, but that would be risky.” She rolled over to face him, her heavy breasts almost touching as she lay on her side. “I have an idea, but I don’t know if it’s possible.”

He stretched out an arm and she happily lifted her head so he could embrace her, then moved in closer and lay her head on his shoulder. “What’s your idea?”

“What if we built a little cabin in the woods here? You know, just a small place with a wood stove and a big bed!”

He chuckled at her mention of the bed, but the cabin wasn’t a bad idea. “Hmm…that’s a great idea, Michelle. These woods are all crown land so no one would be pissed if we did that, as long as we kept it quiet.”

She nodded. “And maybe Steve could get us a deal on some wood and other stuff from work.”

“Maybe…but we’d need quite a bit, even to build a small cabin. Not to mention windows, shingles for the roof, and other things.”

She sighed. “Yeah, you’re right. But even if it cost us all a few bucks, wouldn’t it be worth it?”

He nodded as he watched her hand glide down his belly to where his heavy cock was standing at nearly full mast. “Sure, I have a little saved up I could use.” Her hand moved lower until her fingers encircled the base of his cock. She began to run her fingers lightly up his shaft and he felt himself getting harder. She moved them back down to the base, then gripped his shaft and began a slow stroke. He sighed deeply and closed his eyes, allowing her to pleasure him once again. She continued to pump his cock, using his precum for lubrication.

After a moment, she sat up, then crawled down and slipped between his legs. He opened his eyes and looked down at her heavy breasts as she knelt on all fours, her tongue flicking out and teasing the tip of his engorged cock. Their eyes met and she gave him a seductive and naughty grin as she continued to stroke his hard member.

“Oh, yeah, Michelle!” he groaned as she licked the tip, then her lips, her eyes still holding his.

“What do you want your slut to do now?” she asked, leaning down to kiss the tip.

“Oh fuck…” he groaned, “suck me…suck me now!”

She grinned and opened her mouth wide, then slowly pushed his wide head into it, the whole while watching his face. Artie found it so fucking erotic that she was looking at him while giving him a blowjob that he nearly lost it right then and there. She went down until she’d taken all she could handle, then began to move up and down, her hand pumping what she couldn’t fit into her mouth.

Artie watched this beautiful girl sucking his cock as her tits bounced and shook. Her long hair kept falling across her face and she was constantly brushing it aside. She was loving the eye contact as well. Artie sat up and took her hair in his hand, bunching it into a pony tail then holding it away from her face. She murmured her thanks and attacked him with even more fervor. She pulled her mouth from his cock long enough to gasp, “Pull my hair!” then went right back to the incredible blowjob. Artie hesitated, then gave her hair a tug. She moaned and looked up again.

“Harder! Treat me like a slut!”

Holding her hair in a tight grip, he twisted it so that he was pulling her head downward. She murmured contentedly and tried to take more of him into her mouth, gagging a little. He allowed her to pull off so she could catch her breath and she grinned up at him. “I love being treated like this!” Before he could reply, she went back down, her warm mouth enveloping him and her tongue rolling back and forth over the sensitive glans. He felt his balls contracting and knew he wasn’t going to last much longer.

“Oh, fuck!” he moaned, “Don’t stop! I’m gonna cum!”

Michelle began moving even faster, her mouth making wet, slurping sounds and her hand moving so fast it was almost a blur. Artie groaned and closed his eyes as he felt the cum boiling, then released it with a long groan. He felt Michelle stiffen as his load was expelled into her mouth, but she swallowed it all and completed her task by sucking and licking him clean before crawling back to lay in his arms once again.

“Mmm…I love sucking your big cock!” she whispered, snuggling in close. He was still catching his breath but squeezed her tight in response, kissing the top of her head.

They lay there for a while longer then reluctantly began to get dressed. “I’m going to talk to Steve and Angie about my cabin idea,” Michelle said as she adjusted her tits inside her bikini top. “You never know, maybe Steve can get some wood for free.”

Artie watched her dress. Even though his sexual needs had been sated for the time being, he could sit here and gaze at her naked body all day. “Sure, can’t hurt to ask, right?”

She shook her head and slipped her shirt on. “Nope.”

“Can we do this again tomorrow?” he asked as he took her hand and they began the walk back to main clearing.

She frowned and shook her head. “Angie’s moving tomorrow and I promised to help out,” she replied. “Maybe after though.”

“Why don’t I come by and help too?” he suggested. “Do you think she’d mind?”

Michelle laughed. “No, I know she’d love it if you did, baby.”

“Cool.” he said.

They rode back to town, only stopping for a brief kiss before going toward their separate homes. Artie watched her ride away before starting off. Tomorrow would be hard work, but at least they’d be together. And he’d get to see Angie again, too.

Family Friend - Part 22

bjcortland on Teen Stories

 

Chapter 76

 

Michelle went into her room and dropped the shopping bags of back to school clothes on the floor. As much as she loved shopping for clothes, it saddened her to think that this wonderful summer was quickly drawing to a close and very soon her days of freedom would come to end. She sat down on the bed and began sorting through her purchases; tops, jeans, and even a couple of skirts that pushed the limits of the school dress code. This summer had definitely changed the way she felt about her sexuality and her body and she wanted to reflect that in the way she dressed. She stopped short of the school slut/hooker look, but some of her things were pretty revealing.

As she tried on the various articles of clothing one more time befo

Read More
re removing the tags, she thought about how school was going to affect their sex lives. Sure, they’d still be able to sneak off to the creek after school for a little while, but what about when the weather turned too cold for outdoor activities? She supposed they could go to Artie’s house or somewhere else where no one would be home until dinner, but she hated the restrictions that placed on them. Not to mention the chance of a parent coming home early and catching them. And she was really beginning to enjoy sex outdoors.

She sighed and tossed the new clothes into a pile to be washed, then glanced at the clock on her night stand. Two-thirty. She picked up the phone and called the O’Connell’s, but only got voice mail. Where was Angie? She could have gone to the mall and they could easily have missed one another. She knew Kristi was off with her older sister Katie, who was going to college in California and stayed out there over the summer except for a couple of weeks when she came home to visit. Kristi and Katie were very close and she wondered just how much she’d let on about her recent sexual activities. No doubt she’d tell her she was no longer a virgin, but doubted she’d go into details. Katie was cool, but there were some things you just didn’t tell your older sister, no matter how cool she was.

She decided to take a bike ride, maybe go down to the lumber yard where Steve was working and see if he knew where she might be. The afternoon was still young and there was the chance she and Angie could still spend a couple of hours alone together. Or maybe they could find Jake and give him another workout. She grinned as she pushed her bike out of the garage and started down the street. Now that would be a fun afternoon!

She rolled into the dusty parking lot of the lumber yard about fifteen minutes later and spotted Steve standing by one of the huge open overhead doors talking with a couple of the guys he worked with. She coasted through the gate and pulled up to a stop about thirty feet away and waved at him. Steve waved back and his coworkers gave her a quick once-over before wandering off into the warehouse. Steve came over and gave her a quick kiss.

“Hey, this is a nice surprise! What’s up?”

She got off her bike and leaned it against the building. “Nothing much. I’ve been out shopping all morning. I tried to call Angie when I got home but there was no answer. I thought maybe you might know where she is.”

Steve shook his head. “No, I don’t. Sorry.” He thought for a moment. Angie had mentioned wanting to talk to Jake. “She might be with Jake. She said she wanted to talk to him…sort of see how he’s measuring up, I guess.”

Michelle nodded. “Maybe they went to the creek.”

She saw a flash of darkness cross his face, but it passed quickly. They both knew that if Angie and Jake were at the creek, chances were good they weren’t swimming. Michelle smiled and gave him a warm hug.

“Don’t worry, Steve…you’re the one she loves.”

He returned her smile, nodding almost convincingly. “Yeah, I know. It’s just hard to think of her alone with him.”

She put her arms around his neck and gave him a deep, passionate kiss. He seemed startled at first, then returned it for several seconds before pushing her gently away. “We better stop,” he said, looking around. Fortunately, none of his coworkers or any customers were in sight. Michelle nodded, smiling apologetically.

“Sorry…I don’t want to get you into trouble.”

He smiled and brought her hand to his lips. “It’s ok, I won’t get into trouble.” He glanced back into the dark warehouse. “Although if Bill or Jack saw that, they’ll be riding my ass for the next few days!”

She giggled and discreetly rubbed her hand over his crotch. “Then we better not do what I really wanted to do!”

Steve laughed and gave her another quick peck on the lips. “Don’t ever change, Michelle.”

She gave him a seductive wink. “Not a chance!” She went over to her bike and straddled the seat, her long tanned legs stretching to the ground. “I better go so you can get back to work. Why don’t we all get together after dinner?”

He nodded. “Sounds great.”

They said their goodbyes and he watched her ride away, her long hair flowing out behind her as she picked up speed. When she was gone from sight, he turned and went back into the warehouse. He hadn’t gone too far when Bill and Jack, two guys who worked full time, stepped out from behind a pile of plywood, grinning. ‘Oh, shit,’ Steve thought, rolling his eyes.

“Now, I may be mistaken, Bill,” Jack said, folding his arms over his chest, “…but I could’ve sworn ‘ole Cassanova here was dating a blonde girl…” He held out a hand about five and half feet from the floor. “…cute little thing…about this big, wasn’t she?”

Bill grinned, nodding. “I do believe you’re right, Jack.” His eyes twinkled as he looked over at the blushing Steve. “So, do tell, Mr O’Connell…just how many girls are you dating at the moment?”

Steve rolled his eyes. “C’mon guys, we need to fill that order by five.”

They ignored his attempt to change the subject. Bill continued. “As a matter of fact, I’ve seen both of those girls together, like they was good friends or sumthin’.” Jack’s eyebrows raised as if in mock surprise.

“Oh, is that so? That’s very interesting, Bill,” Jack mused, trying hard not to crack a smile.

Bill nodded, still grinning at Steve. “Interesting, yes…yes it is.”

Finally, Steve relented with a sigh. “Ok, ok…they’re friends. So what?”

“Well, young fella,” Bill said, “Do they know you’re diddling both of them?” At that, Steve’s face flushed red and both men broke out in loud, knee slapping laughter. He forced himself to look away and say nothing. If they only knew the truth, he thought, they’d soon stop laughing and he’d be practically a god in their eyes.

As luck would have it, a pickup truck pulled into the yard and a man stepped out holding a yellow pick slip. Steve jumped on the opportunity to escape their good-natured ribbing and hurried over to fill the order.

 

Chapter 77

 

Angie pedaled slowly toward home, keeping her tender pussy a little off the tiny bicycle seat. As much as she enjoyed sex, that much in such a short span of time really made her sore. She was happy that she and Jake had the opportunity to hook up, though. And having the other teenagers nearby while they did really got her motor running. The only part she regretted is that she may be too tender to have sex with Steve later, and he’d know exactly why. She hoped he wouldn’t be hurt or jealous. After all, she did tell him she wanted to get together with Jake and he’d already seen her with Artie, not to mention Kristi and Michelle.

She pulled into the O’Connell’s driveway and slowly climbed off the bike, then pushed it past their car toward the garage, limping slightly. Her parents were off finalizing some of the house paperwork and their van wasn’t there. She leaned it against the back wall of the garage and went into the house, planning to take a long, soothing shower. Cathy’s voice stopped her before she could start down the stairs to the basement.

“Angie? Is that you?”

She poked her head into the kitchen, where Cathy stood at the sink, drying her hands.

“Hi.”

Cathy smiled and nodded toward the kitchen table. “Do you have a minute? I’d like to talk to you about something.”

Angie nodded, but she felt a knot forming in her stomach. If Steve’s mother wanted to talk to her alone, it probably had something to do with her and Steve, or to be more precise, her and Steve’s sex life. “Sure, I guess. I was just going to take a quick shower.” She went up into the kitchen and took a seat across the table from Cathy, her eyes meeting the older woman’s unfalteringly. “What’s up?”

Cathy smiled at the pretty blonde. It was easy to see why Steve found her so attractive. She was almost the spitting image of her very sexy mother. “Well, we’ve never really talked and since you and Steve seem to be getting pretty serious, I thought we should have a little chat. You know - girl stuff.” Angie nodded and forced a smile. Something in Cathy’s eyes told her she had something a little more specific she wanted to talk about, but she decided to play along.

“Ok, sure…I’d like that.”

They chatted for a couple of minutes about how much she was looking forward to moving into their new house and starting school in the fall. Finally, there was a lull in the conversation. Cathy fidgeted with a napkin for a few seconds, then took a deep breath and looked up at Angie. “I guess there’s really no easy way to bring this up, so I’ll just come out and ask.” Angie felt the knot tighten and hoped her expression didn’t betray her nervousness. Cathy met her eyes. “Are you and Michelle both dating Steve?”

Angie swallowed hard and lowered her eyes. How the hell did she figure that out? Cathy let out a long sigh. “I’ll take it from your silence that’s a yes.” Angie nodded slightly, but didn’t look up. Cathy reached out and took her hand. “Look, Angie, I really like you a lot. I think of you as the daughter I never had, especially since you’ve been staying here. And Steve’s never seemed happier.” Angie looked up at her and she paused. “But I don’t want to see any of you get hurt. If you and Steve were only dating casually, I wouldn’t even be bringing this up. It’s good for him to be with different girls, so he’ll have a better understanding of what he wants when he finally settles down. But you told me you were in love. Is that true? Because if you are, that changes everything.”

Angie hesitated for almost a full ten seconds before replying. She nodded her head and looked up into her eyes. “Yes, I do love him - very much.” She paused. “And so does Michelle.”

Cathy blew out another long breath and sat back in her chair. “Oh, boy.”

Angie shook her head. “It’s ok - really. We aren’t having any problems at all.”

“Angie, honey, you’re a smart girl. Surely you can see how this can only end badly. Eventually he’s going to have to chose one of you and the other will be devastated.”

Angie sat there without answering, her eyes darting around the room. Cathy suddenly seemed to come to a realization. “Unless…oh no, Angie…you three aren’t…”

Angie felt her face heat up and lowered her head. That was as good as admitting they were having sex together. Cathy got up and walked over to the counter, staring out the window. So her hunch, as wild as it’d been, was correct. How did this happen? Had one of them seen her and Alan together with Angie’s parents? But they were so careful! Now she was faced with the choice of being a hypocrite or condoning their kids’ lifestyle. For a long moment, she said nothing, the tension heavy in the air. Finally she spoke without turning around.

“I’m not going to say anything to your parents, Angie. Your Mom and Dad are just starting to come to grips with you and Steve having sex. I don‘t think they could handle knowing you like girls too.” She turned around to face her. “But you’re going to have to tell them sometime.” She went back over and sat down again. “Are you sure you’re ready for this? I mean, there are a lot of adults who aren’t able to do that.”

Angie kept her eyes lowered and nodded, speaking quietly. “We all love one another. It’s no big deal.”

Cathy sighed again. It was hard to argue with her because she knew it was possible to maintain an open, loving relationship. She just couldn’t tell her that.

“Ok, honey. We’ll leave it at that for now.” She reached over and took Angie’s hand and she looked up. “Please be careful. And promise me something; if you ever need to talk to someone about this, I’m there for you, ok?” Angie nodded, but without much enthusiasm. Cathy gave her hand a gentle squeeze, then let it go. “Ok, go take your shower.”

 

Chapter 78

Angie stood and made her way to the basement, hoping she was able to cover her slight limp. As she stood under the hot shower, her mind raced as she considered the consequences of Steve’s mother knowing she was having sex with both Steve and Michelle. So far, she seemed ok with it, as much as any parent could be anyway. How long before she discovered it went far beyond that?

She finished showering and dried off, then wrapped the towel around her naked body and opened the door.

“Hey, sexy.”

She started, then relaxed when she saw Michelle sitting on the couch, grinning at her. “Michelle! Holy shit, you scared the hell outta me!”

Michelle got up, glanced up the stairs, then came over to her. “Steve’s mom let me in.” She embraced her and they shared a deep, loving kiss. As they did, Angie’s felt all her fears and apprehension drain from her mind. All that mattered then was that she was holding and kissing the girl she loved.

After a few moments, they separated and Angie smiled up into her pretty face. “Wow, baby!”

“I missed you,” Michelle said, giving her a wink. Her eyes traveled over Angie’s barely concealed body and she took another glance up the stairs. “I want you so bad,” she whispered, her hand caressing Angie’s cheek. Angie lay her own hand over Michelle’s and brought it to her lips, kissing it softly. Despite her afternoon of sex, she felt her tender pussy moisten at her lover’s touch and her not-so-subtle suggestion.

“Mmm…that’d be so hot,” Angie replied. “But I’m very, very sore right now.”

Michelle’s eyes sparkled and a grin spread across her face. “Oh, is that so? Then I take it you met up with Jake?”

Angie nodded, her own face breaking into a wide grin. “Come on, I’ll tell you all about it while I get dressed.”

Michelle followed her into her room, which now had several boxes labeled ‘ANGIE’ in black marker in preparation for their upcoming move. Angie dropped her towel as soon as the door was closed and sat down to dry and style her hair still naked, enjoying Michelle’s lust-filled looks. As she recanted her exciting afternoon of sex in the woods, Michelle sat across the bed, her hand under her top and tugging on her nipples. When Angie related the part about the seniors and watching Evan and Jennifer fucking, her eyes grew wide.

“Holy fuck, Ang! That is so fucking hot! They did it right there in the open?”

Angie grinned and reached over to tweak her hard nipple. “You say that like it’s something you’ve never done, you little slut!”

Michelle gasped at her touch, then giggled. “You’re a fine one to talk!”

When Angie told her how Ashley was checking out Mandi’s ass, Michelle raised her eyebrows in disbelief. “Come on, Ashley Morrison - into girls?”

Angie shrugged and wound her long hair around the curling iron. “If you don’t believe me, ask Jake. He saw it too.”

She shook her head. “No, of course I believe you. It’s just…a little hard to accept. I mean, I’ve seen her with guys…lots of guys.”

Angie shrugged. “Maybe she’s like us.” Michelle nodded absently, still trying to work her head around it. “Anyway, she was looking really good. I think I’ll try out for cheerleader and see if I can get to know her a little better.”

Michelle looked over at her. “You mean, the five of us aren’t enough! Holy shit, Ang!”

Angie laughed. “Hey, the more the merrier, right?”

Michelle shook her head, trying to keep a straight face. “I was wrong - you aren’t a slut. You’re a fucking nympho!”

Angie laughed and stood up, walking around the bed to where she was sitting. Her freshly washed hair shone and her skin glowed from the hot shower. She stepped closer and Michelle could smell her excited sex emanating from her swollen, red pussy. She reached up and pulled her closer, planting soft kisses on her belly as her hands moved to squeeze her smooth ass.

“Mmm…you smell delicious, baby!”

Angie propped one foot up on the bed next to her and took her hand, moving it between her spread legs to her tender pussy. She sucked in a long breath as Michelle’s fingers probed at her aching lips, but held her hand in place, eager for her loving touch despite her discomfort.

“Oh Angie,” Michelle murmured, leaning up to take one of her hard nipples into her mouth. She suckled it for a few seconds, then pulled off and looked up. “What about Steve’s mom?”

Angie was enjoying her fingering and sucking and had forgotten that Cathy was still upstairs. Would she come down after Angie’s admitting her and Michelle were also having sex? It was possible, but she seemed cool and wondered if she’d leave them alone. If she did come down and catch them, it isn’t like she’d be discovering a big secret anymore.

“Don’t worry about her,” Angie sad, urging Michelle to suck on her other tit. As she began to nibble on it, Angie moaned softly. “She knows all about you and me.”

Michelle stopped her tit-sucking and pulled back, a look of astonished horror on her face. She tugged at her hand Angie was holding between her legs and Angie reluctantly let her pull it free.

“Sh…she…knows!?”

Angie nodded and sat down. She hated to ruin their intimate moment, but it was something Michelle needed to be told about.

“Yeah, she asked me straight out about an hour ago. I couldn’t have lied even if I wanted to. I think she knew before she even asked me, to be honest.” Michelle stared at the floor, trying to come to grips with it. So that was why Steve’s mom had looked at her strangely when she answered the door. Angie put an arm around her and hugged her to her naked body. “Baby, it’s ok. She said she wasn’t going to say anything. She was just concerned that someone would get hurt.” Michelle looked over at her, her eyes telling her that she wasn’t entirely convinced. Angie smiled and kissed her forehead. “I believe her. Do you think I’d be this calm if I thought she was going to tell my parents?”

Michelle shook her head slowly. “No…I…I guess not.” She paused, then added, “How did she know? I mean, we’ve been careful, haven’t we?”

“Steve told me she caught you and him kissing once and asked him about it. He didn’t really say much, but I guess she just put two and two together.”

“Damn,” Michelle breathed, shaking her head. She looked up again. “What about Artie? And Kristi? And…”

“Shhh…just relax, baby. She didn’t mention them and I didn’t volunteer any information. So far I’m pretty sure she only knows about the three of us.”

Michelle grunted. “Yeah, so far.”

Angie hugged her tighter. “It’ll be ok. So she knows - big deal. When they found out Steve and I were having sex, that didn’t change anything. Why should this?”

Michelle looked again into those deep blue eyes and felt an almost immediate sense of calm. She forced a small smile. “I suppose that’s true, but…”

Angie interrupted her. “But nothing. I love you, and I’m going to continue to love you. That’s the bottom line.”

Michelle gave her a genuine smile of loving admiration. “You’re amazing, Angie. I love you too.”

Angie grinned and licked her lips. She stood up and went over to the door, opening it just a crack and peeking out. She pushed it closed and locked it before turning around. “The coast is clear. Get naked, baby…I need to taste that pussy!”

Michelle stood up and reached down to take off her top, but paused, her eyes moving toward the door. Angie came over and grasped her top. “It’s ok. The door’s locked and she won’t bother us anyway.” Gently, she eased her top up and off, revealing her beautiful tits. She pushed her back onto the bed, her fingers fumbling with the fly of her shorts. Michelle watched as she undid them and pulled them off, followed quickly by her panties. As Angie knelt between her thighs and began to lick and suck at her wet pussy, she lost herself in the wonderful feelings, allowing her beautiful lover to bring her to two crashing orgasms before they fell into one another’s arms on the bed, kissing hungrily. When Michelle started to go down to return the favor, Angie stopped her.

“No, baby…I’m too sore and I want to be able fuck Steve tonight.”

Michelle nodded and crawled back up next to her. They lay there in silence for several minutes, just enjoying the warm touch of each other.

“I saw Steve at work today,” Michelle finally said. “We made plans to get together tonight, but if you want him to yourself, I’ll understand.”

Angie gave her a hug. “Uh-uh…I’d rather be with both of you right now.” She kissed her again, thinking about the plainly wrapped package that had arrived at the post office today and was now in her backpack. She couldn’t wait to try it out!

Michelle smiled and nuzzled her cheek against her soft breast. “That means a lot, thank you.”

“It’s the truth.”

They lay there for a few more minutes, then the sounds of more footsteps could be heard upstairs. Michelle sat up and reached for her clothes. “I better go. It’s almost dinner time.”

Angie sat up and watched her put her clothes back on, but made no effort to dress herself. She loved being naked, especially when she was with one of her lovers. She stood and walked Michelle over to the door, where they shared one more deep, loving kiss.

“I’ll give you a call later,” she said as she stepped out into the rec room. Angie nodded and blew her one last kiss before she turned and went up the stairs.

She closed her bedroom door and went over to straighten the rumpled bed covers, then reluctantly put on a white thong, a pair of jeans and a white wife beater. She adjusted it so that her braless tits fit just right, then went upstairs to help prepare dinner.

 

Chapter 79

 

Her parents were there in the kitchen talking to Cathy and except for a subtle exchange of looks, nothing was said about their earlier conversation. Although things were a little tense at first, she soon relaxed once she realized Cathy was going to keep her word and not spill the beans. They had the meal almost ready when Steve arrived, then his father a few minutes later. Dinner went well, without any awkwardness between Angie and Cathy, although a couple of looks from Steve told her he sensed something had happened. They talked about moving day, which would be on Saturday - two days away. Steve had the day off from work to help and Angie said Michelle had volunteered her services as well. With all the help, plus the movers, it seemed like it should go fairly quickly.

After the dishes were done, the parents retired to the family room while Steve and Angie retreated to the basement. As soon as they were down the stairs, Steve turned to her and asked, “What’s up between you and Mom?”

“What do you mean?” She planned on telling him of course, but was curious what he’d seen to make him ask. She thought she’d been pretty cool and not acted unusual.

He shrugged. “I can’t exactly put my finger on it, but something seemed…off. Did you two have a fight or something?”

Angie went over to the couch and sat down, patting the cushion beside her. “Or something,” she said as he sat down. She told him everything and he sat in stunned silence until she finished, even telling him how her and Michelle made love in her room afterward.

“Holy fuck,” he said in a low voice. “She knows. But, how?”

Angie shrugged and leaned her head on his shoulder. “She’s a smart woman, baby. She just watched us and figured it out, I guess.”

Steve sighed knowingly. “Yeah, she is smart, especially about stuff like that. Like how she knew me and you were doing it.”

Angie nodded, her hand caressing his chest. “Speaking of which, do you still want to meet up with Michelle tonight?”

He nodded absently, his mind obviously still occupied with the fact his mother knew he was having threesomes. “Huh, oh yeah, sure.”

She paused for a moment, then sat up and looked into his eyes. “I need to tell you what I did today,” she said. He licked his lips and gave a slight nod.

“I figured you were with Jake.”

“Yes, I was. Does that bother you?”

He took a deep breath, then shook his head. “I guess not. I mean, it does in a way because I wasn’t there too, but I can deal with it.”

She leaned in and kissed him. “I’m sorry, baby. I should have thought of that. I promise - no more guys unless you’re there, ok?”

He smiled. “Thank you, Angie, but I’m not going to ask you to do that. Just promise me that I’ll always be number one.”

“Oh, hell, yes!” she exclaimed, climbing onto his lap and straddling his hips. “I’m so in love with you I’d stop seeing everyone if you asked me to.” She thought for a second, then added, “Well, maybe not Michelle…I couldn’t leave her any more than I could you. But everyone else…pffft…gone!”

He chuckled and grabbed her ass, pulling her tighter to his stiffening cock. She ground against him, despite her tenderness, and they kissed deep and hungrily. Her mother’s voice forced them to stop.

“Hey, you two! We’re going out for about an hour. Try to behave, ok?”

“Ok, Mom!” Angie called back. “We’re going to go meet Michelle anyway.”

“All right, honey. Don’t be too late, ok?”

They promised not to and a few minutes later they heard all four of their parents leave. Angie grinned at him. “Hmm…an hour, huh? I wonder how fast Michelle could get here?”

Steve laughed and nibbled on her earlobe. “I’m gonna need more than an hour, baby.”

She giggled and picked up the phone while still straddling him. She dialed Michelle’s number and when she answered, Angie had her tongue back in Steve’s mouth.

“Mmmm…oh, hey darlin’!” Angie said, pulling away from him.

“Why, hello yourself!”

“Want to meet us and maybe get lucky, sexy?”

Michelle giggled. “Sure! What are my chances?”

“Hmm…I’d say Steve should be able to satisfy both of his women tonight, wouldn’t you, honey?” He nodded and grinned, rubbing his even harder member against her heated pussy. “Ooo…he says yes!”

Michelle laughed and agreed to meet them at the creek. Angie hung up and her and Steve made out for a few more minutes before she finally let him up. She watched as he adjusted his fully hard cock inside his jeans.

“I’d be happy to take care of that for you before we go,” she said, licking her lips, her smoldering eyes meeting his. His eyebrows shot up and a wide grin spread across his face.

“Well, technically it is your fault,” he said, rubbing his chin thoughtfully. Angie laughed and dropped to her knees in front of him before he could say another word. He watched with an amused smile as she expertly had his jeans unfastened and his hard cock in her hand in record time. She stroked it once or twice, looking up at him.

“I’d prefer to take my time and really enjoy your cock,” she said, touching her tongue to the tip, “but we don’t want to keep Michelle waiting so I better get busy.” With that, she opened her mouth and literally swallowed almost his entire length, her tongue rolling back and forth on the tender underside. She began to pump back and forth, sucking hard, while her hand stroked him. She’d managed to get him quite turned on as she’d been grinding her steamy pussy against him, even with their clothes on, and he could already feel the tingle as her mouth and hand worked him in those little ways she knew would have him cumming as soon as possible. He moaned as she allowed him to grasp her head and practically fuck her mouth, all the while maintaining a steady suction. Before long, he could feel his nuts contracting and pushed even deeper into her hungry mouth.

“Oh fuck…!” he groaned as he felt the cum surging through his hard shaft. Angie murmured approvingly, recognizing his body language. She pulled back just a bit and a few seconds later was rewarded with a mouthful of his hot jism. She swallowed it, and the remaining shots, then sucked and licked him clean. When she was satisfied he was finished, she gave his deflating member a loving kiss, then zipped him up and got to her feet. She leaned in and kissed him, then grinned.

“Ok, sexy…let’s go!”

He laughed, then followed her up the stairs, making her squeal as his hands teased her sexy ass in her tight jeans. They got on their bikes and headed for the creek at top speed, arriving at the trail a little out of breath, but excited about their rendezvous with Michelle. They were the core of the group, and it’d been too long since just the three of them had been alone together.

Michelle was sitting on the grass next to her bicycle and digging through her small backpack. She looked up and waved as they arrived and rode over to where she was.

“Hey gorgeous!” Angie called out as she skidded to a stop.

“Hiya, beautiful!” Michelle countered, grinning. She winked at Steve. “And sexy!”

Steve merely laughed and watched as the two girls hugged and kissed, then he and Michelle did. Angie stood watching, a little smile on her face. When they separated, Michelle noted her lustful look.

“What?”

Angie licked her lips. “I get so turned on when I watch you two making out!”

Michelle waggled her eyebrows and pressed her body to Steve’s. “Oh, yeah?”

Angie nodded, her smile growing. “Oh yeah.” She moved closer. “I want to watch you fuck…right now.”

Michelle looked up at Steve, who shrugged and said, “Hey, who am I to argue!”

“Come on,” Angie said. She knew the perfect spot.

She led them down the faint trail to the place where she and Jake had watched Evan and Jennifer that afternoon. “Right there,” she said, pointing to the patch of grass by the creek bank. Michelle grinned and began to remove her top. Steve also began to undress, but Angie simply watched them, her eyes moving from one to the other.

“Aren’t you getting naked, too?” Steve asked her as he pulled off his shorts to reveal his rapidly growing cock.

Angie shook her head. “Not until your cock is slamming into her cunt,” she said, her blue eyes glittering.

Michelle pulled her panties off and stood naked except for her sneakers. “But you are going to join us, right?”

She nodded. “Oh, yes…when the time is right.” She went over and took Michelle’s hand, leading her over to a fallen tree. She bent her over so that her arms were on the trunk and her bare ass was positioned for Steve to conquer. Angie leaned in to whisper into her ear as she beckoned Steve over. “So tell me, you little slut…where do you want it? In that hot little cunt, or up your tight asshole?”

Michelle felt her juices really start to flow as Angie’s dirty talk began to turn her on even more than she already was. She sensed Steve directly behind her and few seconds later felt the wet tip of his engorged cock rubbing along her ass crack, over her tiny back door, then down to her moist and ready pussy.

“Oh, god…both!” she gasped, rolling her hips against him. Angie motioned for Steve to continue to tease her.

“Both? You really are a horny little slut, aren’t you?” Michelle nodded, amazed at how much this was turning her on. “I bet you’d like to have a cock in each hole at the same time, wouldn’t you?”

Michelle was lost in the carnal feelings and nodded without even fully realizing what Angie was saying. “Oh, yes, please…fuck me anywhere…just fuck me!”

This was really getting Angie excited as well, and the look on Steve’s face told her he was getting very turned on, too. “Hmm…in a minute, slut. I want to make sure you really want it first.”

Michelle’s ass pushed back, but Steve was following Angie’s direction and moved back so she couldn’t make him enter her. She moaned in frustration. “Oh, please! Just fuck me!” she cried.

Angie nodded to Steve and he stepped forward, the head of his cock sliding easily through her slick lips. Michelle moaned again and pushed back, but Steve again eased off. She let out another cry of frustration.

“Please, stop teasing me! I need to be fucked now! I’m begging you…please…please just…”

Her pleas were silenced as Angie nodded to Steve and he thrust into her in one hard push, burying his hard cock in her dripping, hot cunt. She cried out and braced herself with her arms, her eyes closed as her pussy was finally filled with the hard cock she longed for. Steve pulled back and hammered in again, this time grabbing her hair and wrapping it around his fist. He pulled back on her hair and drove in again, causing her to cry out in ecstasy so loudly that if anyone were in the clearing they’d be sure to hear her.

As she watched her boyfriend pound harder and harder into her girlfriend’s sweet pussy, Angie began to undress. Despite her tender pussy, she was so turned on right now she didn’t care how uncomfortable sex would be. She was going to get fucked, too. Hard.

She got naked and reached for her backpack, where she had a little surprise. Inside was a new purchase - a strap on dildo. When she’d asked Michelle if she wanted a cock in both holes at once, she wasn’t kidding. She attached the straps, cinching them tight, then made sure the little nub was positioned at her clit before smearing a liberal amount of lube all over the long rubber shaft. The whole time she could hear Michelle’s cries, Steve’s grunts, and the slapping sound of their bare flesh.

She turned around and tapped Steve on the shoulder. He looked over at her, his face flushed from exertion. His eyes went wide when he saw the dildo protruding from her pussy and Angie grinned, bringing a finger to her lips. She pointed to the grassy area and leaned in to whisper in his ear. “Get her on top!”

He looked down at the well-lubricated prosthetic and nodded, although he still seemed a bit uncertain. Angie chewed on her lips and let her eyes tell him that she wanted, no needed this to happen and he seemed to get the message. She moved up to where she could whisper into Michelle’s ear while keeping her toy out of her line of sight.

“Are you enjoying my boyfriend’s big cock, you little whore?” Michelle grunted a yes. “Good…he’s going to lie down and I want you to climb onto that cock and ride it hard. Do you understand?”

“But…what about…you?” Michelle gasped out between thrusts.

“Never mind about me for now, you horny little bitch. Just do as I say, ok?” She gave her ass a resounding slap for emphasis.

Michelle cried out, then nodded and closed her eyes as Steve’s cock slammed home again. Angie stepped back and turned around, keeping her hands over the straps so Michelle wouldn’t suspect, not that she was in any condition to see much anyway. From her flushed face, it looked like she’d already had at least one good orgasm already. There would be plenty more to come.

Steve led her to the grass and lay back, his hard, wet cock pointing straight up. Michelle straddled him and placed her pussy at the tip. As soon as her back was turned, Angie came up behind her and placed her hands on her shoulders, leaning in.

“Mmm…go ahead, whore…you know you want to feel that hard cock inside you again!” She pressed down on her friend’s shoulders and felt Michelle’s body shudder as she impaled herself on Steve’s cock. “Oh, yeah…feels good, doesn’t it?” Michelle nodded, her eyes closed as her pussy was once again flooded with the incredible sensation of being stretched by a big cock. “You like it up the ass, too, don’t you, whore?”

“Y…yes…” Michelle panted as she began to move up and down.

“Do you mind me calling you a whore, or a slut? Because that’s just what you are, you know.” Michelle nodded. “Tell me what you are.”

“I…I’m a slut!” Michelle gasped as she sank down onto Steve’s cock.

Angie moved in so that her lips brushed against Michelle’s ear. “And what else?” When after several seconds Michelle didn’t respond, Angie reached down and slapped her ass. She cried out. “I said, what else are you besides a slut?” Angie’s breath was hot in her ear.

“A…a whore!” she panted, “I’m a whore!”

“Mmhmm…you certainly are,” Angie said, smiling. “And you know what whores like, don’t you?”

Michelle’s tongue flicked over her dry lips. “To…get…f…fucked!” she gasped.

“Yes, they do,” Angie said. She moved into position behind Michelle and pushed her forward so that her tiny back door was revealed to her. She reached down and began to rub a lubed finger over the puckered opening. “You have such a sweet little asshole, baby.” Michelle groaned as the combined sensations of Steve’s cock in her pussy and Angie’s finger teasing her asshole pushed her closer to another orgasm. “I’d really love to fuck it. Will you let me put my big, hard cock in your little asshole while Steve fucks your tight cunt?”

Michelle’s muddled brain tried to make sense out of this, but it simply didn’t compute. Angie didn’t have a cock! What the hell was she talking about?

Angie’s breath was once again in her ear and her finger began to work its way into her ass. “I know what you’re thinking - that I don’t have a big hard cock.” She felt Angie move from behind her and up next to her. “Take a look, whore.” Michelle opened her eyes and was astonished to see the realistic looking dildo attached over her pussy. She looked up at her friend, her hazy eyes holding a confused look. Angie grinned. “I’m going to fuck your ass while Steve keeps fucking that hot pussy.” Michelle felt a pang of fear and started to shake her head, then remembered how good it felt the last time she’d had anal sex and was intrigued at the idea of a double penetration.

She nodded. “Just…be careful…ok?”

Angie smiled. “Of course, baby. Just yell ‘stop’ if it’s too much.” Michelle nodded and Angie leaned in, once again taking on the dominant persona. “You’ll love it. You’re too much of a loose fucking slut not to!”

Michelle felt herself approaching another orgasm just at the thought of being double fucked and as she felt the hard tip of the dildo press against her tight anus, she moaned and leaned forward, spreading her cheeks wide. Angie applied pressure, working the slippery head into her little brown star. Michelle’s moans became louder but she didn’t tell her to stop, so she kept at it. Finally, the tip spread her open and slipped inside. She howled and arched her back and Angie paused, unsure if she was liking it or if was hurting her. She leaned forward, being careful not to push in any further. “Are you ok, baby?”

Michelle nodded. “Y…yes…oh god…it feels…so…so…ohhh…”

Steve had eased up his movements, pulling back so that only the tip of his cock was still in her hot hole. This was turning him on like never before and bringing him close to the point of no return and he needed a break. He also wanted to make this as easy on Michelle as possible. Angie looked down at Steve but spoke to Michelle. “Do you want more, slut?” Michelle’s head bobbed up and down. “You have to tell me what you want,” Angie told her.

“Please…don’t stop!”

Angie grinned. “Don’t stop what?”

“Don’t stop…fucking my ass!” Michelle cried out in a half moan.

Angie pushed in a little more and Michelle reacted with another loud yelp. Still, Angie fed more of the hard plastic cock into her distended back door. When about half of it was buried in her ass, Michelle gasped, “No more! That’s all…I can take!”

Angie leaned over her, pulling on her long hair. “Ok, whore…now you’re really gonna get fucked!” Angie pulled out, then pushed back in a few times until she felt Michelle start to get used to the foreign object in her ass. When she began to moan in pleasure, Steve resumed fucking her cunt as Angie pulled out of her ass. They quickly worked into a steady rhythm and Michelle began to moan non-stop. She cried out and Angie felt her muscles tighten as another orgasm engulfed her, forcing them both to stop until she relaxed again. This happened several times and Angie wondered just how much more stimulation she could take. The little nub on the dildo was rubbing against her clit and as tender as she was, it was bringing her to her own orgasm quickly.

Michelle was barely able to hold herself up, her upper body lying on Steve’s chest as both of them continued to ravage her. Every once in a while she’d moan, but her body was like that of a rag doll. Angie drove into her tight ass and groaned as a powerful orgasm rippled through her own body, causing her to shudder in exquisite satisfaction.

After she came down from her orgasm, she sensed that Michelle had taken about all she could handle and began to withdraw the hard cock from her badly stretched back door. She didn’t move, but let out a long groan as Angie withdrew. She unfastened the dildo and gently lifted Michelle up, peering into her dazed face.

“Michelle, baby? Are you ok?”

Her tongue darted out and her eyes flickered open. She turned to Angie and nodded, a sleepy, dreamy smile on her face. “H…holy fuck!” she gasped in a hoarse whisper.

Angie looked down at Steve, who was watching them. His face was flushed red and beads of perspiration coated his body from the exertion. “What about you, baby? Are you ok?”

He nodded and their eyes met. “It’s time you got some cock too, you little slut!” he said, his eyes wild with lust for her.

Angie grinned and helped Michelle lift herself from his cock, then helped her lie down on the soft grass. She gave her a kiss, then went back to her man. Steve got to his feet while she was helping Michelle and pointed to the fallen tree she’d bent Michelle over earlier. “Over there, bitch!” he growled.

Angie nodded and went over to the tree, placing her hands on the peeling bark. Steve came up behind her and kicked her feet apart, then shoved her head down so that it was almost resting on the log between her hands. His hand went between her legs and his fingers dipped into her dripping pussy. “I think that cunt’s ready for a good fucking, whore,” he said, pulling his fingers out and stepping up so that the tip of his cock slipped along her enflamed and tender labia. Angie moaned and wriggled her ass.

“Oh, yes…please fuck me! I’m such a whore! I need your big, hard cock inside my cunt!”

He grinned. This role playing was a huge turn-on. He grasped her long golden hair and pulled, forcing her to arch her back and lift her head. “Then get ready, slut!” As he said that, he pulled back, then drove all the way into her hot tunnel. She cried out in a mixture of pain and pleasure, her pussy still very tender from that afternoon. It didn’t matter. She was going to fuck him until he unloaded a big load inside her, pain or no pain. Again and again he slammed into her, his hand pulling her hair with each thrust. Angie felt her pussy contract after only four or five pumps and she cried out as she came, her cunt spewing her juices all over his cock and down her inner thighs. Steve continued to pound mercilessly at her tender twat, pulling hard on her hair and giving her ass an occasional slap.

They kept up this furious pace for several minutes, with Angie feeling like she was cumming the whole time. Finally she groaned loudly, every muscle tense as a powerful orgasm rippled through her. Through haze of her pleasure, she heard Steve’s own moans and felt a sudden wet, heated rush in her pussy as he unloaded a huge amount of his hot cum inside her. That only served to push her trembling body over the edge once again and she shrieked as another orgasm pulsed through her already weakened body.

They both fell panting against the log, Steve hovering over her with his hands resting beside hers on the rough bark while she merely lay her forehead against it. Both were panting and gasping for breath and it was several long moments before he finally stood up and pulled his half-hard cock from her swollen and dripping pussy. She moaned softly at the loss, then forced herself to stand and turn to him.

He smiled at her, but his eyes held a look of concern. “Are you ok? That was pretty intense.”

She blew out a long breath and wiped her brow. “Wow! I can’t believe how turned on that made me!”

“You and me both!” Michelle said from the grass behind them.

They both looked over and saw the pretty brunette sitting on the grass, leaning back on her arms as she watched them. She was still completely naked and grinning up at them. “Where in the fuck did you get this thing?” she asked Angie, holding up the strap-on.

Angie laughed and they both went over, taking a seat next to her. “I bought it online last week. So you really liked it?”

Michelle’s tongue licked her dry lips and she nodded. “Yeah, I mean…it was kinda scary at first, but I trust you. And being fucked by you…wow! What a turn-on!” She grinned and gingerly dropped a hand between her legs, wincing. “I don’t know if I can ride my bike home, but holy fuck!”

Steve studied her closely, looking for any signs that they’d gone too far. But she seemed genuine in her response and he could see no resentment or hurt in her eyes. “Are you sure you’re ok?”

She nodded, taking his hand. “I’m sure,” she replied, meeting his eyes. “But it felt like I was cumming non-stop the whole time! I’m freakin’ exhausted!”

Angie leaned in and kissed her. “Will you do me next time? I can’t wait to try it!”

“Sure, if you want me to,” she replied.

“Fuck yeah! And don’t forget the dirty talk!”

Michelle’s eyes lit up. “Oh my god! That was so hot!”

“You didn’t mind that?” Steve asked, a quizzical look on his face. “I mean, I like a little dirty talk, but Ang was really going all out!”

Michelle shook her head vehemently. “Oh, no, I loved it!” She lifted Angie’s hand to her lips and kissed it softly. “I am your slut and whore, baby!” she said with a wicked little wink. She looked up at Steve. “Yours too, lover, so pour it on! I can take it!”

Steve looked at Angie. She gave him a huge grin and nodded. “That goes for you too, babe!”

They sat there for several minutes chatting when Steve suddenly stopped and raised a hand. “Did you guys hear that?”

All three strained their ears until they all heard a faint voice coming from the direction of the clearing. Immediately, they all reached for their clothes and started dressing. It was unlikely whoever it was would come down to this little-known area, but they weren’t taking chances.

They got to their feet, with Michelle a little unsteady, and began the short hike back to the main clearing where they’d left their bikes. They emerged a few minutes later to find Mandi and Ashley spreading out towels on the grass. Both girls wore bikini tops and shorts and looked up as the three teens came into view.

“Oh, hey,” Ashley said. “We were wondering whose bikes those were.”

Mandi recognized Steve and Michelle. Like Jake, she was in one of his classes and she knew Michelle slightly. “Hi Steve, Michelle.” She smiled at Angie. Ashley also turned to them and nodded a greeting. Angie met her eyes briefly before Steve spoke up.

“Hey Mandi, Ashley.” Michelle also said hi. Steve put an arm around Angie. “This is Angie Delaney. She just moved to town.”

Mandi smiled. “Hi Angie, nice to meet you. I‘m Mandi Banks.” Angie greeted her and then looked over at Ashley, who was watching her intently. Once again she made eye contact with the sexy senior, then quickly scanned her tight little body. She looked even sexier close up and her almond shaped eyes reminded her of Lin.

Ashley stepped forward and extended a hand. “I’m Ashley Morrison. Welcome to Mason.”

Again, their eyes met and Angie gripped her soft hand maybe a second longer than was necessary before releasing it. She was trying to drop hints without it being too obvious, just on the slim chance her instincts about the cute cheerleader were wrong. Ashley gave her a somewhat nervous smile, then pulled her hand away gently, a slight look of confusion in her dark eyes.

“Are you going to Mason High this fall, Angie?” Mandi asked, bringing her back to the rest of the group.

“Huh? Oh, yes. I’m already registered.”

“Cool. You should try out for cheerleader. You’ve sure got the body for it.” She turned to Ashley, who was still watching Angie. “Don’t you think, Ash?”

Ashley nodded, seeming to come out of a daze. “Oh…sure, you really should.”

Angie smiled at them. “I was thinking about doing that. I was on the squad at my old school.”

“Awesome,” Mandi replied, giving her a bright smile. “Tryout are the Saturday before school starts, at the football field. Eight am. I hope we see you there!”

Angie smiled and took Steve’s hand. “I think you will!” She glanced over at Ashley, whose brow furrowed slightly as she noticed Steve and Angie holding hands. Mandi noticed as well and giggled, her blue eyes sparkling.

“I see you’ve already found a boyfriend!”

Steve felt his face flush and couldn’t stop himself from grinning foolishly. Angie leaned in closer to him. “Yeah, we’ve known one another for years.”

“Ang, I have to get going,” Michelle said, touching Angie’s shoulder.

Angie turned and could see that the hard double reaming they’d given her was causing her more discomfort. “Oh, ok, Michelle.”

They picked up their bikes and after a cheery farewell to Mandi and Ashley, began walking them toward the path. Michelle was limping and they went slow enough that she could easily keep pace.

“Did you see the way Ashley looked at you when you took Steve’s hand?” Michelle said when they’d moved far enough away that the other girls couldn’t hear.

Angie nodded, a wide smile on her face. “Uh-huh…I believe Miss Ashley has some naughty ideas about other girls!”

Michelle chuckled. “She couldn’t take her eyes off you! What were you doing, sending out some secret signal?”

Angie laughed. “Maybe I was, I dunno! But there was definitely something there!”

Steve listened to this exchange without interrupting. He wasn’t sure how he felt about Angie considering adding another member to their group. Six was already twice what they’d originally planned for and although Ashley was super hot and sexy, would it be wise to bring her in? Or was he just acting jealous? He sighed to himself. He wasn’t even sure he was capable of jealousy considering the weird and wonderful relationship he shared with her and the others.

They reached the paved road and mounted their bikes. Michelle found she could ride as long as she didn’t sit. Angie was much the same way after her long day of sex and stood on her pedals as well. When they arrived at the school, they stopped.

“So, want to get together tomorrow?” Angie asked, knowing Steve had to work. “We could go swimming or shopping or just hang out somewhere.”

Michelle shook her head. “I can’t. Artie’s coming home tomorrow and I promised I’d wait for him to call.” She rubbed her crotch. “Although I don’t know if I can handle doing anything!”

Angie grimaced. “Aw, sorry, Michelle. You should’ve said something!”

Michelle grinned, leaning in to kiss them both. “Are you kidding? I wouldn’t have missed that for anything!” Angie and Steve chuckled at her obvious enthusiasm for double-penetration. “He’ll have to be happy with a bj…well, maybe more than one!” She gave them a wink and peddled off. “See you both Saturday!” she called back as she waved goodbye.

Angie looked up into Steve’s eyes. “You’ve been awfully quiet. Is everything ok?”

He shrugged. “Sure, you two were talking and I didn’t want to interrupt.”

She stepped closer. “Steve, I know you better than that. What is it?”

He smiled and shook his head. “Nothing, really.” He swatted at a mosquito on his arm. “C’mon, let’s go home before they eat us alive!”

He jumped on his bike and began to ride toward home. She stared after him for a second, then jumped on her bike and caught up to him, riding in silence the rest of the way home.

Family Friend - Part 21

bjcortland on Teen Stories

 Chapter 74

Angie walked along the sidewalk after watching her parents have sex in their new house. Why had that excited her? Was it the voyeuristic aspect? That had to be it. Even as sexually curious as she was, the thought of her parents having sex wasn’t anything that excited her in itself. Somehow she’d been able to detach that part of the experience so that in her mind she wasn’t watching her parents having sex, but two strangers. Did that sound as strange as it seemed to her?

She thought about it as she made her way to Steve’s house and jumped on his mother’s bicycle. She was certain at this point she’d put more miles on it than Karen had in all the years she’d owned it.

She started down the street, trying

Read More
to decide where Michelle and Kristi may have gone. If they’d managed to get Jake to fall for Michelle’s twisted little plan, the logical place would be the creek. She swung in that direction and picked up her speed a little. If she hurried, she might get there in time to see a little action!

She hadn’t gone too far when she spotted a familiar figure riding toward her. Michelle pulled up and they stopped by the school. Angie grinned at her friend, her disheveled hair and huge smile a dead give-away that she’d been recently fucked.

“Hey, there,” Michelle said.

Angie looked her up and down and shook her head, still grinning. “You little slut!” she exclaimed.

Michelle looked down at her rumpled clothes and back up to her, her eyes glittering. “That obvious, huh?”

Angie laughed and pointed to the bleachers by the football field. “C’mon. I want to hear all about it!”

They rode over and leaned their bikes against the metal bleachers, then sat down on the bottom row.

“Ok, spill!” Angie said, eyeing her with an amused grin. “And I want details!”

Michelle giggled and took out her hairbrush. She began untangling her hair as she began the story. “Well, he fell for it,” she said, pulling a twig from her hair.

“Yeah?”

“Oh, yes. I wish you could’ve seen the look on his face when I was sucking on him and he thought it was Kristi until she whispered in his ear!”

Angie laughed and tried to picture the shocked look on Jake’s face. “So, did you tell him about all of us?”

She nodded. “Yeah, and we really poured on the drama about how important it was for him to keep his mouth shut.” She explained about how his dick shrank back to a flaccid state despite having two naked girls lying next to him. “He knew we were serious. I don’t think he’ll say anything.”

Angie nodded. “Good. So, what do we do now?”

Michelle shrugged. “We kinda left that up in the air. He and Kristi were still at the creek when I left. I thought maybe they needed some alone time to work out how their relationship was going to fit into this.”

Angie smiled and rubbed a hand along her bare thigh. “You’re so thoughtful,” she said softly, their eyes meeting.

Michelle smiled and was about to lean in for a quick kiss when a shout reached their ears and they turned to see some kids running across the field and tossing a football. They pulled apart and grinned smugly at one another.

“I wish we could be more open about our relationship,” Michelle said, taking her hand.

Angie smiled sadly. “Me too. But with so many others involved, we don’t dare come out.”

Michelle nodded. “I know, and I understand that. It’s just that…I really care about you a lot.” she looked deep into Angie’s blue eyes. “I love you, Ang.”

Angie glanced over at the kids, who weren’t paying any attention to them, then brought Michelle’s hand to her lips, kissing it softly. “I love you, too, Michelle.”

Michelle smiled and Angie could see tears welling up in her eyes. “God, how can I have such strong feelings for all of you!?” she exclaimed, wiping her eyes.

Angie gripped her hand tighter, then reached out and hugged her. “Because you have a big heart, baby, with plenty of love to go around.”

They held one another for several long seconds. Then, as if both of realized at the same time they were in a public place, they both let go and sat back.

“When’s Artie coming back?” Angie asked after a moment of silence had passed.

Michelle sighed. “Not ‘til Friday. His parents wanted to stay a couple more days.” She remembered the dirty pics she’d sent him. “Oh my god, you won’t believe what I did!” She explained how Artie had asked her to send him a picture of herself and how she’d taken a couple of sexy ones as well.

Angie grinned. “Do you think you could send those to me?”

Michelle laughed and nodded. “Of course!”

“You should bring your camera sometime and get some hot group shots. I love the look on your face when you cum. It makes me so hot!” Angie giggled. “I could make it my computer background!”

Michelle’s jaw dropped in mock alarm and she playfully slapped Angie’s leg. “Don’t you fucking dare!” This brought on a fit of giggles from both of them.

“Did your folks pick a house?” Michelle asked after they’d calmed down.

“Oh, yeah! We got the one on Wilmot with the pool!”

“Awesome!” Michelle exclaimed. “We can hang out at the pool instead of swimming in the creek!”

Angie nodded. “Sure, but I like the creek. It has…” She winked at her with a sly smile.

“…some advantages.”

Michelle chuckled. “Yes, it certainly does.”

It was starting to get late and Michelle really did have to get home to start dinner, so they hugged one more time and said goodbye. Angie watched her sexy girlfriend ride off across the schoolyard and disappear around a corner. She picked up her bike and started for home. Steve would be home from work soon and she had a lot to tell him.

Chapter 75

The following day Angie was sitting at the well-used picnic table on the grass by the corner store sipping on a bottle of water. When she’d told Steve about what happened with Jake, he took it with a grain of salt. Obviously, he wasn’t as convinced of Jake’s ability to keep their secret as the girls were, but he agreed they had no choice and was willing to give him the benefit of the doubt. He was working all day today again. A couple of the regular employees at the lumber yard were on vacation so he was basically working full time for a couple of weeks. It was good money, but it left her without her first choice for a sexual partner and after hearing Michelle’s retelling of Jake’s initiation, she was feeling very horny.

She finished her water and tossed the empty into a blue bin, then took a look up and down the road. No sign of anyone on a bicycle in either direction. It was getting hot and even though she was wearing cut-off shorts and a short halter, she could already feel beads of sweat running down between her breasts. A trip to the air conditioned mall would feel good, but she really wasn’t dressed for it. Of course, there was always the creek. She didn’t have her swim suit but if no one was there, well…she wouldn’t really need one. She grinned and climbed onto her bike, hoping that would be the case.

She hadn’t gone far when she saw Jake riding toward her. They slowed to a stop and she greeted him with a big smile. He returned her smile but seemed to have a hard time meeting her eyes.

“Hey, Jake!”

His eyes made a quick trip over her barely covered body before finally meeting hers for an instant. “Hey Angie. What’s up?”

She shrugged, her eyes sparkling. “I was on my way to the creek. It’s so hot and I need to cool off. Wanna come?”

He nodded. “Sure.”

They began riding slowly along the street toward the path to the creek. Jake seemed to hang back a little and for the first few minutes neither of them spoke. Finally Angie decided to break the tension and slowed down so that he coasted up beside her on a downhill. She looked over at him.

“So, Michelle tells me you’ve been initiated.”

For a moment, he didn’t reply or even look up, but she noted his ears turned about three shades of red. “Yeah, I guess so.”

Angie paused for a moment as they negotiated a turn, then said, “So, tell me what you think of it? Are you and Kristi both cool about …all of us?”

They arrived at the entrance to the trail that led to the creek before he could answer and he braked to stop by the side of the road. Angie pulled her bike next to his and dropped one long tanned leg to the ground to brace herself. She saw his eyes drop to her leg and slowly move up to where her tight shorts covered her slightly parted legs. She smiled to herself as he seemed to realize he was staring and immediately dropped his eyes.

“Yeah…I mean, I’m cool with it…and Kristi seems to be too.”

Angie leaned down and met his eyes. “It’s ok, Jake. I don’t mind if you look at me.”

He looked up at her and when he saw the smile on her face, he appeared to relax somewhat. “Uh…ok…um…sorry,” he mumbled, grinning sheepishly.

She laughed softly. “So you guys are both cool with it. Awesome!” She indicated the path to the creek. “Come on, I’m cooking in this heat!” She shoved off and rode down the path toward the creek. Jake watched her ass in the tight shorts as she stood up on the pedals, then started off after her.

Angie guided the bike down the rough path, fully aware of Jake’s lustful stares. She didn’t turn around to try to catch him, but she knew him - well, she knew guys in general - and had a very good idea what his eyes were focused on. She was becoming more than a little aroused herself and crossed her fingers that the clearing would be empty of other people. That would not only ruin their chances of hooking up, but also swimming. Without a bathing suit, any water play was going to have to be of the naked type.

She cleared the trees and it only took a second to discover that there was no one else there. She smiled to herself as she rolled across the grass to a spot a few yards from the tree by the bank. She stopped and got off her bike as Jake rolled up next to her and dropped his. She looked around as if verifying that they were indeed alone, then grinned at him.

“Looks like we’ve got the place all to ourselves.” Jake glanced around and nodded nervously. She smiled to herself at his shyness, so uncharacteristic for him. Then she watched his eyes drop to her waist as her fingers toyed with the hem of her halter top. “That’s good, because I forgot my swim suit,” she said, a mischievous grin starting on her face. Jake’s eyes lit up and he forced himself to focus on her face.

“I…I don’t have mine either,” he said in a quiet voice.

Angie looked around as if trying to decide what to do, running her hands along her enticing curves as she did. Jake couldn’t stop his eyes from moving down and watching as her hands moved along her waist to the flare of her hips, then back up to the bare skin of her midriff. She turned back to him suddenly, catching him staring. When his face flushed with embarrassment, she laughed coquettishly and studied his own lean body, chewing seductively on her lower lip as she pictured him naked between her legs.

“So,” she finally said, looking up into his eyes. “You wanna?” Her hands slid up and grasped the bottom of her halter top.

He swallowed hard. “Um, ok.” She began to lift the top up and he stopped her. “Are you sure Steve’s ok with this?”

She smiled and nodded. “He’s cool, Jake. Relax.”

He took a deep breath and nodded. “All right then.”

She began to lift her top again and he watched with baited breath for her perfect tits to be revealed. Then she stopped. “Maybe we should stash our bikes, just in case someone comes along.”

Relieved that she hadn’t changed her mind, he nodded and they pushed their bikes into the trees. Before they stepped back out into the clearing, Angie grabbed his hand and turned him to face her. She smiled, her blue eyes sparkling with the same first time excitement and anticipation he was feeling. Before he realized it was happening, she was in his arms, her soft body pressed against his and their lips seeking the other’s. They kissed hard and hungrily, hands roaming over flesh and tugging at clothing.

Angie had at this point forgot all about swimming. All she wanted was to get naked right here and now and be ravaged by her boyfriend’s best friend. She pulled his hand to her breast and held it against the supple flesh, her hard nipple poking against his palm as their kiss intensified. Despite his initial nervousness, once the ice was broken, Jake’s instincts took over and he slipped his hand under her top, cupping and squeezing the soft mounds and pinching her erect nipples. Angie moaned softly and pushed her tongue deep into his mouth, her hands dropping down to his ass and pulling him even tighter to her.

Jake soon had both of her firm tits in his hands and she pulled off her halter to give him unrestricted access. He began nibbling on her earlobe, kissing her neck, then her shoulder, moving closer to those succulent pink nubs. Angie moaned her approval and pushed his head down until he took one of her tender nipples into his mouth.

“Oh, yes!” she murmured, “Suck it!”

Eager to comply, Jake began to suck on it, his tongue lolling in circles over her areola. Angie moaned louder, fully enjoying the feel of his mouth on her sensitive breast. He pleasured that one for several minutes, then switched over to the other one, lavishing the same attention on it. Whatever Jake’s sexual shortcomings might be, tittie-sucking certainly wasn’t one of them!

As pleasurable as this was, Angie needed more. Gently, she lifted his head from her breasts and smiled, then kissed him tenderly. While they kissed, her hands went to the button of his shorts and she soon had them undone. She reached inside and felt him gasp into her mouth as her fingers brushed, then gripped his hard cock. She began to stroke him, his hard shaft filling her hand. She felt a wetness coating her hand and used the precum as lube, gently caressing the soft tip.

She broke off the kiss and looked up into his eyes as she continued to pleasure him. He looked down at her hand massaging his stiff prick and closed his eyes, inhaling a deep breath before opening them again.

“You’re so hard,” she said. “Do you like when I do this, Jake?”

He nodded. “Fuck, yeah!”

Angie gave him an impish smile. “Then you’re gonna love this!”

Before he could respond, she dropped to a crouching position before him, her face only inches from his cock. She gave him a wink, then began to lick the tip of his cock, her eyes never leaving his face.

“Oh, fuck!” he groaned. Just the idea of finally having the sexy blonde was nearly enough to make him cum in his shorts and the feel of her warm, wet tongue on his cock was almost too much for him to bear. He felt his balls tingling and only through sheer willpower was he able to stop himself from blowing his load all over her pretty face. “Jesus, Angie!” he gasped. “I can’t take much more… of this!”

She stopped licking him and pulled back, licking her lips as she continued to pump his hard organ. “Do you want me to stop?”

He shook his head. “No! I mean… it feels great, but you’re gonna make me…”

“Cum?” she finished for him.

He nodded. “Y…yeah.”

She shrugged. “So cum…I don’t mind.”

“But…”

She kissed the swollen tip and smiled up at him. “But you want to fuck me, right?”

“Y…yeah,” he said, his face flushing even more.

“So…I get you off, then you lick my pussy. By the time you’re finished, you’ll be all ready to go!”

He only took a second to consider that and grinned, nodding. “Yeah! That’ll work!”

She giggled and eyed his cock, licking her lips, then looked back up at him. “So…may I…?”

“Fuck, yeah, babe…suck it!”

Angie smiled to herself. It seemed he was regaining some of his confidence and was becoming the Jake she’d come to know. She began to lick the soft tip again and he moaned his approval. With her eyes looking up at him, she pressed her lips against the head and slowly took him into her mouth, her cheeks dimpling as she began to suck on his throbbing cock. She felt his body twitch when she began to use her tongue to rub the underside as her mouth moved back and forth along the length of his shaft. She could taste a good amount of precum and knew it wouldn’t be long until it became the real thing. She really didn’t mind his cumming this quickly, as long as he returned the favor and was ready to fuck her after he brought to an orgasm orally.

She started to caress and fondle his balls and stroke the lower part of his shaft. Jake’s body began to tremble slightly and his hands dropped to her head. She began to work her mouth faster, sensing his impending release. His moans became louder and a few seconds later she felt his cock swell in her mouth. She pulled it out and opened her mouth as the first load shot out and landed on her tongue, splashing across her lips and the tip of her nose as well.

Jake groaned loudly and thrust his hips forward, releasing another shot across her cheek and up into her hair. She continued to pump his spurting cock until he was almost finished, then took the swollen tip back into her mouth, sucking gently on the tender flesh. He gasped as she sucked the remaining jism from him and looked down at her cum splattered face. She smiled up at him, opened her mouth to show the pool of cum on her tongue, then closed her mouth and swallowed. He watched as she parted her lips and stuck out her tongue to show she had indeed swallowed his seed.

“Fuck, that is so hot!” he exclaimed, returning her smile.

She wiped a streak of white cum from her cheek and sucked it from her finger before reaching into the back pocket of her shorts and retrieving a small packet of wet wipes.

She stood up and began to clean the rest of his load from her face and hair. Jake watched this gorgeous topless girl and knew he’d have absolutely no problem getting hard again and fucking her brains out. Even then, his cock was still hard and he had a feeling it was going to stay that way!

She finished cleaning herself and grinned at him. “Now it’s my turn!”

Jake nodded exuberantly, his eyes moving down to her sexy body in the tight shorts. He reached out and tugged at the button until it let go, then lowered the zipper. He glanced down and saw nothing but bare flesh through the open fly of her cut-offs. No panties.

He started to work the tight shorts over her hips, but it was difficult so she helped him, wriggling them down and stepping out of them onto the soft needles of the forest. She stood before him wearing nothing but a pair of white ankle socks and matching white sneakers. Her body was perfect, lean and sexy and her fully shaved pussy was swollen and moist. Fuck, she looked good! She took a step toward him until his still semi-hard cock bumped against her abdomen. She looked up at him, her eyes wild with lust.

Without hesitating, he dropped to his knees and inhaled the aroma of her dewy slit. At his gentle urging, she spread her legs and he leaned into the warm wetness of her aroused pussy. His tongue darted out and touched her inflamed labia, bringing a gasp of pleasure from her.

“Yes…lick me!” she panted, her hand pressing his head between her legs.

He was still new to this pussy-licking thing, but he’d learned a bit over the past couple of weeks, especially with Michelle and Kristi together. He began to lick up and down Angie’s slit, using his tongue to separate her outer lips and seek out the tender flesh inside. Angie began to rock her hips against his mouth and moaned softly. He was doing ok, but Michelle was right - he needed more training.

She reached down and tugged back the hood over her clit. “Lick here,” she whispered, circling the hard little pearl with her finger.

Jake moved his tongue up and began to tease her clit and she immediately let out a gasp of pleasure. “Oh, fuck yes! Like that! Oh, god…!”

Sensing he was really turning her on, Jake continued his assault on her little love button, but worked two fingers into her wet, heated hole as well. Angie’s moans of delight told him he was on the right track and he began to pump in and out of her as his tongue rolled and flicked over her sensitive clit.

Angie could feel her orgasm building. As inexperienced as Jake was, he took instruction very well and she grasped a nearby sapling to steady herself. He toyed with her clit and her climax grew closer and closer with every flick of his tongue. When he began to suck on it, she lost it. Her knees wobbled and her entire body began to shiver.

“Oh, shit…!” she gasped, holding his head tight to her pussy with one hand while gripping the small tree with the other. “I’m…cumming…!”

Her words seemed to invigorate Jake and he began sucking harder on her engorged clit, rolling his tongue over it as he did. It was all too much for Angie and she felt the first rush of pleasure roll through her like a tidal wave, her knees almost collapsing as the rest of her body tensed up. She grit her teeth and groaned, her eyes tightly closed, as wave after wave of pleasure washed through her.

Finally, she began to gasp and pant and Jake sensed she’d had enough. He pulled his mouth from her spasming pussy and looked up at her flushed face as she gasped for air. His fingers remained inside her and a trail of her juices coated his hand and ran down his arm, dripping from his elbow. She jerked every time he moved his fingers even slightly and eventually he pulled them out, allowing her body to relax.

When he pulled his fingers from her dripping snatch, she dropped to her knees in front of him and kissed his wet lips, thrusting her tongue deep into his mouth. They kissed for several seconds, then she pulled back and gave him a somewhat sleepy smile.

“Wow, that was…wonderful!”

He grinned at her and raised his wet hand to show her. “I didn’t know girls could cum like that!”

She grinned and took his hand, pulling it to her lips. “That means I was really turned on!”

Keeping her eyes locked on his, she methodically cleaned his fingers one by one, licking her lips as she relished the taste of her own cum. Jake felt his already rejuvenated cock grow even harder at the sight of this sexy, naked girl licking her juices from his fingers.

“Holy fuck, Angie…that is so hot!”

She finished cleaning off his fingers and released the last one with a popping sound. “I love pussy as much as I do cock,” she said. She looked down at his fully erect member protruding from his open shorts. “Speaking of which…”

Before they could do anything, they both stopped at the sound of voices. Someone was coming down the path to the clearing! As if by unspoken signal, they both said nothing, but moved so that they could peer out from the bushes and see who had invaded the sanctity of their little sexual tryst.

At first, neither could see anyone, but the voices were getting louder and they could plainly make out at least two female voices and the lower laugh of a guy. Jake glanced down at his own open shorts, then over to Angie, who still wore nothing but socks and sneakers. He should have been terrified at the possibility of being caught like this, and he had to admit he was a little afraid. But Angie’s naked body next to him was also bringing out other feelings - the kind that made his cock grow even harder. He placed a hand on her back and began to rub it almost unconsciously as they watched the people come into their line of sight.

It turned out there were five altogether - three girls and two guys. He recognized all of them from school. They’d all been sophomores last year and would be seniors when school started in September. One of the girls, a tall, leggy blonde named Jennifer Elcar, was walking hand in hand with Evan Stark, a big full-back on the varsity football team. They’d been a couple all last year at school and it seemed their relationship was still on. Besides being Evan’s girlfriend, she was also a cheerleader, as were the two other girls.

The other three walked a little behind them. One of the girls, Ashley Morrison, was in one of Jake’s classes and he had a small crush on her. She was short, barely over five feet, with shoulder length dark hair and big, brown eyes. Her body fit her height, small and thin, but with all the right curves. She was wearing cut-off jeans and a black bikini top and he was surprised at how full her tits were. From the way she dressed at school, he didn’t think they were that big, although they could have filled out over the summer.

Walking next to her was Mandi Banks. She had long, straight, almost black hair and the delicate facial features that suggested at least some Asian ancestry. She was also wearing a bikini top and shorts and her firm, perky tits barely moved as she walked.

Behind the girls came John Makoff, another varsity football player. He was carrying a backpack over one shoulder, along a smaller one in each hand. No doubt Ashley and Mandi’s. Jake tried to remember if John was seeing either of them, but couldn’t recall him having any regular girlfriend.

Angie turned to him and whispered, “Do you know them?”

Jake nodded. “They’ll be seniors at school this fall.” He pointed out each one and told her their names.

Angie nodded and grinned. “Think we’ll get a show?” She gestured toward Evan and Jennifer, who were unfolding a big beach towel to lay on. They were laughing and touching one another in a way that suggested they were both in the mood for a little afternoon delight.

Jake shook his head, chuckling to himself. She liked to watch, too? “I doubt it - not with the others here.” She shot him a look that said ‘What does that have to do with it?’ and winked, as if everyone was a sexually open as they all were.

Mandi and Ashley were spreading out a huge towel a few yards away and John placed his right next to theirs. The girls stripped off their shorts and Jake couldn’t pull his eyes from their sexy bikini-clad bodies. Jennifer was wearing an extremely small thong style and from the back it almost looked like she had nothing on at all. Angie picked up on it and nudged him.

“Fuck, she looks hot!”

Jake nodded, unable to pull his eyes from Jennifer’s sexy bikini, even though he had a beautiful naked girl kneeling right there next to him. As all three girls stretched out to do some sunbathing, John and Evan peeled off their t-shirts and ran to the rope, each swinging far out before dropping into the water with a loud yell before the water silenced them.

After watching the guys leap into the creek, Angie turned to the girls, their slender, sexy bodies lying out on the ground, and found herself becoming very aroused. She reached down and grasped Jake’s fully hard cock, stroking it. He moaned softly, trying to keep from making too much noise. While he desperately wanted to fuck her, he was afraid any sound or movement would alert the others and they’d be discovered lurking naked in the bushes. What a mess that would make when school started! He’d be labeled as a pervert for the rest of his high school career!

But Angie didn’t seem to pick up on his nervous trepidation, her thoughts fully focused on sex. Just the very thought of having sex while all these strangers were only a few yards away was making her very excited. Her hand began to pump Jake’s cock more fervently until she could feel a sheen of precum coating his shaft. She looked up at him.

“I want you to fuck me…right now!” she whispered.

Jake was thoroughly enjoying her hand job and looked down at her in surprise. “But, they might hear us!” he exclaimed in a hoarse whisper.

Angie shrugged and grinned. “So? That’s what makes it exciting!” She turned and knelt down on all fours, presenting her beautiful ass to him, wriggling it seductively and looking back at him with the same mischievous grin. “Come on, Jake…fuck me!”

Torn between getting caught and finally getting to fuck the hot blonde, he hesitated for only a brief second, then moved as quietly as he could behind her. He could feel the heat from her pussy as the tip of his cock touched her swollen labia. She moaned softly and pushed back until his head parted her lips and slipped into her hot tunnel. At that point, he was powerless to do nothing but push his entire length deep into her steamy depths, sighing as her warm wetness engulfed his inflamed cock.

“Ohhh…yesss…” she murmured.

He looked out into the clearing, certain that their movements and moans had alerted the others, but Jennifer was lying on her stomach and chatting with the others while the guys were still swimming. As he pulled back and thrust once again into Angie’s sweet cunt, Jake noticed that Jennifer’s bikini top was untied and lying on the towel under her. Then Angie began to push back and grind her pussy down onto his cock and he returned his attention to her.

Angie felt Jake’s cock fill her aching twat and sighed in relief as she finally had what she was longing for. She opened her eyes and peered through the bushes in front of her so she could watch and fantasize about the three sexy girls as he fucked her. The leggy blonde - Jennifer, she remembered - was untying her top and from her position Angie had a nice view of the side of her full tit as she lay on the towel. She imagined herself sucking on it as Jake began to pump in and out of her dripping snatch, his subdued grunts coinciding with each thrust.

Jake was caught up in a conflict of desire and not getting caught. Angie’s pussy was so tight and hot that he wanted to cry out every time his hard cock plunged into her. The fact that they might get caught was exciting and he found he had to pause to quell his orgasm more than once. She was more than just a hot chick to him and maintaining control wasn’t easy. From the first time he’d seen her that summer in Steve’s kitchen wearing nothing but a pair of panties and one of Steve’s shirts, he’d wanted her like he’d wanted no other girl. Now he was having her, but had to remain quiet, and it was like some form of delicious torture.

Angie began to moan louder and her hips moved even faster. He noticed her hand was diddling her clit and he could feel her fingers brush his cock as their pace increased. He could feel a swelling in his balls and knew that there’d be no stopping himself this time. As his orgasm built toward release, he sensed Angie’s body starting to twitch and shake. Her fingers flew over and around her clit and he suddenly reached the point of no return, thrusting all the way into her molten sheath.

He came hard, and had to put a hand over his mouth to quiet his scream of pleasure. Angie’s pussy clenched on his cock and it felt like she was literally milking the cum from his balls, causing him to experience a sense of pleasure like never before. Spots danced before his eyes as his load was squeezed from his cock in one long, unending stream. He heard Angie cry out and was certain the others must have heard her, but he was too wrapped up in his own pleasure to do anything about it.

Angie felt her orgasm build up and suddenly explode as Jake’s cock erupted inside her. She grunted and bit down on her lip to stifle her cries as wave after wave of orgasmic delight swept through her. She managed to get a look out into the clearing and saw Jennifer glance over their way, almost making her heart stop. But then one of the other girls said something and she turned back to them. As she slowly came down from her orgasm, she felt a river of cum dripping from her lips. Jake had stopped moving and she could hear his gasping breaths as he tried to keep quiet.

Finally, she felt him slip out and pushed herself to a kneeling position, the cum seeping from her distended cunt and dripping to the ground. She grinned up at him, his face as flushed as she was certain hers was, and grinned.

“Wow! That was hot!” she whispered.

Jake returned her grin and merely nodded, glancing out at the three girls. “Looks like they didn’t hear,” he said, a tone of relief in his hushed voice, “but I don’t see how they couldn’t have!”

Angie moved closer and whispered into his ear. “I think Jennifer did, but she looked away again. Probably thought it was a squirrel or something!”

Jake swallowed hard. That was too close. He began to fasten up his shorts and Angie placed a hand on his before he could. “What are you doing?”

He gave her a curious look. “I’m getting dressed so we can get out of here!”

She shook her head. “And how are we going to do that? We left our bikes right over there!” She pointed to a spot just a few yards from where the others were.

Jake frowned. “Shit, you’re right. I forgot about that.” He looked down at her nude body. “So what do we do?”

Angie grinned. “Let’s stay here and see if they start fucking!”

Jake stifled a laugh. “They aren’t going to fuck!”

“Why not?”

“Because not everyone has sex in front of their friends, or out in the open where anyone could wander in!”

Angie frowned, conceding his point. “I guess not, but you never know, right? Maybe they’re into group sex too!”

He rolled his eyes. “Angie, c’mon…think.”

She smiled to herself. It was so fun to tease him. She wanted to stay because the idea of being naked just a short distance from them was a huge turn-on and she wanted to have more sex before they lost the opportunity. She wished Steve or Michelle were here to enjoy this thrill with her. Her fingers plucked at his shorts. “C’mon, get naked with me!” She gave him a seductive look and pinched at her nipples, nibbling demurely on her lower lip. “I’ll suck your cock again…”

He looked at her, his eyes traveling down to her firm tits as she teased her nipples to full hardness. His cock wasn’t quite soft, but almost. And even though he’d already cum twice in the last hour, the thought of his cock in her mouth was enough to start it growing again, or at least stop the deflation.

“Fuck, Angie…we’ll get busted for sure!”

“‘Fuck Angie’,” she repeated, looking thoughtful, “Sounds like a plan!”

Jake rolled his eyes as she took his wet, semi-limp cock in her hand and began to work it. “No wonder you need more than one lover! Holy shit!” He quickly slipped his shorts off, deciding this was something he wasn’t going to spoil by being afraid of getting caught.

She laughed quietly and placed his hand on her left tit. She showed him how she liked him to rub circles around her nipples, then pinch and tug on them. They turned back to watch the girls as they manually pleasured each other.

Nothing much happened beyond some conversation that they couldn’t quite hear. It didn’t take Angie long to have Jake’s cock once again back to full attention, but she slowed down once she did. She wasn’t sure how many more times he’d be able to cum and she wanted to make the most of every opportunity. Jake’s fingers had moved from her tits down to her pussy, and she coached him on how to stimulate her clit. He was a quick study and almost had her to the brink of another orgasm when John and Evan returned from their swim and joined the girls.

John plopped down next to Jennifer, shaking his wet hair over her bare back. She squealed and lifted up, exposing her bare breasts for only a brief second to the two naked voyeurs in the bushes. Angie and Jake exchanged a silent look of guilty pleasure, then turned back to the unsuspecting subjects of their naughty game.

Jennifer sat up, holding her bikini top to her breasts and chided Evan for getting her wet. He leaned in and said something they couldn’t hear, but from the expression on her face, it was probably something about how she usually enjoyed when he made her wet. She giggled and slapped him playfully. He responded by glancing over at their companions, who were chatting and not really paying much attention to them, then slid a hand under her bikini top and fondled her tit. She gasped and looked over to make sure they weren’t being watched, then moved so that his body blocked the other’s view and dropped her top. He looked down at her topless body and began to kiss her, his hands squeezing her firm tits.

While the other three couldn’t see what was going on, Angie and Jake had a front row seat. Jennifer turned away from her friends, her back against Evan’s chest, and facing directly at the bushes they were hiding behind. Angie felt a new tingle of arousal as she watched Evan’s fingers caress and tease Jennifer’s beautiful tits. As if sensing her desire, Jake reached over and began to fondle hers, mimicking Evan’s technique. She moaned her approval, pleased that he seemed to know what she wanted with her having to tell him. He was improving rapidly from this little trial by fire she was putting him through.

They watched the couple making out for several minutes. Jennifer’s hand was behind her and from the look on Evan’s face, she was giving him a little rub as he teased her tits. He leaned in and whispered something into her ear and she nodded, her breasts heaving.

He released her tits and she pulled her top back on. Once she had it tied, he turned to the others.

“We’re gonna take a little walk,” he called out to them. “Be back in a bit!”

John waved at him and went back to his conversation with Mandi and Ashley. As Jennifer and Evan gathered up their towel and started off into the woods, Angie grasped Jake’s hand.

“Let’s follow them!” she whispered.

This came as no surprise to Jake, nor was he surprised when she told him he could bring his shorts, but not to put them on. Together, they watched the couple slip into the woods and follow a faint trail that led to another small spot on the creek bank. Jake knew where it led and he and Angie slipped as quietly as possible along the waters’ edge until they arrived at the same time as Evan and Jennifer did. They found a suitable spot several yards away behind a large rock and some bushes and got comfortable while Evan spread out the towel on a small patch of grass.

Jennifer watched him, her fingers moving across her bikini-clad tits. From where they hid, her erect nipples were plainly visible through the dark fabric and there was some very obvious camel toe between her legs. Angie also noted a prominent bulge in Evan’s shorts and was excited at the thought of seeing his big cock pumping into the sexy blonde’s pussy.

Evan finished with the towel and walked up to Jennifer, taking her into his arms. They were about the same distance away as they’d been at the main clearing, but the creek was smoother here and less noisy, so they could hear a little better. On the downside, Evan and Jennifer would also be able to hear them better if they weren’t careful.

“You look so good in that bikini,” they heard him say as he stepped back and admired her lithe body. She smiled at him and pulled him in for a kiss. He murmured something into her ear and she giggled, then his hands went behind her back. A few seconds later, he pulled back, bringing her bikini top with him. He dropped it to the grass, his eyes taking in her full breasts. She blushed a little, then they moved together again in another passionate kiss.

Angie and Jake stared at the scene unfolding before them. She nudged him in the ribs and mouthed, ‘I told you so!’ Jake just grinned and looked back over at the couple. They’d turned around somewhat and now Jennifer’s bare ass was presented to them, the thin strip of her thong disappearing between the globes of her tight ass cheeks. Evan’s hands moved down her back and cupped each cheek, squeezing it and pulling her body tight to his. He broke off the kiss and said something too low for them to hear, but a second later it became apparent what he’d said.

Jennifer dropped to her knees before him and began to pull down his still wet shorts. As Angie and Jake watched, his hardon was revealed to them, thick and long. Angie smiled to herself. Maybe a little bigger than Steve, but not much. And nowhere near the size of Artie’s huge cock. She reached over and began to stroke Jake again, bringing a soft murmur of pleasure from him. He was still hard and she couldn’t wait to fulfill her earlier promise to him.

Jennifer began pumping Evan’s hard cock as he kicked off his shorts. He looked down and met her eyes, then placed a hand on her head and guided her mouth to his groin. She didn’t resist, and took his cock into her mouth without a hint of hesitation. Angie looked over at Jake and motioned for him to lie down on his back. She had every intention of blowing him but wanted to be able to watch the sex taking place on the creek bank. If all went well, she could finish him off at the same time Jennifer finished Evan.

As Angie took her place kneeling next to Jake’s prone form, she wondered absently if cheerleaders swallowed. She lowered her mouth to the red tip of Jake’s cock and took it into her mouth, murmuring quietly as she took him all the way to the back of her throat. Jake moaned and alternated between watching her and the action on the other side of the bushes.

Jennifer sucked on Evan’s cock for some time before he finally began to show signs he was about to cum. “Oh, fuck, baby!” he moaned, “I’m gonna blow!”

Jennifer pulled off and began jerking on his cock, looking up at him. Angie frowned. Cheerleaders. As if a mouthful of cum was going to hurt anyone. She continued to suckle Jake’s cock while Jennifer jerked off Evan until he came on her tits, groaning loudly. Angie looked up at Jake, who shrugged. She released his cock with a popping sound and stroked it.

“Do you want to cum in my mouth…” she asked in a hushed whisper, “…or would you rather fuck me again?”

Jake considered his choices, then said, “I want to fuck you.”

She smiled and nodded, then lie down with her head on his chest, watching as Evan helped Jennifer clean his jism from her tits with some baby wipes from her backpack. ‘What a waste,’ she thought, imagining herself licking his hot load from those gorgeous tits.

When they finished cleaning her up, Evan pulled her to her feet, then knelt down and began to work her skimpy thong from her ass crack and down those long, svelte legs. She picked up each foot and allowed him to take it completely off, standing perfectly nude in the midday sun. He looked up at her, then stood and embraced her, their naked flesh pressing together as they shared another hot kiss.

Angie hoped Evan would return the oral favor and that Jake would also take the initiative, and when Evan beckoned for Jennifer to lie down and spread her legs, she could see that his cock still wasn’t quite hard enough to fuck. Sure enough, he knelt at her feet and dropped his head between those sexy thighs. Jennifer suddenly threw her head back and cried out, her hands tugging at the grass as Evan’s head began to move up and down between her long legs.

Angie lifted her head and peered up at Jake. He grinned, knowing what she wanted, and motioned for her to straddle him. She climbed on in a sixty-nine position, and lowered her snatch to his mouth. He grasped her hips and pulled her down, his tongue snaking into her hot pussy. She sat up and grabbed her tits, fully engrossed in the wonderful feelings.

She watched as Evan must have targeted Jennifer’s clit. She cried out and her back arched up off the towel. Her hands went to Evan’s bobbing head, her fingers entwining in his hair and forcing his face tighter to her pussy.

As Jennifer’s orgasm engulfed her, Angie felt her own pussy begin the contractions she knew were the first phases of orgasm. She began to moan, her murmurs of delight causing him to moan into her pussy, increasing her sensations. She grasped the base of his cock and began to pump it as her orgasm neared. Her climax grew closer and she brought her hand up and clamped it firmly over her mouth. The combination of having her pussy eaten while watching the two seniors doing it had aroused her more than ever and she knew this was going to be a powerful orgasm. She didn’t want to risk being heard.

She felt her pussy spasm and took one last look at Jennifer and Evan lying on the towel before closing her eyes and surrendering to the sensations. Her pussy contracted and she felt her stomach muscles tighten as she climaxed and released, moaning heavily. She felt a gush of fluid spew from her wet cunt and gush into his mouth. Jake tried to swallow it all, but some leaked down his cheeks and coated his face with her sweet nectar.

Her pussy was now extremely sensitive and she lifted herself from his mouth. After cumming a few times, she was going to need a little break to allow herself to desensitize a little. She leaned down and gave his cock a quick kiss and a little suck, then lifted her head and carefully climbed off of him. She grinned down at his wet face and he returned her smile. Then she glanced over to where Evan and Jennifer were and saw that they were lying on the towel talking and making out a little. Then Evan rolled over on top of her and she opened her legs. He settled in and they could see the look of pleasure on her face as she accepted his hard cock.

Deciding that she also needed a cock in her overworked cunt, Angie lay back and spread her legs wide, motioning to Jake. He got to his knees between them and she placed both ankles on his shoulders. He placed the tip of his swollen cock against her equally swollen lips and pushed. She gasped as her aching hole was filled with his hardness, then pulled him down and kissed him as he buried his entire length in her hot, wet snatch.

They began a slow fuck, watching as Evan and Jennifer moaned and twisted on their towel. After several minutes, Evan pulled out and flipped her over, guiding her to her knees, then began to fuck her doggie style. Angie and Jake continued in the same position, both enjoying the feel of their bodies pressing together. Angie wasn’t sure if her tender pussy would allow her to cum again, but the sight of the others fucking faster and faster just a few yards away was certainly turning her on.

After several minutes, Evan began to moan and Angie distinctly heard him say he was going to cum. She watched as his face contorted and he slammed hard into Jennifer’s pussy, finally letting out a long, agonizing groan and emptied himself in her steamy cunt. That was enough for Angie and she felt her pussy contracting as Jake’s own breathing became halting. When she felt his hot load filling her, she came with him, although not with the same intensity as her previous orgasms.

When they finally came down and relaxed in one another’s arms, they looked out and saw that Evan and Jennifer were also cuddling together, seeming to be in no hurry to get back to their friends.

Angie motioned in the direction of the clearing and whispered, “C’mon, let’s go see what the others are doing!”

She stood and Jake watched her naked ass slip into the bushes, then got up to follow her. The others were no doubt doing the same thing they were doing when they left them - just sunbathing. But then again, she’d been right about Evan and Jennifer.

As silently as possible, they made their way back to the where they’d been before. As they crouched down and peered through the bushes, Jake could see that he’d been right. The three were still sitting or lounging around and talking. None of them were naked and no one was having sex. Angie turned to him, a disappointed look on her pretty face.

“Aw, damn…I was hoping to see those two get it on!” She pointed to Mandi and Ashley.

Jake chuckled. “Not all girls are into girls, you know,” he reminded her with a playful spank on her ass.

Angie giggled. “I know, but I had a feeling about those two. I dunno how to explain it, but they feel like more than friends to me.”

Jake rolled his eyes. As hot as it was to imagine the girl he had a crush on making out with the sexy Ashley, there was no way they were into one another. How would they be able to keep that a secret if it were true. Then he thought of Michelle and Kristi. And Angie, too, of course. Who would have ever suspected it of them?

As he was considering that, John got to his feet and said he was going for another swim. Neither of the girls accepted his invitation to join him, so he ran off and jumped into the water. Ashley watched him go, then looked over at Mandi. The cute little brunette was lying back on the towel with her eyes closed, one leg bent at the knee. Jake felt Angie’s hand tighten on his as they watched Ashley’s eyes take in her friend’s sexy body, stealing occasional glances up to make sure her eyes were still closed. Angie leaned in closer to Jake.

“See! I told you!”

Jake watched the two bikini-clad girls in astonishment. There was no doubt that Ashley was indeed checking out Mandi’s body, but was it in a sexual way or was she simply admiring another beautiful girl? As they watched, Ashley began to say something. They inched a little closer so they could make out what they were saying.

“…ever let him go down on you?” Ashley was saying.

Mandi turned to her friend. “Sure, wouldn’t you?”

Ashley glanced toward the creek. “Maybe, I mean, would he expect me to do it too?”

“It isn’t that bad,” Mandi replied, picking up her bottle of lotion. “Would you mind doing my back?” Ashley nodded and accepted the bottle. Mandi sat up and untied her bikini top, looked over to make sure John was still out of sight, then pulled it off. For only a brief second, her naked breasts were in full view of the two teens skulking in the bushes before she lay back down on her stomach. Ashley moved over next to her friend and squeezed out some of the lotion onto her bare back. As she began to slowly and methodically rub it into Mandi’s skin, her eyes moved down to her bikini clad butt and Angie nudged Jake. He nodded, not taking his eyes off the two teens. Even to him, it was plainly obvious Ashley had more on her mind than just applying lotion.

However, that was all that happened. She finished up and then lay down next to Mandi, closing her eyes against the bright sunshine. Angie gave Jake a disappointed shrug, then settled down to wait until they left so they could safely retrieve their bikes.

About five minutes later, John returned from his swim and stood talking to the girls as he toweled off. The chat was banal, school and football season; whether or not the girls would try out for cheerleading. Jake was getting bored and was considering pulling his shorts back on when Angie turned to him with that same devilish grin on her face, her eyes moving down to his flaccid cock. He couldn’t believe she was still horny!

Without saying a word, she took him in her hand and he felt a surge as his cock began to grow once again. She grinned up at him and licked her lips, then knelt down and began to lick and tease his growing erection until it was fully hard. As he watched the three older kids sunbathing, her lips pushed down over his renewed member and she began to suck hard on it, taking him deep into her mouth. He closed his eyes as the wonderful sensation of her warm, wet mouth engulfed his cock, then looked down at her blond hair as her head bobbed up and down in his lap. It felt so good that he wanted to cry out and tell her to suck him, call her a little slut, and generally talk dirty the way he had a feeling she liked. After all, Michelle told him to do that while he fucked the shit out of her, so he was certain Angie liked it too.

But a glance into the clearing told him that anything over a low moan would be heard by the others, so he satisfied himself with the thought that he would have the opportunity to do that in the future. With a great effort, he controlled himself as she slowly coaxed another load from his overworked balls. It took some time, but she was very adept at giving head and when she was finally rewarded with another, somewhat smaller mouthful of semen, she murmured contentedly and swallowed every drop.

She sat up, licking her lips and grinning. They heard footsteps coming through the woods and turned to see Evan and Jennifer making their way back to their friends. Soon, all five were gathered in the clearing once again. Mandi had replaced her bikini top sometime during Angie’s blowjob and after a few minutes, they began to gather up their things to leave.

“I guess this was just an excuse for Evan and Jennifer to fuck,” Angie whispered.

Jake nodded. Once he got over the taboo of spying on people having sex, he’d actually enjoyed himself. Of course, being naked in the woods with a hot, horny, and equally naked nymphomaniac didn’t hurt. Once the older teens disappeared into the woods, they stepped out of their hiding place, still naked (at Angie’s insistence). She embraced and kissed him, then looked toward the creek. “We never did take that swim,” she said with a grin. “And now I’m really all sweaty!”

With a chuckle, Jake nodded. They both kicked off their sneakers and ran off the bank, splashing into the cool water. They swam and played for a few minutes, then climbed out and lay on the grass, letting the warm sun dry their bodies before finally getting dressed.

Jake pulled on his shorts and t-shirt and watched as she adjusted her tits inside her halter top. She looked up at him and grinned, her hard nipples leaving little bumps in her top.

“Ashley was pretty sexy, wasn’t she?” she said, picking up her bike.

Jake nodded. “She’s hot. So is Mandi.”

They began to push their bikes toward the path. “Yes, she is too. But Ashley likes girls, no question about it. You saw the way she was checking out Mandi’s ass.” She thought for a moment. “I think I’m going to try out for cheerleader. Maybe I can get to know her.”

Jake shook his head with a smile. Just how many sex partners did she need? “You’ll make it,” he said. “You’re too fucking hot not to.”

She leaned in and kissed him. “Thanks, baby. You’re pretty fucking hot yourself!”

They pushed their bikes up the path through the woods, both too worn out from the afternoon of sex to peddle uphill over the rough trail, then rode down the road toward town. Before they split up to go their separate ways, they agreed that all of them would have to get together soon for a full on orgy. With a smile and a wave, Angie rode away, her perfect ass looking oh so good on the tiny seat. Jake watched her go, then headed for home. He needed to go home and replace some fluids. And maybe take a nap.

Lessons in lust with Allison pt 2

Sancho Hardbottle on Incest Stories

Lessons in Lust From Allison

Part 2

 

            Allison grinned up at me as my boxers landed on the floor. She wrapped her hands around my hips and my skinny adolescent ass and practically shoved me backwards onto the couch. My cock jutted out rapidly in front of me, and she eyed it hungrily. She moved up the couch until her lips were on my cheek. Her hand ran gently through my hair as she whispered, “ I think you’ve earned a reward for all your work tonight Greggy. You lik

Read More
e the sound of that?” I nodded frantically. She giggled sweetly and then placed her lips on mine, and her tongue slipped into my mouth. She broke away, and began to kiss me all the way down my chest to my stomach before finally stopping at my crotch.

            She laughed naughtily as her eyes met mine. Her tongue emerged and starting at the base went up the full length of my engorged member, and traced a long slow circle around the tip. An intense shudder of pleasure rocketed through my body, and I sighed deeply. Her mouth wrapped around my cock and slipped down my shaft as her tongue kept working on my tip. She began gently massaging my balls. She stopped occasionally to stroke my cock. I thought my eyes would roll back in my head. I was grunting uncontrollably and my hands gripped the couch cushions until my knuckles were nearly white.

            “Hmmm, you like that Greggy? You like having big sis suck you’re cock?” She asked as her hand pumped up and down.

            “God! Yeah! Oh fuck yeah Allie! It feels great!” She took me back into her mouth and I relished its warmth and moisture.

            It didn’t take long. After about 5 minutes at most of Allie working on my shaft, I felt my orgasm building. My eyes wrenched closed and a groan escaped my lips.

            “God Allie! I’m gonna cum!”

            She grinned fiercely at me as her hand pumped on my member.

            “Yeah, fire your hot jizz all over big sis Greggy!”           

            It only occurred to me later just how skilled Allison was. The way she spoke these dirty lines so naturally in her sultry near whisper. I lost it. I exploded, sending cum all over Allie’s hand, face and mouth. Rivers of sweat poured off my body as I sat sprawled on the couch panting.

            After a moment had passed, my eyes slowly parted and I could see her gazing at me. The sweat glistening on her body in the near dark of the room gave her a pixie like glow. There was a sparkle in her eyes that reminded me of a jungle cat looking at its prey. It occurred to me that as much pleasure, as she had gotten from me going down on her, this got her off much more. Watching me, her innocent virgin younger brother, writhe in pleasure beneath her touch, seemed to give her more satisfaction than even the greatest of orgasms.

            She cleaned most of the cum off her hands and face with her tongue. I was exhausted. The sheer amazingness of all that had happened in the last half hour or so was crashing onto me. When Allie crawled towards me and asked, “You liked that did ya?” All I had the strength for was a week nod.

            She laughed, “aw! Seems like I wore you out!” I smiled at her and petted her cheek.

            “God I love you Allie! You really are incredible!” The faintest hint of a blush appeared on her face, and a moment later we were locked in a passionate kiss. When we broke she was gazing straight through me.

            “Why don’t’ we call it a night, and tomorrow we can hang out all day, and then at night,” She tickled my now flaccid member, “I can teach you some more important lessons. Sound good?”

            “Sounds fantastic!”

            We rose together slowly, gathering the clothes up beneath our arms and heading up the stairs, still naked, hand in hand. When we reached my door we stopped and regarded each other’s bodies. Allison placed her hand on my shoulder. She leaned in and kissed my forehead.

            “Night Greggy, you were really great tonight!” I told her goodnight then laid on top of my sheets letting my sweat evaporate. My brain swam and sleep didn’t come for an hour or so.

            The next morning I woke up feeling like it was Christmas, springing out of bed. I seized my robe and headed for the bathroom. As I reached the door I could hear the shower running. Instinctively I turned to head back to my room, but the revelation of last night flashed over me and curiosity made me turn back. Cautiously I turned the doorknob and poked my head into the doorway. Steam hit my face as I peered in towards the drawn shower curtain. A moment later Allison’s face ventured around the curtain smiling.

            “Morning sleepyhead!” She said brightly. I smiled back at her silently.

            “Wanna grab a shower with me? You can wash my back for me.”

            “Sure.” I entered the bathroom and dropped my towel on the floor. I could sense the blood swelling in my dick as it did most mornings, but now it was doing so on double time. I excitedly pulled back the curtain and stepped under the warm, flowing water. I stood there for a few moments just staring at her wet, nude form from behind. She turned and looked at me over her shoulder.

            “Enjoying the view, you perv?” she teased. I shrugged, “What can I say? I know what I like and I like what I see.”

            “Clearly,” she said, regarding my wood with amazement.

            We played with each other beneath the water for a little while. Lathering each others bodies as we joked with one another pleasantly. After teeth had been brushed, bodies scrubbed and hair washed, she turned the flow of water off and turned to face me. A dripping hand glided to my cheek, and around to the back of my head. Her open mouth descended, and locked with mine in a wet passionate kiss. Slyly her hand caressed my member, sending a slight shudder through my body. When the kiss broke she said, “You might want to take care of your situation, it’ll be a few hours until we get to have our fun.”

            After grabbing towels, we each headed to get dressed. I immediately took her advice and saw to myself. The day passed entirely too slowly for my liking, and Allie’s blatant attempts to drive me wild did nothing to make things better. She walked around the house wearing tight, tight, low riding jeans, as well as an extremely low cut, form-fitting shirt. Several times she “accidentally” dropped something and bent over to pick it up, whilst giving me a brilliant view of the top part of her ass. She’d then turn and grin at my flushed and sweaty expression.

            Finally the sun began setting, as I sat in the living room pretending to watch TV. Around six o’clock, Allison walked slowly up behind me, and I felt my heart rate double. She placed a hand gently on my shoulder and I felt the heat of her body as she bent over the back of her couch towards me. She placed her lips by my ear and, in a sumptuously, seductive whisper said “ Why don’t you join me in my room for your next lesson Greggy?” My muscles tensed and a bizarre cocktail of emotions washed over me. Nervousness, anticipation, affection for my loving older sister and of course, lust for her gorgeous body. I rose, my body trembling with adrenaline, and followed.

            She closed the door to her room as I sat down on the bed and took in the familiar view. Band posters on the walls, clothes piled casually on floor, TV at the foot of the bed. The only thing I noticed as new was the rather sizable stack of dirty books, magazines and DVDs, spilling out of her duffle bag. I guess she saw me eyeing he collection of smut because she said, “You caught me Greggy. Big sis is quite a horny gal. I smiled as I looked back at her. She was beginning to cross the floor from the door to the bed now.

“Nervous?” She asked, her voice compassionate. Shrugging I said,  “Honestly, yeah, a little.”

“Aw, just relax. I’ll be nice and slow with you, follow my instructions and have fun, ok?”

I nodded.

“Now then,” her fingers began to work on the buttons of her shirt.  “Why don’t you loose the shirt?”

            I slid the shirt off my pubescent midsection and swiftly felt a deluge of blood to my between my legs, as her shirt fell further and further apart. I’d seen her completely nude twice already, but I still couldn’t help staring as her top fell to the floor and she gently ran her hands along them to her nipples. Then they landed on the button of her jeans, and a second later she was stepping out of them, towards me, naked as eve. Quickly I slid out of my shoes and socks and kicked my jeans to the side. As She sat down next to me my body became flush with warmth and the feel of her skin next to mine was dizzying.

            “Now Greggy, I want you to just sit and watch.” I nodded stupidly and watched as she laid back on the mattress and placed her head on the pillow. Her hands slid down her chest and over the orbs of her breasts, her fingers drawing circles on her nipples. One hand stayed wrapped around her breasts while the other made its way down her body to her crotch. Her legs were bent and spread. Her hand ventured down the neat strip of pubic hair to the slit of her pussy. She petted herself gently and her fingers rested on her clit. They slid up and down deliberately on that nub of flesh she’d shown me the night before, making fast and short circles on it. Her eyes were closed, and her mouth open in a small “O”. Her breathing quickened, and red rushed into her pale cheeks.

            I was transfixed, my eyes shifted rapidly from her hand to her face. I was more aroused than I’d felt before, to the point I actually felt a dull ache and throb between my legs. Her pussy was beginning to glisten with moisture, and I could hear the soft sound of her fingers moving over wet flesh. Her eyes closed tighter and her mouth opened wider. A low “mm,” escaped her lips, as she began fiercely pinching her nipples, and her head rolled back on the pillow.

            “Jesus!” She whispered sharply, “I’m cumming Greggy!” you watching?!” I leaned in on my elbows to watch her orgasm; I could smell the juices of her body faintly as she tensed with delight. A second or so passed and she relaxed a bit, her eyes parted gradually. Still panting she said, “Greggy, go to my dresser, go in the top drawer and pull out a condom.” I wasted no time following the order and within thirty seconds the condom was open and resting on her palm. “Now, I’m on the pill and I know that neither of us have anything we need to worry about catching. But I want you to learn how to use a condom, and to get used in the habit of using them in the future. Also I think using a condom will help you last longer, alright?”

            “Sure.” I said, nodding.

She beamed at me, her face still flush from her climax.

“Lay back.”

My head touched the pillow and I could feel my heart rattling my ribcage. I looked up at her as she nimbly placed the condom on the tip of my cock and slowly began to unroll it down to the base. A moment later she was crawling on her knees over me, her hands lying firmly on my shoulders. Once she was in position she began slowly lowering herself. I could feel the warmth of her vag enveloping my dick as I slid inside of her body. I sighed lowly and felt my eyes flutter.

She grunted slightly as the walls of her pussy descended inch, by inch around my shaft. Her eyebrows rose as if in surprise and she cooed gently. Finally she reached the base, and began climbing up again. I was overcome by the sensation of her tightening muscles wrapped around me, contracting and pulsating. She began pistoning up and down, getting faster and faster. Instinctively I seized her hips, and began to buck my body upwards into hers, spearing her with my manhood. My heart was pumping at a jackrabbit pace and I heard Allie drawing in short, choppy, panting breaths.

“Mmm! Yeah, that’s it Greggy. That’s really good!” She encouraged, in a dreamy, blissful voice.

“Allie…mmmm…it feels SO good!” I exclaimed, an ecstatic smile spreading on my face. Her head fell backwards and she exclaimed,

 “God I know Greggy! Fuck me! Fuck big sis! Make me cum!”

I was already approaching the edge. The condom was keeping the orgasm at bay but I knew I couldn’t take being ridden much longer. Fortunately she began to slow down and finally came to a stop. She looked down at me, face bright red, breathing harried.

“Alright….get on top of me…. Fuck me hard. I want you to pound your cock into my tight wet vag Greggy!” She slid off of my pole and a moment later was on her back, her legs spread, her feet held acrobatically above her head.

“Lucky you, you have a sister who took six years of gymnastics.” She said giggling. I could see her pussy dripping with wetness and began leaning over her, fumbling to get my cock into position. I slipped inside of her with extreme speed and she breathed in sharply then sighed. Slowly I slid backwards, and then abruptly thrust back in. The inner walls of her body were massaging my throbbing shaft.

“Mmm, yeah, harder,” she instructed. I increased my force and she grunted again. I felt a brief, painless slap to my ass as she again demanded “Harder!” I picked up speed and vigor and began rocketing in and out of her. Her tits bounced up and down and the beds headboard began pounding against the wall. Sweat poured in rivers from my body as I sunk deeper and deeper into carnal euphoria. She seized my head and nearly broke my neck as she pulled me into a deep kiss. She threw herself up into me now, matching the gyrations of her hips with my own. I was so close now. I was holding on by the skin of my teeth. I would loose it at any moment. She stared at me once the kiss had broken, her face wracked with pleasure, our eyes linked.

“Jesus Greg, you’re so fucking deep inside of me! Your cock feels so good! Ah! How does my pussy feel?”

“Allie you’re so tight and wet…fuck it feels incredible! I love you so much…uh! I’m…I’m…!”

“That’s it little brother, that’s it! Shoot you’re load inside me!”

We both practically screamed as I thrust forward final time and violently orgasmed. I collapsed in exhaustion on top of her. Her legs and arms encircled me. Long moments passed, as we stayed entangled with one another, breathing, softly caressing each other’s hair and skin. Finally, being careful to make sure the condom stayed on. I slid out and rolled off of her. The cool air of the room felt soothing on my sweat soaked skin. My hand unconsciously found hers, and I laid staring at the ceiling. It was her who broke the silence.

“Greggy, let me just say, I have popped a few cherries in my day, and you are by far the fastest learner.”

“Really Allison? You aren’t just saying that cause….”

“I’m you’re sister?”

I nodded sheepishly.

“There are grown men who have never pleasured a woman the way you just pleasured me Greggy. With practice you could be a master.”

I gushed with pride. “Wow Allie, that’s nice of you to say. You we’re absolutely incredible. I’m so glad my first time was with you. I’ve dreamt about this so long!”

She grinned at me warmly. “You really are a sweetheart you know that Greggy. Tell you what; you ought to talk to mom and dad about spending a weekend with me up at college sometime. I have some girlfriends up at school that would love to meet you.” She said, then added, “Besides like I said, practice makes perfect.”

“That sounds fantastic Allie, but how would I sell it to mom and dad?” She seemed to ponder this for a moment, then a naughty little smirk came to lips and she said, “easy, just tell them it would be a ‘learning experience.’” That night we slept next to each other in her bed. When the dawn broke we both got ready hurriedly for our parents return, dressing, cleaning and tidying the house. When they got home at around three in the afternoon, suitcases and souvenirs in tow, everything seemed just as it had.

“So,” said my mother setting down her travel bag, “What did you two get up to this weekend?”

Allison and I exchanged a brief smile, and then Allie replied “not a whole lot, I helped Greggy study a bit actually.”

“Really? That was nice of you Allison.”

“Yeah, I tried to be gentle with him. He’s a bright kid mom.”

“Well that’s sweet of you, I just hope you didn’t ride him about the whole time dear.”

 

The End

 

           

 

           

           

            

Lessons in lust with Allison pt 1

Sancho Hardbottle on Incest Stories

 

            My sister Alison is six years older than me and a total fox.  Every summer I can remember boys from all across our neighborhood would gather at our poolside to fawn over her gorgeous bikini-clad body.  I know a lot of people think it’s weird to think of their sister like that, but I’ve never had any shame about it.  As far as I was concerned, she was just like any other girl, though much hotter than most.  To this day I can remember the greatest dream I have ever had as though it was last night.  I was about eleven or so and I dreamed that I was lying in my bed and Alison appeared in my

Read More
door.  She was dressed in a short, revealing white nighty and staring at me with a naughty little smile on her face. 

“I thought I’d drop in to say goodnight,” she said.  Then she sauntered toward my bed.  She planted her lips onto mine and then looked into my eyes with that same devilish smile. 

“I love you Greggy,” and then began kissing down the length of my body, pausing above my boxers.   “Let me show you just how much.”

When I woke up a moment later I was in a pool of sweat and jizz.  From that day on, whenever I jacked it Alison’s face was in the back of my mind.  When I was 13 she moved away to college and I was left alone with just my parents.  Saturday was their “date night,” leaving me with the run of the house and ample opportunity to indulge in my porn habit.  They’d go out for a movie, dinner, and a few drinks and I’d plug in one of my favorites in the rec room and go to work on myself.  The routine worked, for the most part, like clockwork.

One weekend  my parents decided to take a trip to the Poconos, and left the house at my disposal for two whole days.  That first night I seized my opportunity and went all out.  I busted open a bag of chips, some dip, two magazines from my stash, and a box of tissues.  Then I plugged in my favorite movie: “Taboo 2.”  It’s about a guy who’s trying to have sex with his sister.  By the end, everyone in their family has pretty much fucked everyone else.  It’s a classic of early 80’s smut.

I sprawled out on the rec room couch and unzipped my fly or easy access and began to absorb the movie.  I wasn’t in any hurry since, as far as I knew, the house would be empty all night.  I didn’t want to rush my enjoyment.

Twenty minutes in I began to feel my pants tighten.  I started running my hand above my crotch, feeling myself grow.

My fingers had just begun to probe into my fly when I heard it: a muffled giggle followed by “Hi yah, Greggy!”

My blood went cold.  My hand shot out of my pants and rocketed to my knees.

“Allie?”

“I guess you didn’t realize I was coming home.”  She was grinning at me wickedly.  She stood at the top of the stairs that lead into the rec room with a duffle bag by her feet.  She was dressed in a white shirt, that revealed much of her ample C-cup bosom, and tight jeans that cut off at the knee.  Her brown hair was cut shorter than the last time I had seen her and fell just below her ears.

Meanwhile all the blood that a second ago had been engorging my cock was now rushing to my face.

“Wh- wha- what are you doing here?” I stammered.

“Not having as much fun as you apparently,” she teased.  “I’m on break.  What, aren’t you glad to see me?”  She started down the steps.

“No, no!  It’s just, um, oh my god!”  I was as flustered as I have ever been.

“Calm down, Greggy, it’s not like it’s the first porno I’ve ever seen.  Looks like you have good taste.”

I was confused now.  She didn’t seem angry.  She didn’t even seem embarrassed.  As far as I could tell, she was just amused.

“I, uh, huh?”

She walked over next to the couch and looked at the screen on which the movie was still playing.

“It’s one of the Taboos, isn’t it?”

“Well, yeah, it is.”  She walked around to the front of the couch now, still looking at the screen.  Even in my confusion I still found my eyes glued to her body.

“This was one of my faves when I was around your age.  I just loved the forbiddance of it, you know?  The idea of a mother fucking her son, a daughter fucking her father,” She sat down next to me and looked over at me smiling her devilish smile, “a brother fucking his sister.  Know what I mean?”

“Yeah, I do, that’s why I like it.”

“When I was your age I thought I was going to set a record for jilling off to this,” she said giggling.  I was dumbstruck.  I couldn’t believe I was having this conversation and I was loving every second of it.  When she glanced over at me again, she must have seen my amazement because she laughed again and said, “Yes, Greggy, girls get horny and play with themselves too, even your sister.  So do you mind if I watch with you?”

Was she kidding?  Of course I didn’t mind!  With the combination of the movie and this conversation I began to notice myself growing again.  All I could bring myself to do was violently shake my head and stammer out, “No, not at all.”

We sat in silence as the movie played on.  Allie kept throwing funny looks at me.  I meanwhile was paying half attention to the movie and half to her rack.  I noticed her fiddling with her breasts over her shirt.  She seemed to cup them lightly and draw circles over them with her fingers.  She wasn’t blatantly playing with them, but it was obvious enough.  My hard-on was raging now.  I was trying to hide it, but not very hard.  I wasn’t the only one getting excited.  I could see the hard tips of her nipples jutting out through her shirt.

She must have caught a glimpse of me peeking over at her because she turned to face me and, placing her head upon her fist, said, “Well, Greggy, your pants seem to be tightening.  Is it the movie or is it all the staring at my tits you’ve been doing?”

I smiled shyly, looked from the TV to her, and said, “a little of both, I’d say.”

“Aw, that’s so sweet!”  She leaned over and ruffled my hair and stroked my cheek.  “I always knew you had a crush on me.  It’s nice to know you still think your big sister is hot.”

“Are you kidding?!  Allie, you’re the hottest girl on the planet!”

She laughed.

“Oh, Greg, you’re so cute.  Those junior high girls must go crazy over you.”

I shrugged and looked away.

“So Greggy, tell me, have you ever done anything like that with a girl?”  She pointed to the screen where the son was in the process of licking his mother’s crotch.  Sheepishly, I shook my head.

“Nothing?”

I shrugged, “Well, I’ve Frenched a bunch and I’ve felt a girl up before, but it was through her hoody.”

“Aw!  You poor thing.”  She slid closer to me now and pet my cheek sympathetically.  I felt a rush of excited anticipation welling inside of me.

“Girls your age don’t know what they’re missing.  When I was their age, my blow jobs were legendary.  I guess they’re all teases nowadays.”

I shrugged and nodded.  My cock was barely inside my pants now and I made no attempt to hide it.

“Well, Greggy, you’re a teenager now, that’s a good age to learn about sex.  Do you want to?”

I nodded frantically, “Yeah, I want to a lot!”  She smiled warmly at me.  She picked up the remote and hit the stop button.

“Well, then, for starters,” her fingers slid beneath the bottom of her shirt and a moment later her shirt was on the couch revealing two luscious, creamy tits topped by small pink nipples.

“I’m not wearing a hoody, Greggy.”

My jaw was in my lap.  A mammoth grin spread across my face and I laughed nervously.

“You like those?” she said.  “Here,” she took my hand and began guiding it to her chest.  “It’s all right, it feels good when they’re touched.”  My fingers spread across her breast.  She sighed slightly, “mmm, play with them all you like; we have all night and this should be fun.”  I took her advice.  My fingers explored her breasts cupping them, squeezing them lightly, delicately pinching her nipples, and tracing circles around them.  All the while she stroked my unkempt hair, cooing softly in relaxed pleasure.  I got bold and pinched her nipples harder.  She took a deep breath and moaned ever so slightly.  I loosened my grip.

“Is that good?” I asked.

“Mmm, yeah, that feels good, Greggy.  I’m getting, mmm, all hot and wet.  Do you like this?”  I nodded childishly.  She giggled a bit, “Good.  Do you want to suck them?  A lot of girls like to have them licked and nibbled and sucked.”

“Really?”

“Mmm hmm.  And you used to like it a lot, too.  When I was a little girl, I watched mom breast feeding you when you were just a baby and you certainly seemed to like it them,” she grinned at me and tapped on my lips playfully with her fingers.  I grinned back and leaned forward taking her nipple between my lips.  I suckled gently on it as my fingers played with the other one.

“Mmm, that’s good.  Do that harder.”  I did as she told.  I rolled my tongue around her nipples, bit them lightly as she smiled approvingly at me and complimented my technique.  Allison’s fingers slid down my back and under my shirt and she pulled it off of me.  I played with her tits for about ten minutes and would have kept right on doing so if Allie hadn’t placed her hand on my bare chest and gently pushed me back.

“You learn fast,” she said sounding proud.  She rose up and stood in front of me.  Her breasts, moist and pale, seemed to glisten in the half light of the room.  She smiled at me and caressed my cheek.  Her hands glided down her bare skin to the rim of her pants.  “You ready to learn some more?” she asked in a hushed and seductive tone.  I nodded eagerly.

“All right then,” she laughed.  Her fingers worked on the button at the front of her jeans.  She hesitated a moment, building the anticipation.  Her smile widened as the cutoffs fell.

“Maybe I should have warned you that I wasn’t wearing underwear.  I hope you don’t mind, Greggy.”  I stared at her, beaming wordlessly.  I silently took in the spectacle of her nude form.

Her pubic hair was trimmed neatly around the slit of her puss, which seemed to be growing moist.  She raised her arms slightly and began to turn around slowly to give me a full view of her body.

“I hope you’re taking notes, Greggy,” she teased.

Finally I blurted out, “Oh my God, Allison, you’re so gorgeous!”

She blushed and put her hand to her mouth.

“Oh, Greg,” she sat down next to me and placed her arm around me.  She had her legs spread wide revealing herself.  I must have been staring between her legs because she put two fingers beneath my chin and brought my gaze back to her eyes.

“So Greggy, how much do you know about down here?”  Her free hand glided over her crotch delicately.  This stumped me for a moment.  Breasts were simple, but all I knew of what was between a girl’s legs was elementary at best.  All I knew was what I had picked up from porn, health class, and from a small circle of friends.

I shook my head and sheepishly said, “Not much.”

“That’s all right,” she cooed sympathetically, still gently petting herself.  “We’ll start with the basics.  Do you know what this is called?”

I rolled my eyes.  “Yes, Allie, it’s a vagina, I’m not an idiot.”

She laughed playfully.

“All right, smarty pants.  But we aren’t in school so there’s no need to be so clinical.  You can call it a pussy or a vag.”

I nodded obediently, “All right, it’s your vag.”

With her free hand she took mine and steered it slowly between her thighs.

“Here,” she said softly as she placed my hand on her womanhood.  I could feel the warmth and moisture of her lips.  Her smile widened.

“Feel how wet I am?  That’s what happens to girls when they get turned on.  Like how you get a hard-on.”  Her eyes shifted to my crotch where my erect dick was waving proudly out of my fly.

“Do you know what the clit is, Greggy?”

“I’ve heard of it, but I don’t know what it is.”

She moved my hand aside and spread her pussy lips slightly.  Then she indicated a dark nub of pink flesh right above the opening of her vadge.

“There it is,” she said.  Then, as if suddenly seized by an irresistable urge, she grabbed my hand again and positioned my fingers on her clit.

“mm, yeah, just keep playing with it like that, Greggy.”  She released my hand.  I caressed her slowly up and down.  She began breathing heavily again. “Harder,” she demanded in a breathy voice.  I rubbed her more vigorously, feeling it grow harder and throb beneath my fingers.

“ooh!” she exclaimed.  I stopped.  “Is that right?”

She moaned, “Mm, yeah!  Don’t stop!”  She was panting.  Without hesitation I went back to work with the same gusto.  I began to improvise, alternating speeds and circling her clit with my finger.  All the while she squeezed me tighter and put her free hand up to her forehead.

“ooh, oh god!  Shit that feels good!  You’re a, uh, natural Greggy!  Mmmh.”  I was emboldened by her praise and pulled her into me kissing her wildly.  She returned that kiss, her eyes clenched shut and her face contorted in pleasure as I played on her clit.  After a few minutes she broke off the kiss.  “Oh god!  Greggy, would you lick me?’  Her voice was breathy.  I just nodded obligingly and shifted off the couch.  I’d seen this in movies a lot and had always been eager to try it.  She spread her legs wider.  I positioned myself between her knees and looked up at her, waiting for instruction.  Quickly she spread the lips of her vadge further to give me a better view.

“Just run your tongue on it Greggy.  Up and down and around.  You’ll know if you’re doing it right, trust me.”

I leaned in and as I got closer I smelled the sweet, salty scent of her juices.  My tongue slowly ran the length of her slit all the way up to her clit.  I pressed down hard, going up and down.  I gained speed and wrapped my lips around it, sucking lightly, while my tongue went up and down.

“Uh!  Oh fuck!  Greggy put you fingers inside of me while you do that, ooh!”  Two fingers slid into her pussy one at a time and began pulsing in and out.

“harder, Greggy!  Mmm, rub the top of my vadge back and forth.  Ah!  Yeah, that’s the spot!”

Her hands disappeared inside my hair and shoved my face deeper into her crotch.  She was moaning loudly and breathing fast.  Her hands ran the locks of my hair and Allison’s body began to writhe as my tongue and fingers continued their assault on her body.

Suddenly I felt a rush of warm moisture inside her pussy and she began moaning louder still.

“Oh, Gaawd!  I’m fucking cumming!  It feels so good!”  I intensified, using my free hand to hold her in place while I sucked on her clitoris.

Finally she grabbed the sides of my head and pushed me back.  Her mouth was hanging open as she stared at me, panting.  “Jesus Christ, Greggy!  You’re a talent, that was amazing!”

I smiled up at her smugly, “I owe it to a great teacher.”

“Aww!”  She took my hands and pulled me to my feet.  “You have more to learn, Greggy, and I’d love to be your teacher if you’d have me.”

I beamed down at her and stroked her cheek.  “You are the greatest big sister in the world, Allie!  There’s no one on earth I’d rather have teach me about sex.”

She hugged my waist tight.  Then her hands slid to the front on my pants.  She began to unbuckle my belt and unclasp the button of my jeans.  That’s when she looked up at me and said it.

“I love you, Greggy,” and then my pants and boxers fell to the floor, “let me show you just how much.”

 

 

TO BE CONTINUED…

Failure

dragola on Incest Stories

Author’s Note: I’m just busting these out daily.

Really, she felt it was her fault. She had nobody but to blame but herself. Perhaps she was being a little arrogant but that was as normal reaction as one could get.

She was wearing such a loose short robe, http://files.adbrite.com/mb/images/green-double-underline-006600.gif') repeat-x scroll center bottom; cursor: pointer; color: #006600; text-decoration: none; -moz-background-clip: -moz-initial; -moz-background-origin: -moz-initial; -moz-background-inline-policy: -moz-initial; margin-bottom: -2px; padding-bottom: 2px">exposing much of her toned thighs around the house when he came down
Read More
. A strong young lad of fifteen http://files.adbrite.com/mb/images/green-double-underline-006600.gif') repeat-x scroll center bottom; cursor: pointer; color: #006600; text-decoration: none; -moz-background-clip: -moz-initial; -moz-background-origin: -moz-initial; -moz-background-inline-policy: -moz-initial; margin-bottom: -2px; padding-bottom: 2px">years old charged down the stairs, clad only in his boxers on a lazy Sunday morning: her son. She greeted him casually, not noticing his inappropriate satisfaction at her attire.

As he sat at the dining table, she had been in the midst of cleaning. Interrupting her duties, she placed his prepared plate of pancakes in front of him, freshly made. She failed to acknowledge where his eyes fell to her cleavage.

Returning to her chores, she resumed wiping the surfaces and generally cleaning around the kitchen which opened into the dining room. Often, her robe would hike up, giving a tantalizing view of her derriere which she corrected by pulling down. What she didn’t realise was who she kept giving flashes.

When he finished breakfast, like an obedient mother, she came to collect his plate before he’d even begin to budge. Once again, his gaze was averted towards her cleavage, as the angle gave a clear picture of her mature tits. If perhaps she would’ve been a bit more perceptive, she would’ve observed this; or his raging hard on scarcely shielded by the table.

Having bent over again, her robe had ridden up the crack of her ample ass but her hands were busy with the dirty dishes, courtesy of her baby boy. She had no clue that he stared lustfully at her bottom jiggling at every step. She did not discern that his offer to wash the dishes was only a ploy to buy some time to peak at his mother in perverted manner.

As she twirled around, she forgot to pull down her robe this one time; little did she know how much it would cost her. Sponge in hand; she went to go wipe the table. Bending over fully, her robe was hiked up fully, showing off her shaved pussy and ass in plain sight. She made the awful assumption that it was safe to do so, oblivious to the fact that it was the straw that broke the camel’s back.

She did not pay much attention when he dropped the dishes and rushed over to her. Standing over her, she said nothing when he finally freed his monstrous member from its restraint. When the hand finally came down on the small of her back, she reacted without resistance. She turned around, about to inquire for an explanation. Instead, the hand previously on the small of her back suppressed that movement, plastering her face to the table cloth. She felt the mushroom head poised at the entrance of his origin.

She’d failed to realise that he was a young, hormonal teenager, in the throes of sexual confusion at such a tender age. She’d missed the signs throughout of his growing desire to have her in an incestuous manner. She did not address her provocative style of clothing around the household in his presence. She misjudged what kind of effect going to the gym very regularly to keep fit would have on his impressionable mind. And now, she was paying the price for her failures.

“Drake!” Without any response, the named boy pushed past her slit and invaded her vaginal passage. As his cock became lodged within her, she protested.

“Drake, no stop, please, this is wrong!” However, her words fell on deaf ears. Having secured his place within her, he began to violently thrust his dick in and out, maintaining a firm grip on her pelvis, using the weight behind his thrust to trap her in place.

As the situation progressed, a new feeling replaced her righteous reluctance: arousal. As her possessed son ploughed away at her pussy, her body couldn’t deny the wrongful wetness she was feeling and how it lubricated his drives, not that he needed it with the vigour behind them.

She felt him slow down suddenly too, as he fully immersed his rod within her, pulling her slightly towards him. She could feel the first spurt warm her insides, followed by several others. She felt the last bit dribble out as well as when he turned flaccid and withdrew, leaving them both exhausted physically and otherwise.


Once again, she found herself home alone with her child, something she strained to call him now. She had failed to change her ways though, persisting in keeping fit and dressing seductively around him. However, this time, she knew what would be on his mind and what would occur.

As she sat on her legs in the couch, she heard his approach and then saw him in front of her. Her low cut top was enough to liven up his libido. There was no questioning when he popped his cock out, when he placed his hands on her head or when he popped it into her mouth.

She knew this was seriously wrong and that she should do something about it. She knew that in the long run, this would destroy their relationship and scar him for life. But for now, she was content to suck her son’s cock until she’d swallowed the last gob of cum out of it.

Author’s Note: Another short story for your reading pleasure.

Shona and friends - Part 7

theBlackDouglas on Teen Stories

Chapter 7 - Tuesday

Next morning my phone goes about half past seven just as I'm dressing. "Jim? It's Shona!" as if I need told.

"Hi lover!" I reply.

"Shush! Get yourself over here ASAP! I'll be in my bedroom." Without another word or allowing me time to reply she hangs up leaving me to wonder if she is just randy or if something is afoot. Grabbing some fruit in lieu of breakfast I kiss my Mum goodbye.

"Early today aren't you?" she remarks.

"Got some homework to check over with Shona." I lie.

"Not do that last night?"

Caught! Recovering quickly I say "Didn't get finished. Look Mum, about my curfew..." trying to take the advantage.

&qu
Read More
ot;Don't start. Your father and I are agreed it stays at least for the rest of this school year." she cuts me off definitely. Oh well, at least I haven't lost anything or raised any suspicions.

Soon I am in Shona's bedroom once again having locked the door behind me. "Hi!" I say gazing down on her naked form, my cock rising in my trousers. "Where's the fire?"

"No fire!" She rises and undoes my trousers causing them to fall to the ground followed closely by my boxers. She takes me into her tight throat going right down in a gulp. I moan but manage to follow her lead and strip off my top half before she pulls me out and motions for me to lie down on the bed. As I lie she rises and picks something off the floor. "No fire, only this!" She forces something down over my now fully erect cock and right over my balls. It is so warm and tight I can only think it is some sort of artificial vagina. Has she been at the 'toy cupboard' again? But then why do I need a fake pussy when I've as much of the real thing on offer as I can handle? I make to pull out but she cautions "Lie still or you'll spoil it!" Spoil what I wonder? "There!" she eventually pulls the thing off and sets it aside. "That should be set by lunchtime." She then addresses my cock directly "There, then get a fright did we? Not to worry, you should know I'm not going to hurt you!" She draws me into her mouth again.

"Shona!" I implore. "What was that?".

She comes up for air. "The mould from the willy kit of course! It arrived late yesterday, one of the neighbours signed for it 'cos everyone was out. Called me over to get it right after you left. Nearly called you right back! But I decided to spend the time reading the instructions instead. By lunch that'll be dry and we can start making copies. Plenty of them! I made sure I ordered enough of the compound and everything to make about a hundred. The girl on the phone offered to send me a free bag if I sent her one and it really was as big as I said - had to make sure the mould would be big enough to take you you see." she literally gushes really pleased with herself. "Now then 'lover' give me the measure of the real thing!" I make to kiss her but she says "'Fraid we don't have time for that." she says. "Just fuck me slowly!" She's right, today is the one day of the week for certain we would be missed if we were even only a little late having a 5 minute registration class first where all the boring and nonsensical notices are read out to us so I position myself above her and gradually sink into her pussy. If the mould was tight it still had nothing on Shona's sweet cunt! Even without last night's precursors she comes as my knob hits her cervix, her cunt walls gripping on me hard. I pull back right out clear of her pussy lips excruciatingly slowly, before parting them again on the slow forward stroke. Again she comes when I am fully within her. I do this about five times before surrendering my first jism of the day to her coming and coming and coming within her, she coming all the harder on me. She pushes me off. "Wow!" She wobbles as she stands up. I grab her in support while taking the opportunity to run my fingers lightly across her chest.

"I love you." I say for the first time of the day.

"I love you too Jim." she replies pressing my hand to her tit. "Now get dressed or we'll be late."

"Sometimes I wish we could say 'fuck it' and stay in bed together." I say longingly.

"Well we can't and we've already fucked."

"No I'd definitely call that love making." I counter. This draws the biggest smile I have ever seen from her.

"OK, agreed! You didn't take long to come.'

"Who would in that velvet smooth, ever so tight cunt of yours?" I ask "Didn't take too long yourself!"

"Don't know about who would. No other boy's going to get the chance for a good while if at all. As for me I think I'm getting quicker every time you fuck, make love to me!" she replies.

"Still a one cock cunt then?" I ask.

"Jim!" she slaps my shoulder perhaps deservedly adding "Definitely."

Once more we rush up the road to school. I swear we are getting quicker every day! "At lunchtime we can get Cath and Joyce and Babs and anyone we can round up to help us make the replicas. There are various things we can do but I think we'll stick with the basics to start with."

"You're the one who's read the instructions." I laugh.

But at registration the teacher announces Cath to be off sick, her mother having phoned in. Shona and I exchange quizzical glances across the room. I manage to get beside her as we leave. "What do you think the matter is?" I ask.

"Don't know! I'll try and phone her at break. See you lunchtime unless there's anything you need to know first." Shona replies a bit nonplussed.

The first two periods drag past but in the changeover for the last period before break I happen to catch up with Kirsty. "How's things?" I ask innocently.

"Fine!" she replies just a little too loudly before allowing her voice to fall. "Well, no actually I've got this itch between my legs way deep inside. Think you'd be able to scratch it during the break."

I smile. "Sure!" I whisper "Meet me at Miss Maclean's office." I don't know if Wendy will be there or not but by now I have a key so it'll work either way.

Kirsty is waiting for me when I arrive. "The door's locked." she says.

I knock and call "Miss Maclean!" No answer so I fish out the key and unlock it. We go in and I relock it leaving the key in so Wendy (or anyone else) can't unlock it again from the outside. "Got an itch have you?" I ask mischievously.

"Yeh, right up in here." She slips a finger into her pussy as she leans back on the desk having already disposed of her knickers.

"Let me see!" I say kneeling down, pulling her hand away and licking her clit. With my other hand I undo my trousers and push them and my boxers down. My cock is already hard and Kirsty is already very wet.

"No lower and deeper inside." she moans.

"Try this!" I say manoeuvring my cock into her. She is so, so tight but so wet with it that soon she has all of me inside her.

"Yes, just about there. I've been dying for that feeling ever since I met you last period! My knickers are so wet anyone would think I'd peed myself!" She indicates the cast-off garment. There is indeed a big wet patch on the front. Kirsty pushes up at me desperately so I start a slow fucking action but she seems to want more so I up the pace dramatically and soon she wails out her orgasm. I keep her up there coming and coming for at least five minutes until my balls tighten and my cock jerks as I join her in orgasm pumping my offering into her. I try to keep going for I am enjoying her preteen cunt too much to want to stop but Kirsty indicates me to stop. Obviously she has been coming too long to be able to continue.

"There. There's come cream for your itch!" I say as I pull up my trousers.

"Feels better already!" she says rubbing at her pussy. "I've never kept coming for so long before Jim." Her breath is coming in short pants as she speaks. "Wow! I think I'll need some more cream later though!"

"Anytime!" I say wondering just when I can fit in all my growing circle of 'friends'. "Here let me help you." I retrieve her soggy knickers and pull them up her legs deliberately managing to trap one hand inside them. I caress her bald pubes and slip a finger into her sopping love hole making her moan again.

She squirms away. "Some help!"

"Made you move didn't it!" I laugh. The bell goes. "Come on!" I say unlocking the door and looking out carefully. "To class!" Laughing we tumble out and join the melee in the main corridor. The only person to notice is of course Shona!

"Isn't she sweet?" Shona asks. Second time she's said that about Kirsty but I'm still not sure what she means exactly.

"How'da mean?" I query.

"You know? Bubbly, fun to be with! Tastes great!" she replies. "Anyway, I'm a bit worried about Cath. I can't raise her on her mobie and the phone in the house isn't answering either. I'm going to go round at lunchtime."

"Want me to come?" I offer sort of disappointed that my lunchtime menu of recent days is going to be changed.

"Don't think so. Why don't you make your peace with Bertie? I'll let you know what happens - dildos'll have to wait."

So after a couple of more lessons I find Anne waiting for me at lunchtime. Obviously Shona had primed her. "Hi!" I say half-heartedly "Look sorry about Saturday. Just wasn't my scene."

"Don't worry." she says. "I can understand that. With all the pussy you have on offer why play games?"

I perk up a bit at that happy thought but I'd still sooner be with Shona this lunchtime even if it were only to go and pay a sick visit to Cath. My mood brightens more when Babs catches us up.

"And where do you think you're going Sis?" the bright young redhead asks.

"None of your business!" Anne snaps.

"I think it is!" she says slowly. "Otherwise, like I said on Friday, I'm going to blow the whistle." This draws daggers from Anne.

"Look" I say drawing both to me. "I've got enough cock for you both but don't draw me or Babs into all that bondage stuff OK?" Babs nods beside me.

"OK!" Anne smiles and the three of us walk hand-in-hand-in-hand to the girls' house (I did say it is in a quiet part of town albeit close to the school but there is no danger of being caught out.)

Once inside the door the three of us kiss together, their two tongues in my mouth. In an instant both 'sisters' are naked and they are working at my clothes drawing then from me. Babs pushes me down on the bed forcefully for all her diminutive size, "Sorry Sis, first fuck is mine!" This I can see raises Anne's hackles as Babs spears herself on me. Just like her best mate Kirsty who I had fucked once more barely more than an hour before Babs is wonderful on me as she fucks her twelve year old frame on my large cock bucking up and down as if Armageddon is coming and this will be our last chance together. Like Saturday she has had enough before I and rolls off telling her big sister "Your turn Anne!" as she gracefully clears my dick - the money these girls' parents had spent on dancing lessons hadn't been wasted in my book! - as Anne replaces her fucking herself hard on my cock before I have even a chance to respond. Anne draws herself off on me but still I am not ready even though she is coming hard against me.

"Got a bit of a problem have we?" she asks as she slows down, me still inside her and very definitely still up for more.

"Depends what you call a problem!" I defend. "Maybe Saturday effected me more than I know. Loved being with you and everyone else on Friday night but that bit at Jude's house just was not me! Clear?"

"Well..."

"Clear? Or I walk away now and face the consequences which will be no worse for me than they will for you!" (One up for literacy over numeracy, thanks Shona!)

Anne simpers an apology but I have had enough and start to dress anyway. "You'll regret this!" she blusters.

"Come on Babs, walk you back to school." I say as Babs finishes getting back into uniform leaving Anne dumbfounded.

"That may not have been the cleverest thing to do." Babs cautions too late as we walk back through the lane.

I round on her. "This might not be too clever either!" Before she has time to react I pull her panties down and stuff my cock forcefully into her cunt going at her hard in my frustration but she is with me every step of the way coming long and hard before I am able to pump my seed into her. As I do so I see her sister Anne watching us from the path. She is playing with her own tits rubbing them firmly but her watching eyes are steely cold. "Oh-oh!" I think "More trouble!"

Adjusting our clothes, Babs and I walk on talking airily and more than a little too loudly about how good our fuck, for there is no other word for it, had been. Anne we know can hear every word - not awfully sure why we do it, perhaps to make her jealous - never a good idea, but we do anyway all the way back to school. Just inside the gate I get a text message which reads something like "Cath OK Meet me her's after school. _Love_ S." I sigh with relieve and sensing Anne to be but a step behind trying to read the message turn sharply to her.

"Look Anne, what can I do for you?" I drop my voice. "You are a wonderful lay but I'm just not into this bondage and pissing and shiting stuff. OK?"

She reddens "You know about that on Saturday?"

"Yes!" I tell her. "Pat and I eventually got together on Saturday night, slowly and gently, not like you and Jude would have wanted it. And yes, she told me all about Alice."

"You can't prove it!"

"Suppose not, but I've got a witness to what she told me." I counter.

"Who?" she demands.

"Never mind but remember I know about you fucking Jude with a plastic cock as she lay on top of her sister, about you threatening to rape Pat who'd never been with a boy with said dildo, about Jude pissing and shiting on Alice of all people as you rammed the dildo into her cunt just before Jude reamed her arse with her fist while you STILL had the dildo in her cunt." I blare albeit quietly but without uncertainty, into her ear.

"You'll regret this" she hisses.

"Not as much as you might!" I counter. "At least with me its only normal, if premature, boy-girl stuff." Either I had been listening in English after all or Shona's love of the language had rubbed off on me! "Your brand of sex is definitely kinky!" She storms off. "Sorry Shona" I think. So much for making peace, things had definitely become much worse between Bertie (and possibly her whole gang) and I.

Shona doesn't reappear after lunch and I sit rather distractedly through lessons, finally cutting out at the afternoon break - I just have to know what is going on with two if not all three of my top girls (work it out for yourself!) missing in action. I present myself at Katie's flat and ring the bell. I see an eye look at me through the spy-hole. The door opens and I am pulled quickly inside by Katie who is wearing only a robe.

"Jim! Didn't expect to see you so soon." We kiss, our tongues finding each others as my hand finds her breast going inside the robe which she has allowed to fall open. "Mumm, that was nice" she says as she breaks away. "Come through to the others." She grabs my tie and leads me to the bedroom. Cath and Shona are lying naked on the bed.

"Hi Jim!" they chorus as Katie begins to strip me for their pleasure. Soon I am down to my boxers which are then ceremoniously hauled down letting my, not surprisingly, erect cock hang free. Cath and Shona wolf-whistle.

"Ta-ra!" Katie smiles at me as I in turn pull the robe from her shoulders. Now all four of us are naked and Katie and I join the others on the bed.

"Pleased so see you looking so well Cath. I was worried when teach said Katie had called in saying you were sick." I say turning to her - she's never looked in better health in her life.

"Thanks Jim but you see..." she starts.

"But you see" Katie continues "after you and Shona left last night Cath and I went to bed, together, and lay for hours talking about everything that had happened and playing gently with each others bodies - we both came several times, just gently, not like when you are fucking us, but very nice just the same. Anyway we eventually fell asleep cuddling. This morning I'm awoken by Cath making love to my butterfly and puss with her mouth."

"Nice way to wake." Shona comments as she reaches for my dick, fingers running lightly over him to keep him interested.

Katie continues "After I came Cath invited me for a shower with her so we spent hours in there soaping each other up and playing with each others tits and puss. We both came of course!"

"Reminds me of a time." I remark kissing Shona.

"What do you mean?" Cath asks.

"Well, after Shona and I had first gone all the way, we went for a shower too except after we'd soaped each other up we fucked again - twice in fact." I explain.

"And once in my arse! Which reminds me!" Shona is up over my cock in a single bound. "Sorry to keep to waiting Jim!" she says as she slips down my long thick pole. "Feels good!".

I gasp. "Feels good to me too!" Adding to myself "Much better than Anne!"

"What?" Shona asks as the other two go to her kissing her tits and feeling at her puss around where she is impaled on me stroking at my cock too.

"Never mind" I say "tell you later." Katie's story is forgotten for now. Cath and her Mum's hands go everywhere on Shona and me as the two of us go at each other at a fast pace. With all the simulation Shona comes in no time and soon I join her, my cock jerking a load inside her. Katie pulls Shona from me, making her lie down so she can lick my sperm from her cunt while Cath replaces her on my still erect cock leaning forward so I can play with her lovely tits. She rolls her hips on me rather than using a conventional fucking motion but it is heaven on my cock nonetheless and means I can get her tits constantly. She too soon comes and after a few minutes can take no more.

She rolls off saying "Your turn Mum!". Having pulled my load from Shona making her writhe in orgasm again, Katie rises and kisses her daughter with a big wet sloppy kiss sharing the taste of Shona's cunt and my sperm with her.

"Watch me fly!" Katie declares as she takes my all sighing deeply as she does so. Again she belly dances on me but keeps her body upright so that I can see her on me to full effect. The other two come and kiss Katie on the mouth, all three tongues entwining as Cath and Shona knead at Katie's tits before they start to kiss and suck on them. The girls make to move their hands to Katie's butterfly and cunt but are slapped away. "Let Jim see me!" she admonishes. I can tell that me watching her fuck herself on my cock, knowing I'm being mesmerised by her butterfly is a turn on for her. It certain turns me on for very soon I can hold back no longer and my mortar shells start exploding in Katie's cunt just as she screams out her overpowering climax and collapses forward on me.

Relaxing on the bed again, the four of us cuddled together, hands playfully exploring everywhere. Katie takes up her story. "Where was I? Ah, yes, the shower! Well by the time we got out it was five to nine. I was late for work, Cath was late for school so I phoned both to say we were sick and wouldn't be in today before taking Cath back to bed for a cuddle. It wasn't long before we both felt randy again so I got the dildo and fucked Cath with it before she returned the favour. Then I tried it in my arse - not as good as your cock Jim, but not bad! Not long after that, while Cath was still wearing the dildo Shona arrived to see what the matter was. She took one look at Cath, stripped off her clothes and lay back on the bed legs apart and called Cath over. The two of them fucked long and slow just like you and Shona last night Jim. It was beautiful to watch - really made me wet! Then Shona took it in the bum with Cath underneath and had me play with her pussy - well she had me press my fist deep into her cunt really!" Katie sounds almost shocked but then adds "Loved the feel of her!"

Shona smiles and says softly "Good - want to feel the inside of you soon!"

Katie blushes "Anyway we were really just recovering from all of that when you arrived."

Shona jumps up scrabbling her clothes together. "I've just thought of something!" She dresses as the rest of us look on perplexed. "I'll be back in half an hour." she says going out giving us no further explanation.

"What's up?" Katie asks to no one in particular.

"Don't know what but I know who Mum!" Cath answers.

Katie smiles as she bends to kiss the end of my cock. "I want to feel him in my bum while you explore my puss Cath just like I did Shona's"

"You mean you want your daughter to fist your cunt while I bugger your arse?" I ask playfully.

"Something like that!" She says positioning herself over my cock before lying down over me taking me deep into her tight, hot arse. "Ah that's better! Better than that plastic thing - and bigger. You really do stretch me Jim. Play with my tits. Cath, my little pussy needs some attention." I can feel Cath's breath against my cock as she kisses at her Mum's puss and I can see everything that's going on in the mirror as she gently parts Katie's pussy lips and pushes a finger inside. I can feel it against my cock too! "Feels good Cath. Don't need to be so gentle though. Remember I've just had Jim's fat cock up there. Use your fist!" Cath balls her fist and pushes into Katie until her wrist has all but vanished. Katie's arse is so tight round me I have difficulty keeping going but then Cath unballs her fist inside her mother's cunt pushing her fingers deeper and deliberately massaging my cock through the divide. Full time for both Katie and I. Katie starting to climax mere seconds before my balls tighten and unload once more. The three of us are by now in an untidy heap on the bed lying on our sides. The door bell goes!

"It'll be Shona." I gasp.

"Don't worry - she has her own key." Cath replies. "She'll only be giving us some warning." Perhaps, but we don't heed it as a key opens the door. Shona soon joins us carrying some bags which she sets down before undressing once more.

"Looks like you three have had a good time while I've been gone!" She strokes Katie's puffy pussy lips before diving in to kiss them. My cock is still deep in her arse. Shona explores with a finger in Katie's cunt. "Something larger been in here?" she asks. Katie nods. "Good! I've been dying to feel you Katie!" Without further ado she plunges her fist into Katie going deep. But Katie merely simpers.

"God that feels good Shona!"

Shona literally pounds her whole fist and forearm into Katie as I lie below her still ensconced in her rear. Shona is ignoring me concentrating totally on Katie but the sensations against my cock are indescribable and I come as soon as Katie does pumping gallons more cum into her tight rear. The three of us roll apart. Katie lies for ages, still coming in little bursts as she lies. Shona and I cuddle affectionately until eventually Cath asks "What's this Shona?" She is looking in the bags Shona has brought.

"Ah well. This" she holds up a large cylindrical object "is a mould of Jim's cock. The rest is stuff for making copies - dildos the shape and size of Jim's cock if you like!" I am speechless even though I knew of her plan but the girls giggle.

"Should be a good laugh!" says Cath.

"Certainly sounds it!" agrees Katie.

"Come on then let's get started." She leads us through to the kitchen. "Put the oven on low Katie. It says the stuff sets quicker when heated. And I'll need a mixing bowl." Cath brings her a bowl while Katie lights the oven and then working quickly Shona mixes two bags of compound to a gooey consistency and pours it into the mould before placing the whole thing in the oven. "Needs about half an hour. Can't wait!" She sets the minute minder. "Come on let's watch a video." We retire to the living room while Shona fetches a tape from among the stuff she has brought. As we go through the doorway Cath's hand accidentally brushes against my cock. Accidentally perhaps but its all it takes for him to rise again. "Go on Cath!" Shona practically shouts as she emerges from the bedroom. "If you don't jump him, I will!" But Cath merely smiles and leads me through and lies down on a couch flinging one leg over the back opening herself wide for me.

"Come fuck me nice and slow Jim." is all she says as she smiles up at me. Returning the smile, well more of a leer really, I go to her and put my cock to her cunny before pushing slowly into her depths. She may have asked for it slow but she is so hot that she fucks furiously back at me giving me no choice but to go at a fast pace. She is beautifully tight on me and soon comes, staying on a high as I enjoy her cunt to the full the pace fast but the strokes long. "Fuck my bum now!" Cath moans after a while so I pull out. She rolls over and lifts her cheeks clear of the couch coming up onto her knees. Katie who had been lying watching us from the other couch as Shona played with her tits and puss springs over to us and spreads her daughter's bum cheeks watching very closely as I ease my way into Cath's rear before settling herself underneath to watch and lick at Cath's puss. Not to be left out Shona manages to wedge her head between Katie's legs to lave at her butterfly and cunt. Remarkably I am first to come - the pressure of Cath's back passage on my cock as I feel Katie licking at my balls as well as Cath's puss pushing me to the point of no return in only a few strokes. So great is my load for Cath however that it takes me well over a minute to deliver it fully pounding my jerking cock into her rear as I do so making her come with me. As I pull my slowly softening cock out of her Katie shoves a finger into daughter's still dilated anus and her thumb into her cunt keeping Cath coming as she see-saws the two digits in and out of her licking all the while at her clit. "Oh Mum! That feels so good. Don't stop. Don't ever stop!"

Shona is lying awkwardly, her head on the couch still between Katie's thighs as she licks away like there is no tomorrow but her backside is on the floor, her cunt exposed as she stimulates her clit with her fingers. I lie down beside her and gently part her pussy lips with my fingers before pushing my broad tongue as deep as I can into her love hole causing a muffled squeak. She continues to frig her clit as I tongue fuck her holding her pussy open to make sure every lash goes as deep as possible. Her actions on Katie bring Katie to orgasm next coming hard on Shona as she does. Shona comes up for air just as she comes on my tongue, her pussy juices copious. As I lie still tonguing her and drinking her juice keeping her coming Cath manages to wriggle into a sixty-nine with her Mum without breaking the still see-sawing finger fuck or contact with Katie's tongue on her clit. She is still coming and coming.

Shona too is still coming but she is with it enough to realise my cock is back in the game and slides down of the couch fully onto the floor. "Loved your tongue in me but let's not waste this." She rolls me over and climbs on top sliding my cock into her dripping cunt. "Feel how wet you've got me. Don't think I've ever been wetter!"

"Oh Shona! Love the feel of your cunt on my cock but right now I think I want to be on top." I roll us over again still coupled.

"OK" she says "try this." She manages to get her legs onto my shoulders. "Just like our first fuck! Think this is my favourite position. Come on get my tits too!" We fuck our bodies together at an almost brutal pace - raw sex as Shona would say - as I knead her little mounds. Together we come explosively Shona staying up there while I shoot into her before pulling out. "You really know how to please a girl!" Shona smiles at me.

"Only doing what come naturally!" I smile back.

"Come on Cath, lick Jim's sperm from me."

I had been unaware of what the others had been doing while Shona and I took our pleasure together but now that I look I see Cath lying on the couch watching us with Katie nowhere to be seen. Cath gets up slowly and kind of wobbly. "You OK?" I ask going to help her.

"Yeah, yeah just kinda spent after what you and Mum did to me. I was coming forever!" She keels down between Shona's legs and lowers her mouth to her cunt planting soft kisses all over it before starting to lick drawing a moan from Shona.

"She really is just about insatiable." I think as I wander off in search of Katie leaving the two of them alone. I find Katie in the kitchen holding a large very lifelike dildo. It takes me a moment to realise it is the replica of my cock!

"Hi Jim. What d'ya think? I've got another one cooking!" she offers me the dildo.

"Feels solid." is the best I can manage adding "Want to try it?"

I see her legs part slightly almost instinctively as she considers the thought. "No I think Shona should have first go."

"She's busy with Cath right now."

"What after that fucking you gave her?" I see her eye up the tool again. "OK then - fuck me with it." She sets her bottom on the edge of the worktop and spreads her legs wide. There is a handle moulded into the thing - sticking out of 'my' balls really - so I slide my hand into it and go to Katie. "Come on Jim push it all the way into me then fuck me with it." In a kind of strange out of body experience I part her with it's knob and push until the balls of the dildo are against her pussy lips. "Fuck!" Katie exclaims. "Its almost like the real thing Jim! Much better than that strap on we've been using. Come on do me!" I kiss her hard on the mouth letting her tongue find mine as I begin to withdraw the toy before sliding it quickly back into her. She is bucking back at it indicating she wants it hard. I start to kiss my way down Katie's body as I pound the dildo into her finally reaching her butterfly. As I lick at both it and her clit it really is weird to see 'my' cock fucking her from such close quarters - or at all I suppose! Only Cath and Shona, oh and Angie, had had this view before! "I'm coming! God I'm coming!" Katie shouts out coming hard as the oven timer goes. "Saved by the bell!" she pants. "Get it out will you Jim?" I make to remove the dildo which is still wedged in her cunt. She moves away slightly still panting. "Not that! The one in the oven." I go to the oven and remove the mould.

"How does it come out of the mould?" I ask.

"Run it under the cold tap. Makes it contract slightly so its not quite as big as you really Jim." I nearly imagine her adding "Pity." After I run it under the tap for a little it falls out into the sink with a dull thud. "Bring the mould over here and sprinkle some of that powder into it." Katie is by now sitting at the kitchen table mixing more ingredients before pouring them into the mould topping it with a handle and putting it in the oven. She picks up the second dildo. "Let go and show the girls."

Back in the sitting room the girls are lying on the couch together kissing lightly as their hands roam lightly over each other. I almost feel a pang of jealousy but brush it aside. I know Shona is mine for the asking anytime. A porn video is playing but no one is really watching as the girls trade names with each other.

"What are you doing? I ask.

"Making up a list of everyone who needs a dildo." Shona declares proudly then her eyes light on the rubber cock Katie is holding. "Is that the first one?" she asks.

"Actually its the second" Katie explains "and there's a prize for whoever finds the first!" I look at her puzzled. I hadn't thought about it while we had been busy.

I whisper softly in her ear "Is it still in your cunt?"

"Yes but don't tell." is the equally soft reply. The two girls dash to the kitchen thinking it must still be there as Katie lies back on the couch. "Phew! its quite hard to walk with all that rubber stretching your insides but the sensations are terrific!" She moves her legs various ways obviously pushing the dildo that way and this within her. She is beaming from ear to ear.

Shona and Cath return. "Katie!" "Mum!" they chorus together spotting the balls and handle protruding from Katie's cunt. They go to her and Shona slips her hand through the handle drawing it out of Katie starting to fuck her slowly with it.

"Don't Shona!" she pleads "Don't think I could handle coming again so soon!"

Shona smiles. "What does it feel like?" she asks.

"Marvellous! Nearly as good as having Jim fucking you!" Katie declares. "Why don't you try - that's the prize?"

"I know what I want to try all right!" she says fondling at my reawakened cock, "Jim lie on the couch!" As I comply she says "Remember the photo you showed me before I showed you the advert? That's what I want to try!" I am fully aware that what she wants is butt fucked by the dildo while I fill her puss with the real thing (either that or the other way round - you can never tell with Shona but given the choice I want her puss!) but the others are still in the dark. Shona clambers up over me raising herself high before pressing herself down on my cock, going straight down taking it to the root within herself.

Remembering we had not so long ago had a really hard fuck and presuming she would have come again for Cath I ask a familiar question "Don't you ever get enough?"

"No! Now shut up while we work this out - or should that be in?" She leans forward over me and I start to play with her tits. "Nice Jim, just keep that up and don't do anything else right now." Her muscles are dancing on my cock as I knead at her flesh and nip her stiff nipples. "Cath, Katie, anyone, get the dildo and fuck my bum with it!" Katie defers to her daughter, settling for lying back to watch ever so gently working the first dildo in her cunt.

Cath sets the dildo at Shona's back door. "You sure Shona? You've never had both holes filled with something so big at the same time?" she asks her voice full of concern.

"Fuck! Yes! its why I bought the ruddy thing!" Shona yells at her girlfriend. Cath pushes forward and I can feel the knob of the dildo press against me as it enters Shona's willing rear. "Yes Cath YES! Keep going!" I feel it slide up against me until the knob is level with my own. Shona shudders in orgasm. "YES! Now both of you - fuck me!" I begin to slowly push her off me as Cath withdraws the manikin until as if prearranged we both start to push back into her. Shona screams but with lust not pain as she comes again. Cath and I keep up this slow steady rhythm moving in and out of Shona simultaneously making her come every time until she has to beg for mercy. She lies on top of me gasping for breath both holes still full. "Well looks like I was wrong - I can actually get enough!"

"Not the first time you've needed me to stop." I point out.

"True - but that was probably the best yet!" She feels my cock twitch inside her. "You've still to come Jim!" she exclaims. "Change places Cath!" Cath pulls the dildo out of Shona's rear and she in turn gracefully dismounts. Cath takes her place sliding me into her very wet cunt - obviously fucking Shona with the rubber cock had really turned her on. Shona stands beside us and slips the dildo into her cunt. "Mumm! Does feel almost like you Jim even in my cunt! It was great in the arse Cath. Thanks for doing that for me! Want to try?" The two kiss.

"Mumm-hum but promise to go slow and to stop if I ask?" her girlfriend replies.

"OK promise, but I bet you don't ask."

And she doesn't letting Shona press every last millimetre of rubber into her. Cath comes before it is more than half way in and keeps on coming as both Shona and I fuck into her tight holes. Soon I sense my balls begin to tighten. "I'm going to come!" I announce.

"Come on Cath's tits for me!" Shona pleads. She pulls Cath from me and rolls her over, the dildo still in her arse and starts to wank me sending my seed all over Cath's chest. Katie dives into to join Shona cleaning up her daughter. Soon every scrap is devoured and we hear the cooker bell again. Shona looks up "Number Three! One each - for us anyway, still need lots more for everyone else!"

In the kitchen 'Number Three' as Shona puts it is soon lying in the sink and the mould is refilled. "Let's try something different this time." she says topping the confection not with a handle but with some sort of peg.

"What is it?" I ask.

"Wait and see!" is the only answer forthcoming.

By this stage we are bushed - fucked out if you like - and are content to sit round the kitchen chatting while Katie fixes something to eat. "Pasta OK?" she asks. Fine by all of us - and quick for we are famished!

"What was that earlier about a list?" I ask Shona.

"Well, everyone who has been with you deserves one of these as a sort of trophy - or to fuck themselves silly on when you're not around!" she smiles. "So let's see:

"On Wednesday: Well me, Dot, Cath, Eileen. That's 4.

"On Thursday: Sheila, Joyce, Wendy, Angie, Ruth. Another 5 makes 9.

"On Friday: Susan, Anne, Babs, Kirsty, Lesley, Judith, Anne Mac, Heather, Alice. Let's see that's 9! What a busy boy!"

"Tell me! I was cream crackered that night!" I exclaim.

Shona grins "So 18 in all! Agreed?" No one dissents. "On Saturday: Only Katie and Pat? That right Jim?"

"Plus Anne, Judith, Babs and Kirsty again. And Katie took all morning!" I smile making her blush bright red. "Need to tell you about Anne."

"Later I'm counting just now! So where were we 18? OK, makes 20! On Sunday: Linda, Sally, Emily, and Clare. Up to 24.

"Yesterday: Pauline and Eve. 26!

"Today? Oh nobody new - you're slipping Jim!"

"I don't think so! I've spend most of today with the three most fantastic girls in the world!"

Shona's turn to blush "Still we need LOTS more of these to go round. Least we've got one each!" The cooker clock sounds again. "OK!" Shona jumps up retrieving the mould from the oven and releasing the replica at the sink. Again she fills the mould and puts what looks like the opposite polarity fitting on the end - I hate to use the terms male and female in the context but you get what I mean - before coating it with some more compound and sticking the last made dildo onto it. "This is what they call a double-bill in the movies!" I doubt it but she is effectively making a double ended dildo using two copies of my cock! Again it goes in the oven and we sit around chatting happily and eating until I remember about Anne and relate the tale of how pissed off I'd left her after fucking Babs on the way back to school at lunch-time. Shona wrinkles her nose. "Babs was probably right - that probably wasn't very clever Jim. Can't say I blame you for fucking Babs though - I like her. Dare say we can sort it out with a few of these dildos for Anne and her kinky mates - should suit their sort of games to a tee! Never mind just now, no point in letting it spoil our night. Let's go next door and watch some of the movie I've brought."

As she kneels in front of the video resetting it (and showing her all to an appreciative audience!) I ask "What are we going to see?"

"Well sucking, fucking, double, triple fucking, cum shots, the works!"

"What's it called?" I ask incredulously.

"Its in German I'm afraid - don't seem to get this sort of quality with an English track unless its so badly dubbed to make it nothing more than a distraction - but it translates to something like 'School girls with little tits and shaved pussies first time fucks'! Thought of you when I chose it Jim."

"What a girl!" I think once again cuddling her close to me. We seem to be growing closer every day. To say we are besotted with each other would not be an understatement!

Shona and I lie cuddled together on one sofa while Cath and her Mum do likewise on the other. I gently play with Shona while Katie does the same for her daughter. On screen a succession of very pretty young looking girls with bare pussies and gorgeous looking little tits parade on screen sucking boys with big cocks before they fuck their young charges both in cunt and arse usually finishing with the girl being fucked in both holes at the same time, sometimes with another cock in her mouth too before the boys shot their cum all over the girl. ("What a waste of sperm!" Shona remarks noting no one ever cleans the girl up.) All the girls were indeed shaved and I can see Cath fingering at her downy covering plunging a finger deep into herself as the girl on-screen accepts a quadruple penetration - one cock in her mouth, one in her arse and TWO in her cunt! Shona squirms beneath me.

"Least they're not as big as you! Meant to be their first fucks as well but I doubt it." she says softly as the timer goes again. "YES!!" she exclaims leaping up and running through to the kitchen. A few minutes later she reappears, a rampant cock sticking out from her cunt. "It works! Who wants first go?" she asks. Cath and her Mum both giggle. I look on amazed as Shona gestures provocatively at them both.

"Me!" Cath says lying back on one of the couches, spreading herself wide and grinning up at Shona. "Come on - fuck me with that!"

"Hoped you'd say that!" Shona smiles back pressing the exposed end of the newly made girl pleaser into her. Shona fucks into her long standing girlfriend with gusto, Cath happy to accept the girl's role while Shona is masculine for her. They both come together then Shona rolls the pair round. "Your turn!" she tells Cath lying beneath her as Cath clamps down on her end of the arrangement now fucking the other half into Shona playing the boy's role. I lie with Katie watching with her, her excitement growing as she watches her daughter with Shona. She feels my cock growing once more and takes me into her cunt with one simple movement.

She leans back into me watching the action all the time "Mummm - that feels good in me Jim!"

"Better than the dildo?" I tease.

"Yes but it's going to be great to have around - 'specially if I can persuade Shona to make us one of these double ended ones!"

"You really like being with Cath, don't you?" I ask knowing the answer really.

"Yes Jim. Quite honestly I do. Wrong for a mother I know but she is SO good to be with."

"I like being with her too and I like being with you too. Very much! Spare me the Freud but, seriously, you are both such good lays and you seem to work so well together..."

"Well you've brought something to the party as well." Katie interrupts.

"What?"

"Your cock and..."

"And what?" I coax hoping I know the answer, half sure I do.

"And Shona! Isn't she just the sexiest, horniest thing on the planet?"

"She not a thing!" I scold reminded of an earlier conversation. "She is a hot little minx who, thankfully led us all into this."

"How'd it all start last week?" Katie asks.

"It was my birthday and Shona's present to me was meant to be her tits but one thing led to another and we went all the way, arse and all on the first fuck! Dot Black discovered us in full swing so she was next and then Shona called up Cath and got her over and well... You know the rest - you read it in Cath's diary! I suppose you've talked over Camp and Sunday? The rest you've been there for."

"Certainly have!" she simpers. Shona and Cath are forgotten for the moment as I fuck my real cock into Katie bringing her to a loud, clear and total orgasm just before I myself come buckets in her tight cunt. Grief, does this woman do something for me or what? The answer isn't what! Shona and Cath are already sitting together watching us as we finish.

"I'm going to have to watch you Jim!" Shona scolds more than half seriously.

I kiss her. "No danger! Unless you like watching - think you do mind you!" This earns me yet another slap on the shoulder. "Ouch!" I exclaim. "If you're going to hit me at least do it where it doesn't show!" I grab her and lay her over my knee and begin to spank her bum. At first she squirms and makes for me to stop but as I continue she lies more and more passively until I feel her juices wet my knee. "Shona?" I query.

"Yes Jim. Sorry - I think - I just came!"

I laugh. "Cath come and sort out your girlfriend! You too Katie!" Mother and daughter dive in on Shona pulling her from me looking for the best access to her overflowing cunt. I sit back to watch as the all girl show continues until Cath and Katie have drunk Shona dry - well almost, she comes so much in the process that she is constantly producing more pussy juice! As the three lie back Cath fingers her mother's bald pubes.

"You feel so smooth Mum, could I have that done?" she asks.

"No - the tattoo artist won't touch you till you're sixteen but I suppose you could shave like I used to do. Not that you've much to shave! And don't you even think about it Shona!" Katie laughs.

Shona smiles as she too caresses Katie's puss and butterfly. "Guess what I want for my sixteenth birthday Jim?"

"Ah well, gives me a little over three years to save." I say, Shona's birthday not being until next month. "Treat you too Cath - in due course."

"Could I shave Mum? Could you show me how? Maybe show Jim how?" Cath persists.

"OK, OK! Come through to the bathroom!" her mother gives in. "But that downy soft hair doesn't really need to come off!" she adds fingering Cath's puss. In the bathroom Katie takes a small pair of scissors from the cabinet and trims back what there is of Cath's naturally blond bush very short before spraying her with shaving cream working it well in.

"Mum! Are you trying to make me come or are you going to shave me!" Cath admonishes.

"Maybe both!" Katie smiles back at her. "I always came when one of my girlfriends shaved me! Its what I miss most about not having any hair down there any more, although my butterfly and the permanent silky-soft feeling more than make up for it." She reaches back into the cabinet for a disposable safety razor. "Lucky I kept these - I don't need them any more, I got my legs done too! Jim, you shave her!"

I look non-too-sure. "Never actually used a wet razor before." I confess.

Katie sighs "Look its simple - just keep the skin taught and you'll be fine." She demonstrates with a few skilful strokes before offering me the razor. I take it gingerly. "Go on it'll be fine. You cut her and I'll cut off your balls though!" She smiles sweetly at me but somehow I know she means it. Mercifully I manage to shave the rest of Cath's twat, including a few stray hairs up towards her arse without incident before Shona cleans off the remainder of the soap with a hot flannel finally making Cath come. Recovering, Cath fingers herself. "Feels nice!" she declares as we all finger her.

"Fuck her Jim." Katie insists "I was always so sensitive after I'd shaved." Without further prompting Cath lies back on the carpet and spreads herself wide for me in invitation. With everything that had gone before I of course am sprouting a massive hard-on and need no second bidding lying down on top of her instantly and stuff my cock into her wet and more than willing puss.

"Grief Mum! Doesn't it feel different!" Cath moans coming only a few moments later as I continue to fuck into her tender puss. As I continue to shag her she just keeps coming until she finally has to concede "Stop Jim! Please stop I can't take any more!" I roll off her and in a trice Katie leaves off from laving at Shona's puss to harpoon herself on my cock bucking furiously up and down until we both come, she in her almost total orgasm and me pumping a fair dose of sperm into her in turn.

Shona lifts her off me. "Come on Jim. Time we were going." I make to protest but she stills me with a look - a look of lust. As we dress she says "I made another cock so that gives us four. I'll leave two for you two and I'll leave the double ender - I won't need it tonight and I'm sure you two won't let it go to waste." She looks meaningfully from Cath to Katie. Both giggle. "But I'll take the spare. You could always make more if you get the chance. OK if I leave the stuff Katie? Less chance of anyone finding it here." Katie nods smiling - I bet she and Cath won't let the double ender get cold let alone go to waste! "Don't know who this is for yet, Joyce maybe. We'll see." Shona declares as she puts the spare dildo in her bag beside her own.

With kisses all round Shona and I leave Cath and her mother to there own devices and go out into the night.

Outside I start "Shona, why so early? Told you I didn't need to worry about being home on time tonight - Mum and Dad are at that concert. It'll be all hours before they get back."

"Ah but I want some time with you alone." she smiles as we walk along. I hug her to me and we kiss and cuddle - whatever else we have done there is still nothing quite like a good old-fashioned snog! I tell Shona so making her laugh. "Always were a bit on the quaint side Jim! One of the things I like about you!"

"Quaint? Nothing quaint about the last week! I've fucked 26 mostly underage girls, mostly virgins to boot, including pairs of sisters, twins even, and a mother and her daughter! Come on explain yourself girl before I give you another spanking!" I demand as we approach the bench where we fucked on the way home last night.

"Couldn't believe I came when you did that! Didn't even hurt - you were just being playful weren't you?"

I nod agreement. "Shona you know I could never hurt you in any physical way deliberately."

"What about emotionally?" she asks as we sit down on the bench.

"I certainly hope not - nor you me!" I reply. We sit talking seriously about the events of the last week and basically agree that we'll always be best friends no matter what and that as far as sex goes, anything goes so long as we tell each other and give each other the chance to join in with our respective partners.

"Not that I see me being with any other boys for the indefinite future!" she declares. "Girls, definitely. boys no - they couldn't match up to you Jim!"

"Don't see me with any boys either!" I counter earning a slapped shoulder. "Watch it you'll be for that spanking yet! And as for girls, out of, what was it 26?, not one has been a patch on you!"

She cuddles closer into me. "Anybody come close? Be honest Jim."

"I'm not going to start ranking everyone but you know how Katie affects me and Cath too." I reply candidly.

"I'm not about to complain at that. Cath and I have been lovers for ages and I loved getting it on with her Mum yesterday. Today was even better! Come on walk me home - I want to make love with you, not have a fuck on a park bench."

Soon we are in her bedroom where she strips provocatively for me - not that she's wearing much, just the same peasant blouse as last night coupled with a shorter skirt. Thinking about it I realise she must have changed when she went back home for the dildo kit but I'd been too busy to notice when she reappeared. Having given me a show she starts to strip me starting my running her hand over my crouch. "Feels ready for me already." she coos. And I am - hard as a rock. Subtly and sensuality go out of the window at this stage as she rips my uniform trousers and boxer shorts down. "Glad to see you've given up Y's." she says. "I've read boxers are much better at allowing sperm production - you KNOW how much I love your cream!" Thinking about it again I don't think I'd dry come once since I'd started either going without underwear at the weekend or started using the few boxers I possess.

"Shona, can I try something?" I ask.

"What?"

"Wait and see!" I reply going to fetch a can of whipped cream I spotted in the fridge on another occasion and which I hope is still there. It is! Shona laughs when I return and she sees what I'm holding. "Time I ate some cream from you!" She smiles, lies back on the bed and pulls her pussy lips wide apart for me.

"Get it as deep in as you can!" is all she says as I spray a liberal dose into her before diving down on her lashing everywhere with my tongue, probing deeply into her making her come adding her juices to the cocktail. I deliberately take a long time to clean her out completely so that she comes again!

"Gosh Jim! Liked that! What made you think of that!" she puffs.

"Well, actually it was Babs - Anne's sister - who asked if I'd ever done it and you talking about cream brought it back to mind." I confess.

"Don't you worry about Babs! Reckon she and Kirsty are on our side. Here give me that!" She snatches the can and shakes it. "Humh - didn't leave me much did you?" What there is she sprays all over my cock and balls before she starts to lick it off as I stand half-naked in her room. Once I'm cleaned up she wolfs me down into her throat bobbing relentlessly and playing with my balls until she feels them tense at which point she stays down on me her little mouth and throat tight round my cock until the spasm in her throat brings me off. I am slow to react, enjoying the sensations too much and she passes out before I become aware enough to withdraw. Thankfully no harm is done and Shona soon comes round. 'Wow! Wow! Wow!" she gasps recovering quickly. "Didn't think it would be that good!"

"Sorry Shona!" I apologise. "It was so good for me I didn't think to pull out in time."

"Don't worry about it at all! That was the best oral sex I've ever had with you Jim! Well ever! Must pinch another can of cream from the pub kitchen. That was fun sex!"

We lie for a bit cuddling as only close friends can recovering but soon Shona begins to gently caress my cock slowly bringing him back to life. "Good!" Shona declares."Now f... Now make love to me Jim!" She lies back spread eagled for me leaving nothing to the imagination. I kiss her tasting my salty sperm on her lips and tongue before kissing slowly and gently over the entire front of her body. Not just the sensitive, erogenous areas but absolutely everywhere. She moans as I get to her pubes "Don't you dare bring me off until you've got that big, fat cock stuffed deep in my little cunny!" Smiling down at her I roll over on top and she guides my cock to her love hole. I push forward going so slowly that she is frantically begging for my cock by the time my knob is within her. She bucks up at me forcing nearly all of me down into her tight tube.

"Easy!" I say. "You said you wanted to make love! This is in danger of becoming 'raw sex'"

"Fuck! I don't care!" she replies but relaxes at the same time and the pace settles to long, slow, dare I say loving stokes? Shona soon reaches her longed for plateau - not only longed for by her I might add as I love the feeling of her cunt clamping down against my cock every time she comes - but I am a long way away yet after coming so powerfully in her throat and she keeps on moving with me coming on me time and again until my balls serve up a full, thick and creamy load deep into her tightness. I roll us onto our sides and we lie together.

"Not going to waste that are you?" It is Eileen.

"Thought you'd be at Angie's" Shona smiles at her unperturbed.

"Was but her parents are back and we don't get the flat till Friday. Quite a show little Sis!"

"Glad you liked it! Where did you come in?"

"Oh pretty near the start, not too long before you passed out deep-throating him!" Eileen replies stripping off her own clothes. "Now let me taste that!" She is down on Shona before she can protest - not that she would - kissing and licking at her puss tasting both Shona's own pussy juice and my sperm within her. I move behind Eileen's upturned arse and begin to lave at her puss and rim her anus. "Oh, yes Jim! Fuck my arse when you're ready." As ever my recovery time is remarkably short and I'm soon ready for action again but instead of doing as I had been told ram my cock in no uncertain fashion into Eileen's puss driving her down against Shona's cunt. "No I said my bum!" Eileen complains between licks at her sister's puss.

"You also said when I was ready."

Eileen has lost it now not caring where I am as I bring her off before gently parting her rose bud with my well lubed cock, her back passage yielding for me as I slide into her. I hold myself down totally within her as I reach round for her tits. Slowly I withdraw a little before pounding in again. This makes her gasp into Shona's puss as she attempts to continue to give Shona her full attention. I sustain the action and as soon as Shona has come again Eileen lifts her head away panting and yelling "Gosh! That feels so good! I'm coming, I'm coming, I'm... Ahhh!" Quick thinking as ever Shona leaps out from under her sister allowing Eileen to slump forward drawing me out of her as does so. Shona rolls her sister's inert form over and grabs my cock pumping at it until I blast off all over Eileen's chest.

"Let me repay that debt from Wednesday." Shona says as she starts to kiss and lick at Eileen until not a drop of my jism can be seen. Shona stands up. "Go to your room and wait for me - I won't be long, I want to say goodnight to Jim on my own." Eileen gathers up her clothes and goes off without a word - don't think she is capable of it!

Shona hugs me to her. "Think Joyce'll have to wait for her dildo! Pity I left the double ender with Cath but I didn't expect Eileen to be home tonight!"

"Don't think it'll be going to waste though!" I remark hugging back, my cock already beginning to rise again.

"Bet its not! Come on downstairs!" Shona leading me by the cock we go down. Shona stands on the bottom stair and pushes me down into the hall. "Now let me feel the power of your cock again!" she rubs her hands over her pussy. I smile and go to her bending my knees to set my cock-head against her pussy lips before sliding deep into her tight cunt. I start to fuck but Shona stops me.

"No - just leave him deep in me and only kiss me and get my tits. I want a fondle fuck!" she smiles. So I kiss her deep and begin to caress her tits. It is not long before Shona's cunt is responding to every move of my fingers clamping down on me as we continue to kiss until finally we come together our bodies melting into one. I break the kiss "I love you Shona." I say before kissing her again.

Her turn to break the kiss. "I love you too Jim." We stand like that for a very long time, hugging and looking into each others eyes. Eventually we decide I'd better go so we return to her bedroom for me to dress. We kiss again. "Could you see yourself out?" Shona asks. "I've got something to give to Eileen."

I laugh and hug her to me. 'Yes - give in more ways than one I'm sure."

She looks at me coyly having retrieved the two dildos from her bag. "Don't know what you mean! Pity there's no more cream!"

"See you tomorrow! Love you!" I call back up the stair as I go out.

"Love you too. Get plenty of sleep!" echoes back down to me.

"You too! Don't keep Eileen awake all night!"

Shona and friends - Part 6

theBlackDouglas on Teen Stories

Chapter 6 - Monday

Monday morning sees me at Shona's early - I've been up since the crack of dawn sorting out my room and showering after having been dead to the world for a good few hours. My balls are still tingling from the action of the last few days - or is it anticipation of Shona? I have a vague feeling of trepidation as I go in through Shona's front door, locking it firmly behind me before I mount the stairs. She knows there is something I haven't told her. How will she react when I do? As I get to the head of the stairs I can see right into her bedroom. She is lying naked on top of the covers playing with her puss. She gasps softly as she draws a small bead from her pussy. Continuing to pull on the bead string another emerges a few inches down the line making her gas

Read More
p again. This continues until when on about the twelfth bead she comes totally. I am now standing naked at the foot of her bed and take the string from her pulling gently on it until the string of beads is completely out of her cunt. She comes on every new bead that emerges and there must be about thirty on the string! I kiss her on the lips and then without warning fuck my proud cock into her wet little hole. She is so hot that she comes instantly and has to beg me to stop. I roll over and we lie coupled. "What's with the beads?" I ask.

"Thai love beads - Eileen 'borrowed' them from the cupboard and took them to camp. They're wonderful!" She flips away from me leaving my dick sticking into mid-air. "And as for you mister, what happened on Saturday before you met up with Anne and Babs? And maybe on Sunday before the farm?"

"No fooling you is there? Not that I was trying to - its just I didn't want to say in front of everyone." I begin before going on to tell Shona of how Katie ("You know Cath's Mum?") had come to the door to confront me with Cath's diary and how one thing had led to another and we ended up fucking the morning away. I go on to tell of the session with her and Linda on the Sunday. "Do you know they've both had all their bushes removed and have tattoos just about there!" I reach to Shona and trace out the outline of Katie's butterfly on Shona's bare mound.

"Shaved you mean?" Shona asks allowing my probing finger access to her tight, hot cunt.

"No, electrolysis she said, meant never to come back. Linda has a geometric design but Katie has a beautiful butterfly - made it look like it was flying as she fucked me."

Shona pushes me down on the bed and mounts me in a rush. "Well I'll have to wait a few years for that - haven't even grown my bush yet - but I'd like to see that." Shona is belly dancing round my pole fucking me with a passion - maybe I over enthused about Katie a little and she is now trying to make me realise just how good her cunt is, not that I really need any reminding. She is so good on me, knowing exactly when a change of pace or whatever is called for. She leans over me holding just the tip of my cock within her. "Suck my tits!" she demands offering her delicious little nubs to me. I bite her left nipple quite hard before sucking her entire tit into my mouth with a single slurp. I repeat my actions alternating sides until she is coming and coming. Suddenly she breaks away and rams herself down hard on my dick riding me through her orgasms until my seed boils over into her and she collapses on top of me. I have come harder than I ever had and feel drained. I tell Shona this. "Just a little reminder of who's best." she says. "But seriously, d'ya think there's any chance of me and Katie - even just to get a look at her tattoo? I could hide in a cupboard or something while the two of you fuck."

"Well I think there is a good chance of more than that. Katie is well known on the Lesbian scene and she and Linda were hardly just comparing tattoos yesterday morning when I called. But..." I hesitate.

"But what?"

"But she really wants a threesome with her, me and, and Cath." There said. I tell her of how I'd fantasised about Katie eating my cum from her daughter while I was fucking Wendy in her office.

A smile slowly comes across Shona's face. "Wouldn't mind being a fly on the wall when (not if note) that happens. How're you going to arrange it?"

"Katie thinks she should just walk in on us as we start to make out and take it from there but I think the simplest way is just to ask Cath. A few nights ago, when Katie went to check Cath after she got in late, she found Cath lying naked on top of the covers apparently fast asleep. As her mother kissed her she rolled over onto her back and opened her legs a little. Katie brought herself off playing with her tits and cunt just looking at her but if that wasn't an invitation I don't know what was." I explain.

"I agree. Just ask her!" Shona says. She makes a face. "I've got to go to piano lessons after school, so why don't you go home with Cath to her house - you'll have about an hour to give her a good fucking and to broach the subject. Her Mum normally gets in at five or so unless she's 'working late' which tends to be later in the week - she's not actually working late, just seeing one of her girlfriends, the doctor who gives us our scripts most likely!" Shona laughs as she sees my face change. "See I do know some things! Anyway if Cath doesn't fancy the idea, which I doubt, you'll have time to scamper - give me a phone if you have to do that otherwise I'll come to Cath's around six to see what's doing. You can always come to me if there is a problem and I'll let you guide that torpedo of yours into my tight little love hole - 'fact you can do it right now." The conversation had got me hot so I roll Shona onto her back, tuck her legs behind her ears - she is SO supple - and fuck deeply into hot cunt making her cry out with lust. "Oh yes! That's just what I need!!" I have to agree as I sate myself in her cunt coming strongly once more but not before Shona had reached her plateau, coming time and again on me. God how I love the way this girl orgasms, milking my cum out of my balls!

Shona jumps up staggering slightly as she does so. "Jim - see the time? We're going to be late for school - again!" she warns. She is right, sooner or later someone is going to notice our absences so we hurriedly dress and rush up the road for our first class of the day. Shona sits next to me again which raises a few eyebrows from both my friends and from hers (who are largely but not totally now my friends as well - the reasons of the three groups being somewhat different) but also some scowls from Bertie and her gang. I can see a potential problem here and slip a note to Shona to say so. Shona slips a reply to me but the old dragon of a History teacher spots it and makes me give it to her. Thankfully all it says is "No problem". Asked to explain Shona and I instantly agree that I had asked if I could see her tonight. As the whole school knows we are an item, although few know or suspect how much of an item, the old bat merely sighs in a forlorn sort of way and tosses the note in the bin.

"Now perhaps if you've got your love life sorted out, we can get on with the lesson? As I was saying, after the Battle of Bannockburn..."

How close she is if only she knew! Lessons drone on until morning break when my route outside happens to take me past Wendy's office. Horny as ever, I take a chance, knock and enter without waiting for a reply. As I do so Wendy jumps away from a girl lying across her desk - I hadn't seen anything but I guess she had been eating the girl's cunt through her panties. I lock the door. "Wendy - if you're going to get up to naughty things at least lock the door!" I scold. Wendy blushes and simply peels off her leotard letting her ample bosom fall free before helping the girl up and undressing her fondling the girl's tits as she does so.

"Jim, have you met Pauline? She just started here today - she'll be in your year. Hasn't she got a gorgeous body?" Pauline leans back against the teacher. She is obviously very comfortable with being naked as the older woman explores her body with me watching. Pauline does indeed have a very nice body - not too tall, nicely rounded but not too large tits, a slim waist curving out to broad hips and slender legs meeting at her well defined pussy, her downy cunt hair having been trimmed back to what I've learned from Shona is called the bikini line - capped with a beautiful face currently wearing a broad grin and looking directly at my crotch. "Pauline - this is Jim. I've told you about him of course. Didn't expect you'd meet him so soon."

Without taking her eyes of my bulging erection, Pauline says "Hi Jim, I've heard a lot about you this morning. Time you got to know me - biblically!" I go to the pair and kiss Pauline lightly on the lips cupping her tit as I do so. She responds by frenching me and undoing the snap on my trousers letting them fall free. As the two of us continue to kiss Wendy moves to me and pulls my boxers down exposing my cock for the first time. Pauline strokes the sensitive underside gently making me gasp. My hands meantime had been roaming all over Pauline's upper body so I respond by dropping my hand to her snatch and drawing my finger up her pussy lips. She is already wet probably from Wendy's interrupted ministrations as I have done very little yet. Wendy's takes Pauline by the hand and leads her to the table making her lie down with her legs dangling off the end. Pauline reaches down and grasps her inner thighs pulling her legs wide apart in invite. "Come and get me Jim." I am like a dog after a rabbit the speed at which I reach the end of the table. I nuzzle my cock-head to her cunt. She gasps. "Come on give him to me. Don't make me wait! Let me feel a cock in me for the first time!" First time? Say no more. I ease forward, parting her gently causing no more than another loud gasp as I slide in until her tightness has my entire cock surrounded. Immediately she starts to fuck up rapidly towards me so I match her pace moving at speed to ensure the strokes are long as well as quick. She feels so good on me as we piston into each other, fucking and being royally fucked. After watching and playing with herself for a bit Wendy starts sucking and kneading Pauline's tits driving her to a higher level of lust. She comes on me hard, clenching down on me so hard I have difficulty in keeping up the motion of my cock in her cunt. She is so tight in orgasm! She continues to come as my balls tighten and serve up a cannonade of my jism via my pulsating cock.

Wendy pulls us apart and helps Pauline up hugging her as she does so. "Well like it?" she asks lying down in Pauline's place.

"Well..." Pauline considers "what can I say! Actually having him in me was like nothing I can describe and when I came it was like my insides were melting. I feel all sort of weak."

"Not too weak to let me suck that load out of you I hope?" Wendy asks. Pauline smiles and leans over Wendy so that she can reach her cunt. Wendy's tongue is out and working overtime on the girl at once. No gymslip this time but my cock soon recovers as I watch and then lick at Wendy's cunt making her squirm. Back at working pressure I ram my cock into Wendy's puss making her take my full length and girth all at once her scream muffled by Pauline's puss pressed tight to her face. Wendy is quite passive below me, concentrating on Pauline I think, but I don't mind as it lets me do whatever I want with her. I fuck at her changing the angle and pace of the strokes making her come gasping out her orgasm in Pauline's juicy cunt. I come to rest buried deep in her and reach forward for Pauline's hanging tits. As I knead her ample flesh and flick at her nipples she kisses me deeply and comes nearly drowning Wendy in a combination of her juices and my cum. I break the kiss and return my attentions to Wendy as Pauline moves to Wendy's tits. As I start to fuck onto Wendy's tightness she starts to respond moaning softly until she comes again harder than ever just as I pump a load of sperm into her. Pauline kneels down at Wendy and begins to lap at her cunt. The sight of this beautiful young girl eating her teacher's newly fucked puss keeps me hard. I kneel behind her and reach for her tits once more, my cock laid across her arse crack.

"Fancy it in your arse?" I ask Pauline.

"Keep doing that on my tits and you can do what you like. I love having my tits got." she purrs so I press my knob to her tight bud and push gently. She is so relaxed that my knob is in her in no time. As I can feel her pushing back at me I don't pause but continue to sink slowly into her until she has taken my all. Slowly I pull back and sink in again setting up a slow fucking action working her tits all the time as I do so. Just then Wendy comes and squirms away to get a better view of the action. Her rectum is so smooth and hot I know I won't last long but I needn't have worried for Pauline is coming long before me moaning out one long orgasm which lasts until I come hard within her coating her colon with my cream.

"Wow Jim! That was fantastic! Think I'm going to like this school. Can't wait to meet the other girls." Pauline enthuses rubbing at her nipples. "Do you know my tits are so sensitive I can sometimes get myself over just by playing with my nipples?"

"Oh you'll like the other girls." I tell her reaching over to lightly kiss a nipple. "They're a great bunch. Aren't they Wendy?"

"Oh definitely!" she agrees already getting back into her leotard. "I've got a class to teach but you two can stay here if you like."

"No." I decide "Tempting is at is I think he needs a rest and I'd better put in an appearance at class before lunch." So I hurriedly dress as Pauline slips back into her things and goes out giving me a little peck on the cheek.

"Had a great time Jim. You'll need to introduce me to Shona soon." she says leaving me to wonder exactly what Wendy has told her.


I've missed one period but there is still one more before lunch which I proceed to dose my way through - school work comes easy to me so I can manage to keep up with the minimum of effort, thank goodness! The bell goes. Lunch! My pecker gives a vague stir at the thought no doubt hoping Shona will be on the menu. I hadn't been kidding when I said he needed a rest. There would be hell to pay if he let Shona down.

"Hi Jim." Shona says as we meet and kiss. "Do you know there's a new girl in the other stream with Ruth? Haven't met her yet - she's been on orientation all morning."

"Yes, her name's Pauline and I've met her - got to know her quite well actually!"

Shona swings round at me open mouthed, "You haven't! Already?"

"Yep! Quite a goer too - loves having her tits played with while she gets fucked, seems to really do it for her!" I laugh at Shona's incredulous face as I proceed to tell the story finishing "She wants to meet you - don't know what Wendy's told her!"

Shona hugs me and then scolds "You need a chaperone - you are definitely not safe to be let out on your own. No girl is safe from you!"

"Any safer from you?"

"No not really I suppose!" We kiss deeply and walk on. "I've squared things with Bertie by the way."

"How?" I ask.

"We licked each other out at break and agreed some ground rules. We agreed that her lot can fuck you sometimes if I get to join in but nothing kinky. OK by you?"

There she goes again organising my (our?) sex life! "Sure - you really are insatiable aren't you?"

She smiles "You'd better believe it!"

By now we are approaching Shona's house and I can see a figure waiting at the gate but it isn't Joyce. "No Joyce today?" I ask.

"No - she's got to do some shopping with her Mum. Her bad luck! Instead I've asked Eve to join us. Hi Eve!" she calls as Eve, a girl from Ruth's stream whom again I barely know to say hello to, waves at us. The two girls kiss and we go inside and up to Shona's room. Eve is short almost stocky, well muscled and well toned - she played goal minder in the hockey team. "Strip then strip her Jim." I am commanded.

Eve stands smiling at me so, taking this as complicity, I shuck of my uniform in near record time and go to her kissing her as I loosen her tie and start on the buttons of her school blouse working my way slowly down. She wriggles out of the garment as I undo the clasp on her bra. I drop to my knees and feast on her rather nice (and tanned I note) tits, kissing and licking everywhere as I fumble with the catch on her skirt. Soon it falls to the floor leaving Eve in only her little pink (my favourite colour) panties and socks, her shoes having been kicked off as we started. I drop lower and nuzzle at her pussy through her panties blowing hot air into it drawing a little gasp from her. I push the material covering her slit aside and draw a louder, longer gasp as I kiss her lips directly. I grab the top of her flimsy knickers with my teeth and with only a little help from Eve pull them all the way down her legs. She steps clear of the garment and stands legs slightly apart. I lave my tongue slowly all the way up her slit which is already fairly juicy and musky smelling. I take her as I stand up, slowly sliding into her virginal cunt being rewarded with an even louder, longer gasp as she adjusts to having her pussy walls parted for the first time. I slide all the way into her tightness and just as I lift her off the ground using only the steel rod of my cock within her she throws her arms round my neck and kisses me passionately. Gently I topple us over so that she lands on the bed below us softly. I am careful not to land on top of her as I start to pump in and out of her tender little hole. She huffs and puffs below me responding to my every thrust and movement until she wails out an intense orgasm. The sight of her at her peak coming on a cock for the first time as much as the feel of her against my cock brings me off shooting great wads of cum deep into her.

As I come round I see Shona sitting on a chair legs akimbo thrusting her fingers into her puss coming constantly. When she realises that we have finished she pulls them out and holds them up. "Anyone want a lick? I do taste good!" she asks taking a lick herself. "Some show you two - quite a turn on! How was your first time Eve? You should have given her more warning Jim!" The two of us have a lick.

"It just sort of happened - didn't plan it" I say "My cock was just sort of there as I stood up. Must say I liked it though."

"Me too!" Eve gushes. "You pushing into me like that made me feel almost giddy. Nearly passed out when I came - how can anything feel so strong?"

Shona smiles to her friend and bends to my still mostly erect cock and sucks me into her mouth ensuring I stay up for her. "That tastes good too." she remarks when she is sure I won't let her down. "Took your time though - you only have to have a quicky with me Jim. I know! Lie down facing that way Eve and lick my pussy while I lick yours. Jim - fuck my bum!" I let the girls get started and then start to slowly work my cock into Shona's rear. She breaks off from lapping Eve's puss. "Harder Jim. Do me hard!" I slam into her making her roar as her face is pressed deep into Eve's cunt. Taking her by the hips I buck out and in again at a quickfire pace which combined with Eve licking away at her puss brings her to the boil in no time and keeps the lid rattling until I let off another fusillade. At the first shot Shona rolls away and grabs my cock pumping most of my juice onto Eve's chest.

"Just have to taste your tits Eve" she says diving in to clean her off achieving her aim rapidly. Eve goes to have a quick wash then we all dress and race back to school.

"Loved you eating my puss as Jim fucked me Eve. Loved eating his cream from you too." Shona complements.

"Loved the way you brought me off with your mouth." Eve returns "Don't think I've ever been eaten out so well."

"That girl'll will do anything for sperm and pussy juice." I put in.

"No not anything - just straight sex!"

"And that little gang-bang at camp I saw on video counts as straight sex?" I raise an eyebrow.

"That was just girls together having some fun!" She slaps me on the shoulder. "You know where I stand on girls!"

"On them, in them, under them, above them..." Shona cuts me off with another slap.

"Never refused one of my girlfriends have you?"

"No and they've all been great!" It is true I'd never had a bad lay yet and I'd managed to avoid most of Judith's kinky games. I kiss her "But you're the best." She blushes and smiles coyly.

"See you at Cath's around six unless you phone first." she says as we turn into school and go our separate ways having different classes for most of the afternoon.

I actually manage to get some maths done in the two periods leading up to the afternoon break. The break itself sees me heading to the Chemistry labs on some instinct. Sheila is there alone. Going up behind her and before she has seen me I put my hands on her soft tits and ask "Fancy a quicky?"

She jumps and turns round. "Any time!" She literally grabs me and pulls me to the darkroom before undoing my trousers and hauling out my already hardening cock. She takes me into her mouth and down into her tight throat as I harden giving me the mother of all blow jobs. I had fancied fucking her shaven cunt but this is too good to pass up. She bobs up and down on me and as I feel my orgasm about to rise I try to hold her down on me but she evades pulling me out. "Uh-uh! Lick me and then fuck my brains out!" I smile and dive below her lab coat pulling her lacy panties down in an instant. I run my tongue up her moist pussy lips and she moans "Oh, yes! I've been dreaming about this all day!" I moisten my index finger in her juices and then slide it into her tunnel, finger fucking her as I lick and nibble at her button. "Oh that feels so good! Let me feel your cock now Jim!" Sheila lies back, bum at the edge of the bench, coat hitched around her waist as I stand over her and slide into her now dripping wet pussy, pushing her cunt walls wide apart as I take her. As we fuck my hands go to her chest massaging her chest through the material of her lab coat. Sheila takes the hint and undoes the top few buttons and her bra snap to give me access to her pert mounds. I knead her flesh firmly as we continue to fuck in long slow strokes making her come several times, her already deliciously tight cunt clamping down on me as she does so. As I sense my approaching orgasm I increase the stroke rate, pounding now into Sheila as she pounds back until my balls tighten and deliver up another load of jism into Shelia's puss bringing her off once more. I pull out just as the bell goes and haul Sheila to her feet. I pull my trousers up but Sheila seems a little fazed.

"You OK?" I ask concernedly.

"Oh yes! Just kinda gone! Amazing what you can do in 15 minutes!"

We hug but I say "Look - I have to go. I'll be in trouble if I miss many more classes."

"That's OK. I understand. Just shut the door behind you to give me some time to recover. Love what you do to me Jim, the way you make me feel!"

I blow her a kiss as I leave to find my next class. I am a little late and have to settle for a seat down the front but not before I notice Shona and Joyce among others sitting together at the back. As I try to get my mind round French grammar I can hear various squeals coming from that direction and then "Miss Campbell! What ever is the matter?"

"Nothing Miss." Shona replies.

"Then kindly be quiet. You are distracting the whole class."

She certainly is distracting me! At the end of the period as we make our way to separate classes again I catch her. "Lose 'The Game' again?" I ask.

"Yep! Joycy can't half make me come, I was so hot having eaten Babs and Kirsty out at break - they're sweet. It was all I could do to keep it to a few squeaks!" she smiles happily giving me a kiss. "See you tonight."

I shake my head as I walk to Geography. The last period drags past but eventually I am outside again looking for Cath. I see her some way off "Ca... Hutch!" I shout remembering my place in time. She turns to me and smiles.

"No Shona?" she asks.

"No, she's got piano class just now."

"That's right, so she does. Want to make some music back at my place? Mum won't be in for another hour." Cath asks softly.

"Love to!" I reply going to take her hand but she pulls it away.

"Uh-uh! Don't want to get people talking." She is right - won't do to be seen holding someone else's hand - so we walk to her flat chatting about this and that. Once we are in the close leading to her flat and no one can see us however she throws herself on me hugging and kissing at me. "Oh Jim! I can't wait to be naked with you!"

"No gymslip?" I tease.

"If you like. Whatever turns you on." she replies opening the door of the flat.

"You do!" I say stepping inside. She smiles and leads me to her bedroom. I strip her and she strips me. Naked I cuddle her to me. "There, naked together. Is this what you had in mind?"

"Not quite" she says "lie down." Perversely I lie on the bed on my stomach. "No stupid! Turn over." I roll over and smile up at her my cock sticking straight up in the air. Immediately she mounts me letting her cunt sink down the entire length of my shaft. "Oh I needed that! I've needed that since last night!" I reach forward and start to play with her clit. "If you don't stop that I'll come."

"That's the general idea! What do you mean about last night? At my place?" I ask, a vague notion forming. Letting my fingers do the walking she comes hard on me and then lowers her body over mine and we roll onto our sides my engorged cock still firmly within her.

"Well no, after. Look I don't really want to talk about it. Just fuck me!" she slowly replies. Rolling her onto her back and lifting her legs onto my shoulders, I set up a gentle fucking motion as I caress her tits making Cath come again quickly. As she comes below me a third time she breathes "Come in my arse Jim." I pull out and push my cock against her arse sliding easily in guided by Cath's hand which jerks at my shaft as I go deeper. I feel her fingers continuing to caress my shaft as I gently rock back and forth enjoying the hot tightness of Cath's rear. Her other hand is at her pussy now, one long digit inserted in her hole massaging my cock. She is totally lost in orgasm, softly coming all the time. I can keep going no longer and come very hard, my pulsating organ blasting off inside her gushing a fountain of cum into her arse. Unravelling ourselves we lie on the bed spooning, my hand still teasing at Cath's tits.

"The was good Cath. I came really hard. You looked well gone!"

"Gosh wasn't I just! Told you I'd been needing it all day!"

"Tell me about last night." I probe.

"Well..." she hesitates. "Well, you see, some of these hot nights recently I've taken to sleeping on top of the bed naked. And last night Mum came in and kissed me good night. I rolled over onto my back still pretending to be asleep to see what would happen. As she moved to the foot of the bed I could see she was naked. She stood there playing with herself until she came. Jim, it was all I could do to stop myself jumping up and eating her cunt out! Wish I had now! She did much the same once before but she wasn't naked then. She's got some sort of tattoo where her bush should be you know?"

"I know, its a butterfly." Cath spins round to look at me as I speak. "You see, Katie and I are lovers too and she knows we're lovers."

"But Mum's lesbian - she doesn't know I know but she's never let a man near her since, well, you know?"

"Since your Dad you mean?"

"We don't talk about him! I still don't understand!"

"Well" I start "She found your diary and came round to my house to confront me on Saturday morning but, well one thing led to another and we ended up fucking. Several times actually and she wants a threesome with you and me." I tell her of the fantasy I had had in Wendy's office and how Katie wants to see me fuck her. "She wants to see the actual moment of penetration."

Cath smiles. "I was about to send you packing as Mum'll be home soon but now I'd better dig out my gymslip." I lie back watching her get into the slip thinking how things seemed to have a habit of working out beautifully at the moment.

A few minutes later we hear a key in the door and rush down the hall to greet Katie, Cath in her gymslip (but no knickers), me stark naked and with a raging hard on, Cath having caressed him back to life while we waited. "Surprise!" Cath yells grabbing her mother's hand to pull her to her bedroom. Initially dumbstruck Katie recovers slightly to say "No use my room - the bed's bigger!"

"Show me your butterfly Mum!" Cath demands.

Not a word is said as I help Katie out of her office clothes until she is left standing in only her panties. Kneeling behind her I pull them down as Cath watches avidly. "Oh Mum! It's beautiful!" Cath dives in and kisses at the tattoo before going lower to lick her Mum's cunt. I stand up allowing Katie to lean back on me as I massage her chest.

"Oh! That feels so good!" she moans. "How did you manage so soon Jim?"

I kiss her neck. "It was easy - Cath's as attracted to you as you are to her." Katie comes just then her knees sagging as she does so and I help her onto the bed. The three of us lie cuddling.

"You taste good Mum. Wait till you taste me with a fresh load of Jim's sperm in me!" Cath declares. "Which reminds me..." She lies back hitching up the hem of the gymslip giving Katie a good view of her nether regions as she does so. "Come and fuck me again Jim. Watching Mum?" I roll over beside her and am about to plunge into her when she says "No wait Jim! I've a better idea - Mum come and put Jim's cock in me!" Katie is there instantly. She grabs my cock and presses it to her daughter's tight hole running her fingers over Cath's pussy lips as she does so. "That's it Mum feel me. Feel Jim's cock in me." I push forward going right to the bottom as Katie releases her grip on me, her fingers still exploring Cath. "Oh YES Jim! Doesn't he feel wonderful to have in your cunt Mum?" Katie retreats slightly reclining at the head of the bed lightly fingering her butterfly and puss as she watches me fuck her daughter. The whole thing is such a turn on for both me and Cath that we both come hard together after only a few minutes. "Lie down Mum. The table's not big enough so this'll have to do Jim. Cath squats over her Mum's face. "Eat me Mum. Eat Jim's load from my nice young juicy cunt! Fuck her like you did Wendy Jim! Indulge your fantasy." So just like I had done with Wendy I start to lick Katie's cunt until the hot scene of Katie licking my cum out of her gymslip clad daughter reawakens my cock. Back at full strength I slide slowly into Katie savouring her tightness. Gently I pump in and out using my length, feeling Katie's tunnel all around me as I do so. Cath comes first yielding up the last remnants of my cream to her Mum. She rolls away coming to watch me fuck her Mum. I try to hold my body as clear of Katie's as I can to give her the best view (and so that I can watch her butterfly!) as I piston in and out now going quite hard. Katie's breathing becomes laboured and then she screams out her orgasm as my cock jerks inside her I as too come.

The three of us cuddle once more lying naked on the bed Cath having taken the gymslip off. "Well Jim? How was the fantasy?" she asks.

"That was no fantasy, just amazing sex!" I gasp. "The sight of you eating Cath out was such a turn on Katie."

"I liked to too Mum - you were so gentle but so complete! Absolutely wicked!"

"Wicked in more ways than one!" Katie sighs. Oh-oh not guilt pains?

"Look Mum! I wanted it, you wanted it, Jim wanted it. Let's not get any hang ups about this!" Cath asserts cuddling tightly to her Mum and kissing her. We lie around talking a bit more, all agreeing that it had been wonderful and that there is nothing to be guilty or ashamed of so long as we keep it to ourselves, just like almost no one in town knew Katie has lesbian inklings. Then Cath remembers "Shona said she was coming round later. We better break this up before she does."

"Jim's Shona?" Katie asks.

"Yes." we chorus drawing me a black look from Cath. Whoops, I shouldn't have let on that I know.

"That's OK. Quite fancy her really and she and Jim are an item. Suppose I'd almost expect him to tell her." Katie admits.

"Think he already has!" Cath says.

I have to admit that I have. "Well, like you said I've no secrets from Shona and she'd worked out I'd missed something from the story of my weekend. Anyway I needed a second opinion as to how to made all this happen."

"How d'ya mean?" Cath asks.

"Your Mum told me about getting herself off while you lay naked on bed asleep - or as I seem to have reckoned rightly not so asleep. I reckoned the rolling over bit was an invite..."

"It certainly was Mum!" Mother and daughter kiss.

"So this morning I told Shona the story..."

"In bed at the time were you? Katie asks.

"Well more on bed but yes we fucked briefly before but more especially after I told the story if that's what you're asking. Anyway Shona agreed with my reading of things and set it up so that I would come here with Cath today and, after a good fuck and a bit of coaxing, she told me about last night. So I simply told her the other side of the story, about us Katie and about my fantasy and, well she went and got her gymslip!"

We all cuddle again before Cath breaks away. "What's this Mum?" she asks taking Katie's strap on cock off the bedside table.

"What'd you think it is? Want to do me with it?" her mother replies.

"Not right now but I'd like you to fuck me with it. Help her put it on Jim." Cath demands. I take the instrument and examine it closely. It is cleverly designed so that it doesn't actually penetrate the wearer but delivers stimulus to her clit instead - that was how Linda had made Katie's butterfly 'fly' but still been intact for me the next day. Hadn't worked that one out before. The girls lose patience with me. "For heavens sake Jim! What's taking you so long?" Cath demands.

"Sorry." I mumble going to Katie with it. She holds it in position while I do up the straps. The dildo is quite long, maybe ten inches and maybe 5 or 6 inches round. Katie sees me looking at it as she positions herself at the entrance to Cath's love hole.

"It was the biggest Linda could find when I asked her to get me one before she came down on Saturday. Can't buy these locally!" she explains. "Nothing like that thing - cock I mean - of yours but not bad anyway."

I am hard from anticipation. Cath sees this and again says to stop. "Mum lie down - I want to be on top." Katie lies down and Cath mounts the plastic cock leaning forward over her Mum. "Jim" she says pulling her bum cheeks apart "Fuck my arse - sandwich me against my Mum." I am already behind and above her having half expected the command. I put my knob to her pucker and press in. She is so tight, her pussy already full giving less space for me but I manage to get fully into her before too long. "Gosh that feels so good! I feel so full. Now both of you fuck me. Get my tits someone!" Katie starts to buck up at her daughter as I start to pound into her rear realising Cath does not want the gentle treatment this time. We both go for her tits but I defer to Katie - I've been there before, she has not! Typically Cath is lost, orgasms rippling through her body constantly and I don't take very long to come in her the constrictions against my cock so great. I am just finishing when Katie too moans out an orgasm, the clitoral stimulator having done the business. As I pull out of Cath's rear the doorbell goes. I look at the time - six o'clock on the dot!

"I'll go." I say, the girls not having sorted themselves out yet. "It'll be Shona." Looking through the spyhole I see I am right and, hiding behind the door so no one can see my naked form open it to let her in.

She takes one look at the sperm dripping from the end of my cock, says "Take it things worked out OK?" and marches through to the bedroom. She kisses Cath passionately caressing her tits as she does so. "Having a good time?" she asks.

"Oh yes, definitely a good time! Mum's just fucked me with her dildo while Jim reamed out my arse." Cath gasps still not fully recovered.

Shona kisses Cath again this time probing at her cunt with her fingers. "Definitely sounds good! Always did fancy your Mum!" She lies back and pulls up her skirt showing she has no knickers on and turns to Katie. "Want to do me now..." she hesitates.

"Call me Katie Shona. You too Cath! And yes I'd love to. I've fancied you for a while now too but never been able to make a move on someone so young."

"Forget it - I've been going for girls for ages now. Cath has too ever since I seduced her last year. We're best friends in more ways than one!" Shona informs her matter-of-factly. I help Shona out of her peasant blouse and longish skirt. She is naked underneath, dressed for action you might say as I had been at the weekend. She lies back down, spreading her legs wide. "I'm all yours Katie!"

Cath and I watch cuddled together as Katie moves in pausing first to lick at Shona's bald pubes and to gently kiss at her little tits before settling the tip of the dildo at her cunny. Shona is just about begging for it as Katie fucks into her going slowly. I indicate Shona's tits to Cath and we cross, one to each side, and begin to kiss and lick at them driving Shona wild as Katie continues to drive into her. Shona is however matching her every movement, the two moving as if one. I look to Katie and think what a shame it is that all the straps and gubbins of the dildo effectively hide her tattoo and resolve to design a better one. Shona is orgasming hard as the three of us work her body. Katie makes to stop but I tell her to keep going until she herself has come - not that this takes long as she soon pants out her own style of orgasm, coming once but long and loud. I do love the diversity of these girls - my girls?

I climb onto the bed beside Shona. "And what made you so randy Miss Campbell?" I query.

"What you think coming into that scene wasn't enough? Knowing you've just rear-ended my best friend - not that I mind, you understand - while her mother fucked her with a dildo! And I presume you've fucked them both first?" she says.

"Yes, we acted out the whole fantasy, gymslip and all!" I confess. "But no - I reckon you've something to tell us too."

Shona smiles "Wish I could have seen it! Never mind! And yes actually I do have something to confess. Pauline, the new girl? She takes piano too. I trapped her in the loo after and introduced myself. I was almost about ready to rape her but she just smiled sweetly and said 'Pleased to meet you, can I eat your cunt? I'm told it tastes so good!' You could have knocked me down with a feather but I nod and in no time she is under my skirt pulling my knickers down! God - does that girl know how to eat puss! When she'd done she stands and says 'Your turn - I don't fag as they seem to call it here.' Well, you know me, she doesn't have to ask twice! I duck under her skirt only to find she doesn't have any knickers! I suck her out in no time. She does taste good. As we rearrange our clothing she says 'Don't suppose you know your boyfriend fucked me this morning and was he bloody good! My first time.' I'm not sure if she was trying to be nasty or what but I merely told her I knew all about it and does she fancy a threesome some time. One nil to me! Anyway that's what made me so randy!"

I smile and kiss her. "Well, looks like we've got a foursome right now. Let me show you Katie's butterfly - you'll love it!" I go to Katie and unstrap the dildo revealing all.

"Gosh! Isn't it brilliant!" Shona exclaims dropping to her knees in front of Katie to examine it closer before kissing both it and Katie's puss, her tongue pushing into her love hole. She tastes my sperm. "Cath! You haven't cleaned your Mum up properly! Not the whole fantasy then Jim?" she scolds as she makes Katie lie down on the bed spreading her legs wide before going to explore Katie's cunt with both mouth and fingers. "Mummm - you taste delicious Katie!" I turn to Cath but she shakes her head pointing instead to Shona's arse wriggling about in front of us as she laps at Katie. Cath I think is still spent from her sandwich - either that or she is enjoying seeing Shona tongue her Mum too much. I however am ready for more and move behind Shona deciding to satisfy her cunt before I take her arse if I'm able. Past form says I will. Shona feels me approach. "Yes Jim!" she gasps "Fuck me while I enjoy Katie's lovely pussy!" I fuck lustily into her - she is still the tightest of them all - taking the long slow route we both enjoy so much. Shona is coming in no time but she continues to work on Katie bringing her off and lapping up as much juice as Katie is able to give her before lifting her head clear panting "Gosh Jim! That feels SO good! He seems bigger than ever in me!" Maybe he has swollen, excited by this evening's after school activities but I doubt it although the thought is enough to made me come in her tightness. After pulling out I push my still hard cock into her anus. She falls flat on the bed and manages to roll us over so that she is on top. "Cath! Get the dildo and fuck me in the cunt with it! Help her can't you Katie?" I lie passively below Shona fondling her little tits as Katie ties the dildo onto Cath.

Mother and daughter kiss as Katie says "I want you to take me with it afterwards."

"Love to Mum!" the girl replies tracing her finger up her Mum's pussy lips and over the butterfly. "Want one of those in a few years!"

Katie leads Cath to us and positions her over Shona and I. Cath sort of falls forward into Shona making her gasp. I'm not surprised! The pressure against my passive dick is tremendous! As Cath starts to fuck the plastic cock in and out of her best friend's cunt I lie still enjoying the varying pressure against me. Shona doesn't seem to mind - I am still massaging her tits, pinching her quite hard at times. I know I'm going to come quite soon without doing another thing - Shona is already there coming constantly as Cath does her proud. After being content to watch for a while Katie joins us sticking one finger up Cath's arse while reaching round to get her tits with the other. This is enough to get Cath off and I can keep back no longer either, spurting into Shona's rear. Without pause, Katie pulls Cath from us and mounts herself on the dildo, Cath underneath her.

"Watch my butterfly fly Cath!" she says pumping up and down on Cath rippling her stomach and cunt muscles as she does so.

Shona and I lie watching having rolled onto our sides, my cock still in her arse. "Wish it were me." I say. "She feels so good when she does that. Cath won't appreciate the half of it with that plastic thing!"

Shona lifts my hand to her bald pubes. "Better than me?" she asks.

"No" I whisper, my fingers dancing over her. "No one is better than you but I have to admit Katie really does something for me."

"Not surprised - you'd have to be blind not to be affected by her!"

"Even a blind man would be affected - she feels and smells so good and I don't just mean her puss!" I agree.

"Why a blind man? That's sexist! A blind woman would go for her too! 'Fact - one of Katie's girlfriends is blind, honest. I probably know more about her Mum than even Cath does!" She clamps her arse hard down on me. I gasp. "Mercedes is a stunner by the way. Full figured in a Mediterranean sort of a way. Think she's Spanish. Wouldn't mind a go with her myself."

"Mercedes?" I query - I'd only ever heard of it as a make of fancy German cars.

"Jim sometimes if I didn't know better I'd think you were thick! I mean Katie's blind girlfriend! Think the name's Spanish too."

Katie pleasures herself on the dildo coming with a loud yell bringing Cath off with her. The two collapse together as Shona and I go to them and we all cuddle, kissing and probing everywhere. Katie runs her finger up the underside of my cock making me moan. "You really can keep it up for ever! Cath's diary said you could."

"My diary!" Cath exclaims.

"Yes. Didn't Jim tell you?" I actually had but let the point pass as Katie continues "None of this would have happened if I hadn't found it after you left for camp. Bit silly writing it all down though even if I have to admit reading it all got me quite hot! Still can't decide if it was the thought of you and Shona together or you and Jim fucking that did most for me!"

"Hope you don't keep a diary like that." I say to Shona.

"No way! Its all up here." she taps her head. "I can give you names, dates, times, places of every time I've ever had sex in any form - even with myself! Might write an erotic book one day! I've certainly enough to base it on given the events of the last few days."

I pull her tight. That's my girl, more into words than numbers like me which is why we have precious few classes together. "I love you Shona" I whisper for the first time.

"I love you too Jim!" she whispers back. "Now!" she says more loudly "What are we going to do with this!" She has my still erect dick in her hand. "Who's got a hole to fill?"

"Me!" Surprisingly it is Katie who rolls me onto my back and mounts me in the same way as she had Cath with the dildo. "I've still got something to give! Ohh!" she says as she engulfs my all. "Watch my butterfly everyone." I notice she too is watching, looking in a large mirror on the wall opposite the end of the bed. She keeps me firmly embedded simply working her muscles on me and drawing low moans out of me with the feelings on my cock and the sight of her butterfly flying as it never has before. I reach out to her and trace the outline of her tattoo, dropping my thumb to her clit as I do so. Her turn to moan! Slowly she draws herself up on me breaking the hand contact and then thumps down hard on me again pausing to use her muscles again before rising. The effect on me is cataclysmic and I offer up my homage to her, my jerking cock causing her to come too. She collapses on top off me but is given no time to rest as Shona pulls me off to lap at Katie's cunt again until she has practically drunk her dry and driving Katie to orgasm again.

"You certainly can eat puss!" Katie gasps as she recovers. We all lie cuddling and then I spoil the moment when my stomach rumbles loudly. "Hungry Jim?" she asks.

"Yes, I suppose I am!" I reply. It had gone seven after all.

"Come to the kitchen and I'll fix us all something to eat." Katie promises so we all troupe through naked. After what we'd done why try and hide anything? "After tea I want to see you and Jim make love and then for you to fuck me with the dildo Shona while Jim takes Cath." Making love to Shona sounds good to me, not fucking her, making love to her, slow, passionate, gentle. The thought has me stirring again. Shona notices and after the merest of nods from Katie takes me back to the bedroom. Cath makes to follow us. "No leave them be just now honey." I hear Katie say. "We'll get to join in later."

Shona closes the door and lies on the bed her legs spread. "Come on then - make love to me!" she whispers. Ignoring the invite for the moment, I lie beside her and kiss her deeply in the mouth our tongues fighting out a sort of sword battle before I start kissing lower and lower, first on her neck then each gorgeous little tit enveloping each fully with my mouth, making my way over her tight little tummy where I stick my tongue into her belly-button making her squirm but I stop short of her pussy and instead begin to work my way back up retracing my route over her tits and neck back to her mouth. We kiss deeply once more. The sexual urgency in me and I'm sure in Shona is so great that I can resist no longer and I roll over on top of her letting my knob naturally find the outer limit of her love hole. As slowly as I can I push him forward feeling Shona expand around me. Eventually I bottom out in her, stretching her as much as I am able. When she feels my knob hit her cervix Shona instantly comes and comes hard, explosive in her orgasm but she moves with me rolling her hips as only she can as I continue to stroke slowly and tenderly in and out of her tight cunt. Typically for her, Shona is coming all the time and all too soon for me for I want this to last forever I feel the tightening coming to my balls and after another stroke my cock is pulsating, pumping my love juice into Shona. She comes all the harder when she feels my cum hit her insides. "Oh Jim! Yes, yes, YES!" she wails. Withdrawing I nestle her to me. "If you'd done that number with your mouth one more time before you fucked me..." she starts.

"I didn't fuck you, we made love remember?" I interrupt.

"Yes we really did. I do love you Jim" she blushes. I can feel her cheek hot against mine.

"Why? Because we have great sex together?"

"No! I just do. Maybe its the way you put up with all my little quirks, girls and everything. I don't know! The way you make me feels probably helps. That was really, really good Jim." she says.

"Well, I love you too Shona. Have for ages really, long before last Wednesday. Long before I knew how great sex would be with you. Long before I knew anything about you and other girls. Just didn't know what it was. I enjoyed making love to you just now more than anything else we've gone together." I confess.

She hugs me tight before getting up. "Raw sex, sex for the sake of it, fucking if you like is brilliant too! Come on the others will wonder what has happened too us!" Hand in hand we wander back to the kitchen.

"Have fun you two?" Katie asks. "Took your time, leaving poor Cath and I to do all the work!"

"Sorry!" Shona answers "But yes we did have a great time thanks! It was just something that we had to do. Make it up to the pair of you later." Shona kisses both Katie and Cath and I kiss all three deeply.

"Its only burger rolls I'm afraid" Katie says. "Its all there was in the freezer - I wasn't expecting company." I don't care wolfing my share down ravenously as we sit round the table chatting with not a stitch on between us. Finished, we go through to the living room. Shona sits cuddled tight next to me on one sofa while Cath nestles into her Mum on the other. We talk of our experiences of sex and Katie tells of some of her girlfriends. "Some of them are bi, others are still virgins. I wouldn't mind trying to make things happen for you with them Jim."

"Mumm!" I caution. "Need to be careful about who knows about what's happened here tonight and what I like to think will happen between the four of us in the future. So far no one but us knows although Linda knows what you wanted to happen. I don't think we should let it go any further."

"That's probably wise." says Cath "But if you want to arrange things with Jim and one of your other girlfriends when I'm not here I don't mind Mum. I'm sure the three, four (she smiles at Shona who grins back) of us will have plenty great times together."

"Would it be OK if I joined in?" Shona asks no doubt thinking of Mercedes.

"Don't see why not." Cath shrugs.

That agreed Shona begins to play with my cock. "We owe you two a show. Up for it Jim?" I am instantly! Shona smiles and lies back "Just like last time Jim." So I kiss her pressing my tongue deep into her mouth before working my way down her body, sucking at her tits and belly-button and back up again to her mouth. I can see Cath and Katie cuddled together watching and caressing at each others' tits. I start working down her body again remembering her unfinished sentence about what would have happened if I'd done that one more time. One way to find out! The answer is that she comes just as I suck her right tit into my mouth on the way down! "That was naughty Jim!" she smiles at me not really meaning it. I keep going, she comes when I lick at her navel and again with each tit I suck on the way back up. I roll over and part her lips gently with my cock-head moving as slowly as I am able. Once again she comes when I am full length inside her. This time however I seem to have better control and keep her up there for ages stroking ever so slowly in and out of her tightness. Eventually and reluctantly I have to give in and fire another salvo into her depths again making her come even harder, milking the cum out of my cock. Mother and daughter come to us and kiss each.

"Wow Shona! Do you know you were coming for well over ten minutes solid?" Katie asks.

"Was I? It was all so wonderful!" she flings her arms round me. "Thank you Jim - it just keeps getting better!" I clench my muscles making my cock jump inside her. "Still up? Good! You've got Cath to see to! Where's the dildo Katie?"

"You sure you're fit for it after that Shona?" Katie asks concernedly.

"Give me a moment or two to catch my breath and I'll be fine!" she says.

I cuddle her to me and say "You really are insatiable! Glad you managed to keep going for me! You are a wonderful lover."

"Lover! Yes like the sound of that and, Jim, I didn't want ever to stop coming there until I felt your seed in me again. Your seed seems to make my orgasm complete when we're like that!"

Katie helps Shona into the dildo then I suggest "Why don't we go back to the bedroom so that we can do it lying sit by side?"

"I'd like that Mum." says Cath so off we go. Katie and her daughter lie down side by side on the bed and cuddle and kiss each other while at the same time keeping their bums flat on the bed and their legs apart. Shona and I too kiss once more and I let my hands stray over her tits before we set our organs at their respective holes. Me at Cath, Shona with the plastic cock at Katie. Simultaneously we both press forward going only a little way in before stopping to kiss again. Every inch or so we go deeper we stop again and kiss. This is driving both Cath and Katie up the wall, their passion rising every time we stop until we are finally fully in each. Shona and I set up a steady rhythm rising and falling in unison pinching quick kisses at the top of each stroke until Cath is driven into coming first. She is forced to break the kiss with her mother to gasp in enough oxygen as she keeps on coming. Katie is over the edge next yelling out her long powerful climax closely followed by Shona who is done after only a few more strokes. She pulls me out of Cath and starts wanking my cock.

"Come on Katie's butterfly - come on it for me." Shona pleads. The way she is manipulating my cock gives me little option and soon I am coming buckets all over Katie but most does indeed land in the region of her butterfly and puss. Shona and Cath are on her in a trice lapping and licking up my cream. Babs saying something about eating whipped cream from a puss comes to mind - yes must try that sometime! I go to Katie and offer her my rapidly deflating cock to lick so that she can share in the taste - and with the added bonus of her daughter's juices on me.

Once everyone is finished I pull myself away. "Look sorry to break up the party but I'd better go." My dratted curfew again.

"Walk me home?" Shona asks.

"You bet, sexy!" I say as we both dress. She blushes.

We say our goodnights and leave Cath and Katie cuddled together on the bed letting ourselves out.

"Relationships have changed in that house!" I remark as we walk home preferring to take quiet lanes over the main roads so we can stop for a snog whenever we feel like it - which is often.

"Yes - but wasn't it brilliant fun!"

"Best fun was when we made love." I say pulling her to me. By now we are in a very secluded spot and I unbutton enough of her blouse to be able to fondle her otherwise naked tits.

She moans softly. "Sorry they're not any bigger for you Jim!"

"Sorry! Where's the problem? I love being able to draw all of them into my mouth like that and if you can get over from that alone I don't see any problem."

"Get over? I came hard!" she smiles "Undo your trousers and sit sideways on that bench - I feel some raw sex coming on!"

Moving to the indicated backless bench I straddle it with my legs pulling down my trousers and boxers as I do so. My cock is already hard from my touch on Shona's tits just like it had been on Wednesday when all this started. Shona comes hitching her skirt saying "Knew I should have worn something shorter!" as she plunges herself down the length of my shaft. "Despite the number of times I've come today that still feels so good. Can't wait for that kit to come so that I can have my own copy - going to make a copy for everyone you've fucked! Although at the rate you're deflowering the virgins of this fair town I'll need to open a factory!"

"Come on it was only two today!" I protest.

Shona laughs softly as she starts to buck up and down wildly on my thick cock. "Raw sex I said!". I begin to thrust up to meet her downward thrusts making us bang quite hard together every time her cunt lips meet the base of my dick. It only takes a couple of minutes until we both come, Shona a couple of strokes ahead of me. She falls against me panting.

I pull her up a little to be able to caress her tits through her still open blouse. "These two are perfect. Dare say they'll grow some over the next few years but don't every consider a tit job!"

She purrs "OK but I do want a tattoo in a few years. Wasn't Katie's fabulous?" She gets up smoothes down her skirt and buttons up her blouse as I sort my trousers. "Better get me home now. You'll have to run afterwards to make it in time."

Luckily we are quite near Shona's and as we part we both say "I love you." simultaneously. This draws me back for another kiss before Shona dismisses me and admonishes me to run. I am in plenty of time however, I think the clock in Katie's flat must have been a little fast and so with hasty goodnights to my parents and a quick shower I hit the sack again.
---------------

Please remember to leave feedback. BD

Boarding House Chapter 4

F6FHellcat on Celebrity Stories

Sabrina opened the door to Libby’s room and let herself in. The brunette was too busy to turn around and see who was entering, but she could certainly hear them.

“Didn’t anyone ever tell you it’s rude to enter someone’s room without knocking?” She asked, disapproval in her voice. Still she didn’t turn around, she was far too busy arranging things. “What if I had been undressing? Do you really think I’d want you to see my boobs, geek?”

“Funny, I thought I saw you in all your glory already,” Sabrina said, smiling broadly at seeing Libby jump.

“Sabrina!” Libby turned to face her intruder, a mixture of shock and relief on her face. “I thought you were that geek, Greg Flengen. The way

Read More
he was looking at me before you came into the kitchen it’s pretty clear he’s not only a geek but a perv. Why’d you even rent a room to someone like him?”

“Believe me, I didn’t have a choice in the matter,” Sabrina replied, taking a seat at the foot of Libby’s bed. She looked at the poster Libby had been putting up before going on. “Roxie and I wanted to interview folks. You know, decide if they were the kind of folks we wanted to rent rooms to. Morgan just rented to the first three people to call. I’m sure he’s pretty harmless though.”

“That is unless you’re a witch or some other Other Realm being,” she thought to herself, though she kept an unconcerned look on her face. It wouldn’t do for Libby to know he worried her too.

“Harmless!” Libby raised her voice in disgust. “He wasn’t checking you out with that lecherous stare. He knows I’ve got huge boobs and wants to see them. It’s always been the curse of the beautiful to have geeks, nerds, really old guys, and fatsos staring at us and undressing us with their eyes. But I’ve found an even worse curse. To be beautiful and have these freakishly huge boobs. Now their not only undressing me with their eyes, the pervs are imagining putting their dicks between my boobs and having me suck them off.

“You’re lucky they don’t look at you the same way they used to look at me. Cute girls like you are just there for them to look at and not undress with their eyes.”

“Cute, huh?” Sabrina asked, smiling to herself at Libby’s choice of words. She could remember a time when Libby wouldn’t have called her cute. Plain, certainly since cute would have been a compliment. Certainly she had been cute, pretty even. She’d dare to have said she was beautiful in her own way. But Libby would never have willingly admitted to any of those about her. At least not during high school.

“I’m sorry, I meant sexy.”

Sabrina lifted an eyebrow at that comment, causing Libby to blush. Perhaps she had been right about her after all. Perhaps Libby was bi. Although one encounter with another woman didn’t make one bi, did it? She’d heard plenty of straight women experimented with lesbian sex once or twice in their lives and were never actually attracted to women. It was just experimentation, that’s all. She’d experimented with Morgan and Roxie after all, though she did find she was attracted to women as much as men because of it.

She stared at Libby with the same kind of lust Libby found so disgusting in geeks, nerds, old geezers, and fat guys. Although she certainly didn’t have a cock with which to titty fuck Libby with. But Libby could suck on her clit for her. She smiled inwardly at the thought of Libby sucking her clit before lapping her pussy to orgasm for her. Then she shook her head to clear it of those thoughts. Libby might or might not be bi, she didn’t know for sure yet. But after introducing her to her first masturbation session, not to mention the first time she’d been with another woman in any way, Sabrina wasn’t too sure how she’d respond if she sat on her face right then.

But as these thoughts ran through her mind Sabrina began to feel herself getting wetter than she’d ever gotten just by thinking casual sexual thoughts before. No, she’d only gotten this wet from dreams or, and this was usually the case, playing with herself or having sex. And to her shock and dismay, she wasn’t only getting wet between her legs. She could feel two spots of wetness forming on her shirt. Right where her nipples were.

“Uh, Sabrina, what’s happening to you?” Libby asked, eyes glued to her breast.

“Oh no,” Sabrina thought, horrified. “The lactation spell, I completely forgot it lasts at least four hours and that it increases how horny I feel. Funny, I thought the nursing bra would help a little.”

“Gross, you’ve got something coming out of your boobs. It’s some kind of liquid.” Libby’s draw dropped when what she said finally hit home. “Wait a minute, some kind of liquid? And it’s only over your boobs. Are you....”

Libby couldn’t explain why she did it. To her surprise and Sabrina’s she crossed over to the witch and pulled her shirt up over her head, exposing her leaking breasts. Libby let out a shock at seeing Sabrina’s bare breasts, not knowing what to have expected.

Sabrina was even more shocked. She knew she’d been wearing a nursing bra when she came in. Hell, she taken off her shirt right outside Libby’s door before opening it so she could see whether the bra opened in the front or back. Just incase she ended up giving Libby lesson number two in girl-girl sex. But to have it completely gone now, that didn’t make any sense

Libby squeezed Sabrina’s nipples, causing milk to squirt out

“It’s milk,” Libby said, stunned. “You are. You’re lactating. But that’s impossible, isn’t it. I mean women only do that after they’ve had a baby, right?”

“I’m gonna have to check the book,” Sabrina thought. “I know I came in here with a bra on. So why is it....”

Sabrina’s thought’s were suddenly interrupted when she felt Libby’s lips engulf her left breast. Sabrina moaned in delight as the former cheerleader suckled at her tit, drinking deeply her rich milk. Libby pulled away, licking her lips and giving Sabrina a rather lustful look.

“Well, well, it looks as if teacher’s got a yummy reward for her little student.”

“Excuse me?”

“I must say, Sabrina, had I known how good your milk would taste I’d have ripped your nightshirt off and started nursing the minute I came in the house. I’d have let you do anything just for a sip of what you have in those titties of yours.”

The husky tone in Libby’s voice wasn’t lost on Sabrina, nor was the look in her eyes. There wasn’t any hunger there. Instead they were vacant and far away while at the same time seeming to be looking right at Sabrina with pure lust, pleading with her to screw her senseless. It was as if Libby wasn’t even home yet all too present all at once

“I really do have to check that book,” Sabrina thought, before pulling Libby to her right tit. “Suck it slut.”

There was no need really for her to be so demanding. As soon as she felt herself being pulled to Sabrina’s other boob she more than willingly leaned in to suckle her. As she sucked on Sabrina’s boob a hand slid down her pants so she could play with her own pussy. Sabrina sensed where Libby had stuck her hand and smiled proudly. She was right, she had become Libby teacher. Her sex teacher. And what teacher wouldn’t be proud when they learned their pupil was putting what they’d learned to good use?

“Libby.”

“Hmmm?” Libby hummed around Sabrina’s breast. The vibrations nearly drove the young which wild.

“Dear sweet Libby, I need you to do something for me.

“Mmmhmmm?”

“I want you to take your hand out of your pants and slide it into mine. I need you to play with my pussy for me.”

Libby stopped sucking on Sabrina’s boob and gave her a desperate look. “But that will mean I have to stop playing with mine, mistress.”

“Mistress? Where did that come from?” Sabrina wondered. “Yes, it will, sweetie. But don’t you want to please me?”

In a flash Libby withdrew her hand from her pants. But she didn’t do as Sabrina asked. Instead, she stood Sabrina up and then took off her pants. It was something the young witch hadn’t expected, but she found it highly delightful. Libby, who earlier had to be forced into revealing her own body, was now willingly stripping Sabrina. She took a step back and got out of her shirt and pants. But when she went to remove her bra, Sabrina stopped her.

“No, not just yet. I have something in mind before you can remove those.”

The brunette nodded and turned her attention to Sabrina’s pussy. “What do I do?”

“The same thing you do to yourself,” Sabrina told her as she pulled her back to her chest.

As Libby started to suckle again she lightly ran the tip of her finger over Sabrina’s puffy outer lips. This elicited a gasp for the blonde, not having realized how sensitive she suddenly was. The ex-cheerleader slowly traced her fingers over the other girls lips as if she were trying to memorize the very feel of her. Sabrina was shocked to feel herself already working up to an orgasm just from what little Libby had done.

Unable to stand it any longer, and not really stopping to think whether it was still to soon to do it, Sabrina shoved Libby away and forced her to kneel in front of her as if in worship. She spread her legs and pulled Libby to her crotch.

“Suck my clit, slut. Make me cum.”

Libby scrunched up her face, repulsed by the idea of putting another woman’s pussy anywhere near her face. But then she saw Sabrina’s clit. It seemed abnormally large to her, almost like a little cock. She’d given a few blowjobs before, all she’d actually do with most guys really. But this wasn’t some cock. It was another woman’s clit. It was Sabrina’s clit

 

Sabrina’s clit. Somewhere way back in her mind was a voice screaming `No, don’t do it! You’re not some fucking lesbian!” But then it was drowned out by many other voices, all her own, telling her to go ahead. Some said it was just experimentation, other’s that Sabrina was her teacher. Others of course said that it would make Sabrina happy and if she didn’t then Sabrina would kick her out on her ass just as she’d threatened earlier. But then there was the loudest voice, the one that had suddenly appeared in her mind when her sense had first told her Sabrina was leaking from both her breasts and her pussy. `Do it, do as your mistress commands!’

Without another word, Libby wrapped her lips around Sabrina’s clit. Sabrina clamped her legs to the side of Libby’s head as she felt her first orgasm hit her. Sabrina screamed in ecstasy as waves of pleasure swept through her. But she had to keep it from over coming her completely. The moment was just right.

Before her orgasm could overtake her, she pointed to Libby’s bed and zapped in a breast pump. Then, with a shaky finger she pointed to the brunette’s chest.

““I know theeeeseeee breasts would like to reeeesssstttt, but I neeeeeed milk so make it quick!”

The very last part was screamed out as Sabrina could no longer resist her orgasm any more. She grabbed the back of Libby’s head and held her there as she came hard. Her juices dribbled down her chin and onto her freakishly huge breasts. Libby felt a strange pressure building in her breasts but ignored it so she could continue pleasuring Sabrina. She continued sucking the witches clit, oblivious to the world around her.

Sabrina’s legs finally let out as her orgasm subsided. Letting go of the brunette’s head she collapsed into a heap onto her bed, just barely missing the breast pump. Panting she ran her hands weakly over her own breasts before squeezing them to get a little milk out. Then she remembered the spell she’d cast and looked over to see Libby clawing at her bra. She smiled proudly when Libby finally got it off and milk started squirting out.

“Here, this should take some of the pressure off,” she said, putting the pump over Libby’s tits and starting it siphoning off some of her new found breast milk.

“Where, did that come from, it wasn’t here a few minutes ago?”

“Just a little something I zapped in,” Sabrina explained. “Don’t worry, you won’t remember I even said that.”

With that Sabrina zapped Libby with a memory charm the book recommended be used on all subjects the lactation spell was used on.

*****

Sabrina finally returned to her room after a little fuck session with Libby. As she had pumped Libby’s tits she had also worked the woman’s pussy into a lather, surprised at the copious amount of juices she got to come out of her. She’d grabbed a tea cup Libby had on the night stand beside her bed and used it to catch as much of Libby’s come as she could.

Once the cup was a quarter full and the bottles on the breast pump completely full, she set both cup and pump aside and proceeded to 69 the other girl. She managed to bring Libby to three orgasms before the brunette finally passed out. She’d used that as her chance to zap herself back to her own room. Sabrina was just finishing labeling bottles as Libby’s milk and her cum when Salem finally appeared.

“So, did you ruin Fluffy?” Sabrina asked, disapproval in her voice. “You know Mrs. Anderson was hoping to breed her.”

“Oh, she’s been bred alright,” Salem said, proudly. “I think I was raped, Sabrina. That Persian was all over me before I could even sneak in through the window. I’m tell you she’s hot for my form.”

“Salem, that’s just plain disgusting.”

“You’re telling me. She did things I thought no normal cat could do. Why she….”

“Salem!” Sabrina screamed, not wanting to her the sordid details of cat sex.

“Sorry, Sabrina, but it ain’t like you humans are the only ones who enjoy sex you know.”

“And it ain’t like you’re a mere cat,” she retorted, reminding him of what he really was. “I don’t need to hear about your little kitty sexual conquests.”

“Oh, well why didn’t you say that in the first place?” Salem asked, sounding more than a little hurt that he couldn’t share. Then he noticed Sabrina’s collection. “Hmmm, it would seem I got to miss all the fun here.”

“Yeah you did,” Sabrina said, absently, as she read the Appendix spell book. “Not that Libby and I really needed a cat voyeur.”

“So did you and her do the old horizontal mambo?”

“That’s none of your business. Hmmm, Salem do you think it was a bad idea for me to cast this lactation spell on myself first?”

“No, why?”

“Because it says here that any half witch-half mortal who uses the spell on herself also essentially gains a bit of control over any woman or girl who is currently suffering from the effects of a spell. Though the only spell they can suffer the effects from and not be affected by me is the lactation spell. It says that the smell of my pussy has subtly changed so as to cause women to become subservient to me, but only if they sallow my breast milk before I cum. But it only happens if I get sexually excited. That would explain why Libby called me mistress and got that strange look in her eyes. She was under my spell.”

“As far as I can see, that may not be a bad thing,” Salem told her. “Always nice to have a willing sex slave.”

“Hmmm, you probably should have looked more heavily for side effects, Salem.” Sabrina never even noticed he’d said anything about sex slaves. “It says right here that any bra summoned by magic will instantly vanish the moment a woman under the lactation spell starts lactating into it.”

“Oh that,” Salem chuckled. “I thought that was just a joke.”

“No you didn’t,” Sabrina said, suddenly realizing he’d deliberately left that out. “You wanted to see me braless if I zapped one in.”

“Can you blame me?” Salem asked. “Face it Sabrina, you’ve got great tits. And you’re milk tastes great.”

She wanted to give him some kind of snappy comment, but she couldn’t. He was right, after all. Even she admired her breasts, they were fantastic even without the lactation spell making them swell with milk. And she’d tasted her own breast milk, it was like an ambrosia she liked to her. There was definitely the taste of pineapple, orange, coconut, maraschino cherry, and cream all mixed together. She figured that had to be because it wasn’t natural lactation. Well, it was but it wasn’t. Her body had produced the milk, it had just been stimulated by the spell to do so.

“Salem, what did my milk taste like to you?”

“Ambrosia,” he replied dreamily. “And believe me it was way better than any I’ve ever had before.”

“You’ve tried breast milk before?” Sabrina asked, shocked.

“As you’ve pointed out, Sabrina, I wasn’t always a cat.”

“Oh right, you were probably breast feed when you were a baby. You know, Salem, I’m a little shocked you remember that.”

“I never said I remembered breast feeding when I was a child, Sabrina. I will have you know that before I was turned into a cat I had many sexual encounters. Some with pregnant women and even a few with women who had given birth. None of those who fed me their breast milk, either witch or mortal, tasted like yours. The taster was sweeter than regular milk, but nothing like yours.”

“I tried Libby’s, it tasted like fresh baked apple crisp.”

Salem looked to the bottles on the shelf. “Can I try just a little of Libby’s?”

“No, I need it for the spell.”

“Puhlease????” the cat whined, putting on his best `I’ll be good if you give me some’ voice.

Sabrina zapped in a curio cabinet with a magic lock on it and proceed to put the bottles of Libby and her milk into it along with the bottle of Libby’s cum. She then closed the cabinet and locked it, sticking her tongue out at cat.

“That’s just plain mean Sabrina,” Salem retorted, looking accusingly at the cabinet as if it was the one who’d denied him his treat and not the witch. Then he noticed Sabrina had turned back to the book.

“Sabrina, what are you doing?”

“I’m looking for another spell, something to make things a little easier. I mean, I fucked Libby so I could cast the spell on her. But I don’t want to fuck everyone just so I can cast the spell on them. Ah, here we go. Perfect, now I just have to get a few things together.”

“What are you going to do?”

Sabrina smiled impishly at the cat. She then put on her most theatrical voice.

“If we shadows have offended,
Think but this, and all is mended,
That you have but slumbered here
While these visions did appear.”

“How very Shakespearean of you,” Salem said, nodding in approval. “A dream spell, most appropriate You can cast one to last for as long as the lactation spell lasts. And if you should desire more sex slaves….”

“Who ever said I wanted to cast a sex slave spell?” Sabrina interrupted.

 

“Sabrina, weren’t you listening to what I said earlier. As you explained, while you’re under the effects of the lactation spell the smell of your pussy has changed to make any woman who smells it subservient to you. But only if they drink your milk before you cum and only when you’re aroused. And only if their already suffering the effects of a previous spell. In other words, if you cast any spell that lasts for a while and then have sex with another girl you could make them your willing sex slave.”

“Ok, so basically I’ve behave myself and try not to have sex with Carol, Morgan, or Roxie.”

But deep inside Sabrina had to admit the idea of at least another sex slave kinda excited her.

 

 

 

 

 

 

 

Boarding House Chapter 3

F6FHellcat on Celebrity Stories

It was three in the afternoon before Sabrina finally was able to get back to her room. The last person Morgan had rented a room to had taken his own sweet time arriving at the house, and Sabrina felt like strangling the guy by the time he finally did arrive. If he’d been another woman, she probably would have done so. Or at least she’d have been less than professional when giving the tour of the house.

Before Carol had arrived, Sabrina only had to worry about casting the lactation spell on four women. Carol had caused the number to increase, thus making things a little more difficult since the spell had to be cast once for each individual rather than just once for everyone in the household. Not that it couldn’t be done that way, of course. The problem with casti

Read More
ng it on the household, as the book had warned, was that houses typically didn’t lactate themselves. But if cast on a house it would do so for a week, which would be hard to explain and even more difficult to hide from everyone else inside. Then there was the other problem of the spell’s duration. Normally only about four hours to a day, though the book said sometimes it would last for upwards of four days, when cast on an individual. But while the house itself would only produce milk for a week, any woman who walked into the house over the next year would start lactating and wouldn’t stop for a month or two. Had their last tenant been female, Sabrina would have snapped just from having to find a way to cast the spell on six women. Worse, they had to be awake when she cast it and know she was in the room.

“Do you know whose down in the kitchen at this very moment?” Salem asked as he hopped up on the bed.

“Our new tenants,” came the huffy reply. Sabrina didn’t really need Salem’s stupid guessing games at the moment. “I left Libby and Carol with what’s his name so they could get to know each other. And Libby didn’t look thrilled with the idea of sharing the house with a geek.”

“Geek, yes. But a famous geek. Sabrina, that’s Greg Flengen!”

 

“Yeah, I believe that’s what he said his name was,” the young witch replied, paying the cat very little attention.

“Mortal realm to Sabrina, you’re new tenant is host of ‘Ghosts Today!’ You know, one of those shows where their out to either find ghosts or prove a place isn’t haunted.”

Sabrina’s head snapped around, her eyes nearly bulging out of their sockets. It had been bad enough in high school to hide the fact that she was a witch, especially in her senior year when Brad had first returned to West Bridge and still had his witch hunting gene. But then when she’d gone of to college and had been roommates with Miles things had become worse since he was trying to prove the existence of UFOs and such. But Greg Flengen was renowned as a local ghost hunter, and he’d probably be able to find witches as well. Now she wished she had throttled him when he arrived.

“Salem, this is just great! How am I going to cast the lactation spell on five women with a ghost hunter in the house. And for that matter, what do you think he’s going to do at the end of this month?”

“Yeah, he’s going to think he found the other end of the rainbow with all the ghosts and goblins that are bound to come through the portal,” Salem chuckled, putting on a really bad Irish accent.

“This is serious, cat!” Sabrina retorted, flicking her finger in his general direction and sending him flying off the bed. She then proceeded to conjure a breast pump. “It’s easy to cast this spell on myself in here because I’ve got my door closed and am by myself. But I’m sure he’ll get a little suspicious if I call all the women in this house into my room. Not to mention having us running around producing breast milk when none of us are pregnant or have babies.”

 

“He’s not here all the time, Sabrina, so just cast the spell when he’s gone. Plus he’s never seen Roxie and Morgan, so he has no clue whether or not their already lactating. Besides, I heard him telling Libby and Carol he’d be leaving tomorrow and would be gone for a week.

Sabrina smiled as she turned back to her spell book. Having Greg in the house would make things a little more difficult, but at least she knew she could cast the spell on the others once he left. Nodding to herself as she began thinking of ways to cast the spell on the others, she stepped back from the book and pointed her finger at herself, reciting the words in the book.

“I know these breasts would like to rest, but I need milk so make it quick.”

Sparkles shot from the end of her finger, striking her in the chest. She felt her breast tingle for a moment then the tingling subsided. Looking down, she expected to find a wet spot on her blouse, but there was nothing. Five minutes ticked by and still nothing was happening. Had she cast the spell right? Was she supposed to have taken off her shirt and bra?

She started back towards the book when she began to feel her breast begin to swell. By the time she looked down it was clear they were already a size or two too big for the bra she wearing and still growing. She had to get out of the bra before it became any more uncomfortable. She tore at the buttons on her blouse so she could get it off, not able to think clear enough to even come up with the thought of zapping both it and the bra away. As she did so, she could feel pressure building up inside her chest, feel her nipples becoming rock hard and sore from rubbing against the increasingly too small bra.

Finally getting the blouse off herself, she ripped at the clasp of her front hooking bra, tearing the damn thing right off herself. And just in time too for as soon as it fell away her nipples began squirting out milk.

“Thar she blows!” Salem cheered, having jumped up onto her desk to see if she had indeed cast the spell right. He was right in the way of the stream of breast milk and quickly found himself covered.

Without the constraint of her bra and with the pressure having backed off a bit from what it was originally, Sabrina’s breasts stopped squirting like crazy. But her breast still felt awfully full, as if they needed someone to suckle them to ease the pain their fullness was causing her. Sabrina reached up and squeezed both her nipples, causing a second wave to spray over the black cat. And also causing her loins to begin stirring. Picking up the pump, she stuck it over her nipples and began pumping out breast milk, which caused her pussy to start getting nice and wet.

“Salem, this is incredible. I’m getting so fucking horny just from having my tits pumped.” This time she had the presence of mind to actually zap away her clothing rather than struggle with it. With the rest of it gone, she dipped a couple fingers into her snatch and brought them out for the cat to see just how wet she was. She sucked them clean before returning to playing with herself. “Wow, if I’d known lactating makes a girl this fucking horny, I’d have had Harvey knock me up years ago.”

 

“Well young lady,” Salem said in his best professor like voice, once he’d cleaned himself up, “it says right here that the only known side effect of this spell when cast on an individual is that it makes her extremely horny until she stops lactating. While lactating might make some women horny naturally, what’s happening to you is a magical side effect.”

Sabrina didn’t care at the moment, all she knew was that she needed some relief and she needed it fast. She quickly zapped open her bottom dresser drawer and summoned her chrome vibrator. It zipped across the room, landing in her free hand. Normally Sabrina would have started by rubbing it across her nipples, but as they were already occupied by the breast pump she decided it was time to go straight for her pussy.

Flicking it on, she ran the vibrator along her pussy lips, moaning as the vibrations sent tingles up her spine. She kept running it along her slit, teasing herself to increase the pleasure she was feeling. As she ran it up to her clit, Sabrina gasped in surprise. Normally it would take several long minutes before she was aroused enough for her little clit to come out of it’s hood. But already it was out, and even more sensitive than she was used to. At the very moment the vibrator touched her button she had a mini orgasm, something she had never experienced this soon before.

Somewhat lost in the moment, she held the sex toy to her clit, the vibrations causing her to pass through a steady stream of mini orgasms. They were like a string of firecrackers, as one began dieing away she was hit by another. The feeling was incredible, almost as good as what she’d felt giving Libby her first orgasm. She wanted to scream, but nothing would come out of her mouth.

 

Finally after a few minutes of this she slipped the vibrator back down and began pushing it past her lips. Sabrina was so wet by this time that it was like sliding a hot knife through butter. Before she knew it, her fingers were resting against her lips, the thumb brushing across her clit. Grunting, she pulled it out until the tip just barely parted her lips then pushed it back in. Out, in, in, out, getting a nice rhythm going as she fucked herself. Each time she pushed the vibrator in, she made certain to rub her clit with the pad of her thumb at the end of the each stroke before pulling back out.

“That’s it girl, work that thing!” Salem cheered. For the millionth time he wished the council hadn’t turned him into a cat. At least when he was human he could have jerked off to the show the young witch was giving him, and maybe screwed her senseless if she’d let him.

Panting, Sabrina started shoving the sex toy in harder, feeling her orgasm welling up inside. Her body was slick with perspiration, but she wanted more. She started angling the little chrome shaft around until she had it rubbing against her g-spot. That was all it took for the wave to slam into her. Sabrina screamed out in primal lust as her orgasms took control of her. She shook uncontrollably, feeling as if she’d never stop cumming. Her pussy walls were contracting around the vibrator, trying to milk it as if it were a real cock. She could feel her juices escaping around the battery operated invader, flow down her thighs and puddling on the floor under her ass. But she was too far gone to care, she just let go of the vibrator and started squeezing her tits.

She took of the breast pump so as to get a better grip on her nipples. Tugging at them, she squirted milk across the room as the vibrator slowly worked it’s way out of her tender pussy. She then bent her head forward, holding the left tit up so she could lick the nipple. Before that could happen, her fingers squeezed the nipple, shooting her in the face with her own milk.

Licking her lips, Sabrina decided she liked the taste and proceed to try and inhale her own nipple. But her breast wasn’t big enough to allow her to do more than lick it, so she settled for the next best thing. Squeezing out a little milk, just enough so that it didn’t squirt but merely covered the nipple, and then lapping it clean. It was only after a few minutes of this that she finally realized her orgasm had stopped and she was feeling a cool breeze on her slit.

Getting unsteadily to her feet, Sabrina looked around at the mess she made. Her breast still felt full of milk, but at least she wasn’t as horny anymore and she didn’t feel like she needed to be milked. Her mind was clear enough that she could think up a spell to clean up first the room then herself. Once that was done she cast another spell so as to clothe herself, this time wearing a bra for women who were lactating.

“Wow, that spell’s really something else,” she announced, feeling a little flushed and sore from fucking herself so hard.

“I’ll say,” Salem panted, clearly worked up by what he’d just seen.

“Ah, poor kitty have blue balls?” Sabrina teased.

“Not for much longer,” Salem said, an idea coming to mind. He hopped from Sabrina’s desk to the open window, heading for the oak tree outside it. “Mrs. Arnold, you’re little Fluffy is going to have a good time tonight.”

“Salem, you stay away from Fluffy, she’s a prize winning Persian!” But it was too late, the black cat was already on his way down the tree.

*****

Libby prattled on and on about her life since leaving West Bridge as she moved about her new room. Occasionally she’d stop after saying something that she now realized might offended Sabrina and cast a nervous glance at the young witch before offering a quick apology. Then she’d rush headlong into what she’d been saying again as if nothing had happened.

Although Libby had already put her clothes and valuables away earlier in the day, there was still things she had to do to the room to make it feel like home to her. When Sabrina had arrived in the kitchen shortly after her masturbation session, Libby had announced she needed to return to her room to finish unpacking and had given Sabrina an almost unnoticeable nod of the head as she left, blushing ever so slightly. Sabrina had given her fifteen minutes head start before following. Even with Greg still in the house, she couldn’t contain her desire to see Libby’s tits dripping milk. Maybe it was a sense of revenge for all those years of torment, or maybe she was still horny. It didn’t really matter to her. And besides, Gregg had made the very subtle comment just after Libby left that he figured she had given birth recently and given the baby up for adoption.

Carol had tried pointing out to him that Libby might either be really well endowed through genetics or had had a little surgery done to enhance her bust line. But the geek countered with the argument that he was getting a certain kind of vide of her, a kind he caught only off someone who was possessed or a woman who had given birth. He claimed that only the best ghost hunters could detect items of a supernatural nature without any equipment. Although there was something about women who had just given birth that felt almost like they were possessed when they weren’t.

Sabrina did have to laugh to herself about what he said, though at the same time it frightened her a little. Although he clearly had no clue what he was talking about, she did have to wonder if he could detect magic in some way and that, coupled with his own preconceived ideas, was why he thought Libby had given birth. If so, it could make him very dangerous to have around. But at least it made him seem less likely to become suspicious of Libby if she suddenly started lactating.

Boarding House Chapter 2

F6FHellcat on Celebrity Stories

As soon as Sabrina got Libby settled in, she returned to her own room to consult her magic book in order to find out if there was any way she could confirm what had happened to her. Magic had to be the reason for Libby’s huge tits and bald cunt, but whose magic. After all her years since learning she was a witch, she’d come to learn that witches and warlocks weren’t the only magical people, nor the only ones who could cast magic. It was just as possible that Libby could have been under the enchantment of a fairy as it was that she was under one of a witch or warlock.

It was even possible that she’d cast a spell on herself. Despite not being a witch, Sabrina knew that she couldn’t rule Libby out as a suspect. Too many witches and warlocks had left behi

Read More
nd their various spells, books, and other magical items over the centuries, some on purpose and some by mistake. Most of these were items mortals never could use as they needed someone born to magic to be able to use them. But a few had been designed to still be used in the event their owner lost, either permanently or temporarily, their magic. Some witches and warlocks had even purposefully left spells and other items that mortals could use and get into trouble with just for the sheer joy of it. Or, as in cases like Opus, to cause harm to innocent mortals who had no clue that what they thought was harmless was actually far more dangerous.

Nor could she rule herself out as she had thought when Libby explained how she had come by her current physical attributes. As she had been helping Libby lug her suitcases to her new room, Sabrina had realized that there was an outside possibility that the various spells Libby had been a victim of over their three years together in high school could have had unforeseen long term effects. Was it possible that it had taken years for all that magic to manifest itself in this way?

“Was that Libby Chessler I saw you with downstairs?”

“Yes, Salem,” Sabrina said as she glanced over at the black cat entering her room before turning back to the book.

“And did you happen to ask where she got her ta tas done?”

“She said she went to bed one night and the next morning not only were they that big but her pussy was suddenly completely bald. And they’ve been that way ever since.”

“Ahhh yes, magic of a most interesting kind,” Salem said, a slight chuckle in his voice.

“Yeah, now the question is, whose magic?”

“Well, you could always cast a discovery spell.”

“Salem, how stupid do you think I am? I’ve been trying to find one, but there doesn’t seem to be a spell about discovering who used magic to enlarge tits and nixed pussy hair anywhere in here.”

“Well duh, your not going to find one in there. You need to look in the appendix book under sex magic.”

“The what?” Sabrina’s head jerked up in utter surprise at what Salem had just said. “Did you just say there is a separate book with an appendix to this one with a section called sex magic? I don’t remember my aunts ever mentioning such a thing.”

“What, you expect they’d tell their niece, a teenage witch who might be driven by her hormones and whom her parent’s had put in their care to watch over, about something like that. Of course not, they’d hide it away where she’d never find it.”

“Well I’m a young woman now who is no longer in their care so tell me where the book is.”

“I could, or maybe I could let you find it another way. Maybe Roland could help.”

“Salem, either you tell me where the book is right now or I spike your supper with castor oil! Again.”

“You wouldn’t dare!”

Sabrina zapped in a bottle and picked it up, holding it so the cat could see. “Oh look, they’ve improved their product. Extra strength to handle the really tough cases.”

“It’s in the northeast corner of the attic! Under a loose floorboard under the sea trunk with the moose head on top of it that smells like mothballs, hairballs, and three day old garbage!” Salem quickly said, a terrified look on his face.

The young witch was quickly out the door and on her way to the attic, the cat and the bottle of castor oil already forgotten.

*****

Half an hour later Sabrina was back in her room looking through the appendix book at various spells her aunts had never mentioned. And in most cases she wished Salem had never told her the book even existed as the spells scared the shit out of her. But these were unimportant at the moment and could hold off for another time when she didn’t have more pressing matters. Right now she needed to look into the section on sex magic and find a discovery spell.

Sabrina quickly turned to the sex magic section and began to read the various spells, her mind racing with the possibilities. When Salem had said a spell for discovering who had used magic to enlarge a woman’s breasts and caused her pubic region to go completely bald and stay that way was under the heading of sex magic, Sabrina couldn’t believe her ears. Surely such things would be under spells concerning a persons anatomy as she expected sex magic to concern spells used during sex for things like continuous orgasms and such. But the sex magic seemed to be a catch all section for anything that might have something to do with sex.

There were spells concerning fetishes. Spells concerning both men’s and women’s orgasms, their durations, and their strengths. Spells concerning erogenous zones. Sex change spells that made the man brew she’d been introduced to back in high school look like something you’d buy in a joke shop. Spells for whipping up phantom lovers for when you couldn’t get someone in bed with you. A spell to turn women into nymphomaniacs. Spells for various sex toys. And so on.

“Hey, did you know there’s a spell in here for an ejaculating vibrator?” Sabrina asked, already feeling aroused again at looking at all these sex spells.

“Yes,” Salem replied, “and believe me, it’s a pretty useful spell. My youngest cousin on my mom’s side used it cause she was too ugly to ever get a date, much less a husband, and beauty spells had no effect on her. That’s how she ended up having kids. Of course you have to be careful if you use it. Best side effect to hope for is that your kid looks to be made out of plastic. But you could end up being turned into a pocket pussy if your not careful. My cousin ended up being a living inflatible sex doll, with about eighty kids.”

“Eighty kids? Salem, tell me you’re joking.”

“I would not joke about such things where the ejaculating vibrator is concerned,” Salem said in a haughty voice. “Having an extremely large family is one of the possible side effects. Other realm doctors have learned that it sometimes takes total control of a woman so she can’t stop herself from using it, even while pregnant. As soon as she gives birth to one she is often pregnant again the following day. And this pregnancy only last three weeks instead of nine months. You rapidly go through the full nine months in a short time and are already fertile again as soon as you give birth.”

“Okay, that’s one spell I’ll never try using.” Sabrina flipped through a few more spells until she finally found the one she was looking for. “Salem, I don’t think this spell is going to work.”

“Why not?”

“Because it calls for breast milk from every woman in the house in which it is cast as well as from the victim. Along with the victim’s own cum. Now I can probably get Libby to cum for me and get her juices for the spell. But she certainly isn’t lactating at the moment and neither am I. And unless Roxi and Morgan have been hiding something from me, I don’t think they are either.”

“So you just cast a lactation spell out of that book.”

Sabrina smacked her forehead with her palm for being such an idiot. She’d already seen the lactation spell under fetishes, so why had Salem had to tell her to use it? Yet before she could turn back to the spell, the front door rang. With a groan, she got up to see who it was, making sure this time she was fully clothed.

*****

“And this is the kitchen,” Sabrina said to Carol, their second boarder to arrive that day. “Anything in the fridge, freezer, or cabinets without someone’s name on it is free for anyone to have. Pretty much we all chip in and buy the groceries for the household rather than merely for ourselves. But of course there is the odd occasion where we have to have something and don’t want to share. Or can’t share because of food allergies.”

“So I should pretty much be willing to buy for the household most of the time,” Carol replied. A mousy woman, she had extremely blond hair, that almost looked to be platinum blond, which she wore in a ponytail that hung down just past her shoulders. She was very petite, looking more like she should be sixteen rather than twenty-five as her driver’s license indicated. Though her glasses and the way she carried herself somehow managed to suggest her license was right.

“Pretty much,” Sabrina agreed, though her mind was elsewhere. After seeing the discovery spell, Sabrina had been wondering why it required the breast milk of every woman in the house in addition to Libby’s. But she’d at first been gratified that she only had to worry about four women. Now after meeting Carol, she wished Morgan had told her who their boarders were going to be so she could begin to figure out how many women she’d have to cast the lactation spell on. “So that’s pretty much the basics of the house. Anything else you’ll come to know in time, but please ask Roxi, Morgan, or myself about them before you explore them. Are there any questions you’d like to ask me?”

Carol timidly shook her head, blushing at the very idea of bothering one of her new landladies already. It was obvious she just wanted to get settled into her new room and adjust to this place before saying or doing anything that would involve people she didn’t well know as yet. But Sabrina wasn’t yet ready to let her go without first learning a little more about her.

“So, if you don’t mind my asking, what do you do for a living?”

“I make hardcore sex movies,” Carol replied.

Sabrina’s jaw dropped from this unexpected response. Carol certainly didn’t look or seem like the type to her, especially not with her small breasts. “You’re a porn star?”

“Yes. Oh, I know what you’re thinking, I don’t look it. But I’ll tell you something, the industry loves women like me who look much younger than they really are.”

“But you look sixteen! You’re telling me that the industry is a bunch of.....”

“Gotcha,” Carol laughed. “Actually I work for the science museum in Boston as a curator. Besides, I doubt the porn industry would actually want someone who looks as young as I do since everyone would say they were making those types of films you were thinking about. And those are against the law, you know.”

“Oh, right.” Sabrina tried to recover from her shock, but she couldn’t quite shake the thought that maybe some of what Carol had said had not been a joke at all.

Boarding House

F6FHellcat on Celebrity Stories

Sabrina sat at the kitchen table reading the paper as she ate her breakfast. Her aunt's had moved out the year before and had left her their house. After she and her housemates had been kicked out of their own home on campus, Sabrina had moved back into the house she'd spent her high school years in along with Roxi and Morgan. Yet her aunts had failed to tell her about the property taxes on the house. Nor had they told her about her distant cousin Opus.

Opus was a warlock who made Salem Saberhagen, the warlock sentenced to time as a cat in the care of first Hilda and now Sabrina, look like a positive saint. Where as Salem had planned to conquer the mortal world through military might, Opus planned to conquer it through the use of deadly viruses that would wipe out the entire morta

Read More
l population. He just needed some space in the mortal world for his lab and that space was now occupied by the Spellman house. Fortunately Hilda and Zelda had cast a spell long ago which prevented Opus from entering the mortal realm. There was only one catch, either a Spellman or a witch or warlock descended from the Spellmans had to be living in and own the place. Though there were certainly other ways into the mortal realm from the other realm, an ancient curse placed on Opus restricted him to entering the mortal realm only through the portal in the Spellman house.

Sabrina learned about Opus on the same day she learned about the property tax. Naturally she didn't tell Roxi and Morgan about Opus as they didn't know she was a witch, but she did tell them that they didn't have the money between the three of them to pay for all of the property taxes. The three decided to open the place as a boarding house, transforming some of the extra, unused rooms into bedrooms for the boarders. They'd then put an ad in the paper advertising that they had rooms for rent.

Sabrina and Roxi had figured they'd interview potential boarders before they let anyone move in. But Morgan, being her irresponsible self, had already agreed to allow the first three people who called about the rooms to move in without interviewing them to make sure they weren't serial killers or rapists first. Sabrina had been furious with her, but as usual there was no making her see that what she had done was wrong. It had been the same when she'd told Sabrina that there were plenty of rooms at the dorm house she'd been running. Sabrina had arrived expecting to find a room for her, but Morgan had already given rooms to Miles and Roxi. Sabrina and Roxi had been forced to share a small room that had been meant for one. At least things had eventually worked out and the two had become friends.

But that had been when only Morgan had been in charge and the house didn't have a portal to the other realm or other magical secrets to hide. Now the three would be in charge together and Morgan should have consulted the other two before doing something so impulsive. Yet she'd already rented out three of the rooms and there was no going back on it now. Nor was there a chance that Sabrina could get Morgan or Roxi to wait around for their new boarders on this day as both had appointments they had to make. So it had been up to her to meet the boarders.

As she sat at the table, her mind began to drift back to the night before and the dreams she'd had. She'd dreamed over and over that she been fucked hard by some unseen lover and had awoken that morning to find herself sleeping in a puddle of her own juices. The mere thought of it had her nipples harden and her pussy getting wet. She was just starting to fiddle with her clit when the door bell rang, announcing the arrival of their first boarder. Cursing their timing, she let her nightshirt fall down over her bare pussy and went to answer the door, not bothering to zap herself into something a little more practical. After all, whoever was there would end up seeing her in her nightshirt at some point, why not make it sooner rather than later. She forgot the fact that they'd also see her hard nipples poking into her nightshirt and making it obvious that she was aroused.

Sabrina opened the door to find a raven haired young woman about her age standing on the other side. But she's more surprised to see just who it was.

"Libby!" Sabrina said, shocked.

"Well, well, if it isn't the queen of the freaks. I knew that the address I was given sounded familiar, but I guess I'd been in such a hurry to forget about freaks like you that I totally forgot."

"Right," Sabrina said, wishing it had been someone else. "Don't tell me, you're one of those Morgan has already given a room to."

"Oh, is that the name of the woman I talked to? If I'd known I'd be living in a house with Sabrina Freakman, I'd never have agreed to take a room here."

"You can always leave, get a room somewhere else," Sabrina told her, not wanting to share her house with the girl who had been one of her biggest enemies for most of her years in high school. "After all, it's not like you've already paid your first month’s rent or anything."

"No, it isn't," Libby agreed, though Sabrina noticed that she seemed a little nervous about the idea of having to look elsewhere for someplace to live. "But then perhaps I can survive living here with you. After all, I survived three years of school with you."

Sabrina smiled to herself as she realized that Libby Chessler, the girl who had gone out of her way to make her life miserable and who would never have shared anything with her unless absolutely forced to, actually had no choice and needed her. "Can't find an apartment elsewhere, I take it? Or maybe you can't afford one?"

"I..." Libby stammered. "That's none of your business, freak."

"Careful what you say Libby. I just might have to evict you if you upset me," Sabrina warned with a nasty smile as she let her in. She knew she now had the edge over Libby and planned to let her know it.

It was at this point that Libby finally noticed Sabrina's nipples poking into her nightshirt. Being Libby, and having just been treated the same way she used to treat Sabrina, she decided it was time to put Sabrina in her place. "My, my, in your pjs and showing me your hard nipples. If I didn't know better, I'd say Sabrina the freak is turned on by the sight of a beautiful woman like me. Or maybe you were playing with yourself before I got here. Either way, ewww."

Sabrina didn't stop to think about what she was doing. Years of hatred towards the girl had finally come to a boil with those remarks and she zapped Libby without thinking, causing her shirt and bra to rip open. Libby, too shocked by Sabrina's sudden rage, failed to realize that Sabrina never touched her clothes as she looked down at her now exposed breasts.

"You ripped them!" Libby shouted.

Sabrina didn't care as she was staring at Libby's rather large breasts. In fact they appeared to be much larger than when she'd last seen them and looked as if Libby had them surgically enlarged. She hadn't noticed their size before and assumed the bra and shirt had acted like an ace bandage in order to flatten them a bit. But she also watched in amazement as Libby's own nipples began to harden.

"My, my, look at who’s excited now," Sabrina smirked, making it clear that she was once again in charge. "Maybe we shouldn't call you Libby Chessler anymore. Maybe we should start calling you Libby Chestler."

"I...I.... p...p...prefer L...L...Libby," Libby stuttered as she crossed her arms over her exposed breasts. It was clear from the tone of her voice that she was more than a little frightened by the way Sabrina was looking at her.

"Of course you do," Sabrina said, moving closer to her. She slowly removed her nightshirt revealing her own body to Libby.

"I thought you were straight," Libby said horrified.

"Afraid not."

"Ohmygod, you're a lesbian!"

"Wrong again," Sabrina chuckled as she carefully removed Libby's arms. "You see, after having spent as much time as I have with Roxi and Morgan, I've discovered a whole new side of me I never knew existed. Sure, I'm into boys and love sucking on some guys cock until he blows in my mouth and then having him shove his meat into my pussy and ride me like a fucking pony. But I also love the feel of another girl’s body. So you see, I'm bi."

"Well, I'm not,” Libby squeaked. “I don’t even let other girls see me naked.”

“What about when you were a cheerleader at our high school? You changed in the locker room with all the other girls. Plenty of times other girls saw you in your birthday suit.”

“They never did, I always changed in one of the toilet stalls whenever another girl was around. And I took my shower after all the others had left. The last time another girl saw me naked was when I was six and my mother gave me a bath because I was too tired to give myself one.”

“Then I’m honored to be the first to see you since you became a woman.” Sabrina then proceeded to rub Libby’s breasts.

“I told you I’m not like you,” Libby said as she tried to swat Sabrina’s hands.

“So why did you nipples get hard after they were exposed?”

“You’re dreaming, freak!” Libby yelled as she slapped Sabrina’s face.

“I told you once already that if you upset me you’ll regret it!” Sabrina snarled. She then proceeded to pinch Libby’s erect nipple’s, letting her nails dig in a little, before she jerked them toward herself and twisted.

Libby screamed in pain as her nipples were tortured. She tried to pull away from the angry witch, but found the more she tried the more Sabrina twisted and pinched her nipples.

“I’m sorry, Sabrina,” Libby sobbed, tears starting to run down her cheeks. “I’ll never do it again. I’ll do whatever you say, just please don’t do that again.”

“Take you clothes off,” Sabrina said, still upset and still holding Libby’s nipples.

“What? You can’t be serious!”

“Do it or I make you nipples bleed.”

Libby looked into Sabrina’s eyes, searching for a sign that she was bluffing. But instead she saw that Sabrina was deadly serious. Resignedly she unbuttoned the last few buttons of her ruined shirt and removed it, followed by her bra. Next she removed her shoes and socks, followed by her jeans. She then hesitatingly reached for her panties. At the affirming nod, she removed them, more than a little embarrassed.

Sabrina released Libby’s nipples and stood back to get a good look at her. Indeed her breast looked too unnatural for her body, yet they really drew attention to the naked girl. Especially when she moved to cover herself again. Sabrina chuckled at Libby’s obvious embarrassment before giving her a slightly upset look and tapping her foot. Taking the hint, Libby hung her head in shame as she let her arms fall to her sides so Sabrina could get a better look. Perhaps she was more ashamed to let Sabrina see her bald little pussy with it’s plump, puffy lips than anything else.

“Turn around and show me your ass.” Libby did as ordered, giving the witch a spectacular view of her heart shaped ass. “My, my, Libby, you really are a beautiful, sexy woman.”

“You think so,” Libby said spinning around and causing her breasts to jiggle. All traces of her vanity over her looks had returned.

“Yeah, I do,” Sabrina told her, though her mind was trying to deal with the jiggling she’d just seen. She’d never seen fake boobs jiggle like that, only real ones. Had she maybe cast an enlargement spell on Libby’s breasts and they’d been why her shirt and bra had ripped? But if that was the case, why hadn’t Libby been shocked by the sudden enlargement of her breasts? She decided she’d find out later.

Reaching out, Sabrina began fondling Libby’s breasts again.

“Please don’t,” Libby pleaded.

Ignoring her pleas, Sabrina continued fondling the other girl’s breast as she leaned in and kissed her on the lips. Libby was too surprised to resist. Sabrina’s kiss reminded her too much of an old boyfriend and she failed to realize that she was returning the kiss out of instinct. When she did realize what she was doing, she immediately pulled away.

“Ohmygod, what did I do?”

“I’d say you were returning my kiss, “ Sabrina told her with a mischievous smile.

“No, I couldn’t have. I was kissing Richie and then I was kissing you,” Libby explained.

“I see. Pretty much the same thing that happened to me when I kissed my first girl. Of course if you’re anything like me...”

“I’m nothing like you,” Libby interrupted. It was clear from her attitude that she was starting to get back some of the old Libby.

“Don’t interrupt,” Sabrina ordered as she squeezed Libby’s left breast all too hard. “As I was saying, if you’re anything like me, then you’ll need some stimulus to make you remember who you’re with.” With that Sabrina put Libby’s hand on her own breast and gently used it to fondle herself.

“What are you doing?” Libby asked, shocked by where her hand had been placed.

“Teaching you about loving women.”

“Excuse me,” Libby heatedly replied, “but I’m not interested in loving women.”

“Either fondle my breasts and accept this lesson or you can find your ass out on the street looking for somewhere else to live,” snapped Sabrina. She could feel herself starting to get wet from using Libby to play with her breasts and she wasn’t about to let the former cheerleader deny her an orgasm.

Slowly, reluctantly Libby began to obey. She let her hands travel over Sabrina’s breasts, feeling how soft and smooth they were. Yet her movements remained tentative, almost as if she were unsure how she should proceed.

“Come on, Libby, play with ‘em. Pretend their yours.”

“I...I...I can’t,” Libby softly stuttered

“What do you mean you can’t?” Sabrina asked, becoming a bit annoyed with Libby. Then she noticed the look in the other girl’s eyes. “Are you telling me you’ve never played with your own breasts?”

“No,” she barely whispered.

Sabrina released Libby’s breasts and looked at her in shock. “Not once? What about your little pussy? You must have played with it.”

Too embarrassed to respond, Libby just looked down at the floor, trying hard not to stare at the young witch’s breasts, and shook her head in the negative.

“Come on, Libby, you’ve got a bald pussy. I can’t even trim my bikini line without getting horny and playing with myself. If I shaved off all my curls like you do I’d have to fuck the handle of my razor. Well, maybe the handle of a brush.”

“I’ve never once shaved myself down there,” Libby said, her voice barely audible.

“Yeah, right,” Sabrina snorted. “And I suppose all your pussy hair just magically disappeared.”

“Well if you have to know,” Libby raged, “that’s exactly what happened! I got home from a date with Richie Dalman and took a shower. Then I went straight to bed. When I awoke I found that my breasts had become these freakish things and that all my pubic hair was gone!”

“So,” Sabrina thought to herself, “Libby is the victim of magic. Just not my magic. I’ll have to figure it out later.”

“Well, aren’t you going to call me a freak?” Libby arrogantly asked. “After all, there’s no such thing as magic And yet I can’t explain how I got these freak breasts and lost all my pubic hair in one night except to claim it was magic.”

“Yeah, right, no such thing as magic. If you only knew,” Sabrina said under her breath.

“What was that?”

“Uh, nothing.” Now it was Sabrina’s turn to look embarrassed at being caught. “Listen, let’s forget about the magic thing. Have you ever played with yourself?”

“No. My mother always taught me that was disgusting and that only freaks who couldn’t get a boyfriend did that.” Then she thought about it for a minute. “But maybe she was wrong about the no boyfriend thing. After all, you managed to get Harvey and it sounds like you still played with yourself. Maybe it was just a freak thing.”

“Hardly,” Sabrina told her. “Kinda a prudish thing not to play with yourself. After all, we all get horny. Why sit around denying yourself a little pleasure if you don’t have someone to help you get off when you’re horny. Come on, I’ll teach you. First, let’s rub your breast.”

Sabrina then placed Libby’s hands on her breasts as she had placed them on her own. “Now gently rub ‘em. Let your fingers do the walking.”

Libby did as Sabrina told her, looking even more disgusted at playing with her own breasts than she had at playing with Sabrina’s. But as she continued to caress them, her expression changed to one of surprise and longing as she began to feel things her prude of a mother would never have approved of. Sabrina wondered if Libby’s dad hadn’t had to get the woman so fucking drunk as to be able to even get her knocked up. Soon she released Libby’s hands, confident the girl wouldn’t stop. She began rubbing her own breast as she let her other hand drop so as to rub her erect clit.

“That’s it Libby, rub your breast. Don’t forget your delicious little nipples. And tell me, what else do we call breast?”

“What?” Libby breathed. Under normal circumstances, she probably could have answered the question. But having just been introduced to a new world of pleasure, Libby found that her brain wasn’t functioning as it should.

“Tits, titties, boobs, boobies, floppies, jugs, melons, fun pillows, mountains, headlights, udders, the girls” Sabrina rattled off all the names she could think of that she’d heard folks refer to breasts as. “And your pussy is also a snatch, kitty, clam, quim, cunt, vagina, fuckhole, fuckchute, mound, mound of venus, the bun a guy sticks his hot dog in, and box.”

“Right,” Libby breathlessly agreed. “Oh this feels good.”

“Now, rub a finger along your lips.” When Libby did as she was told, Sabrina chuckled at her ignorance. “Not those lips, silly, you pussy lips. Here, let me show you.”

Sabrina guide Libby’s hand down to her pussy and began tracing her pussy lips with one of Libby’s fingers. Libby let out a gasp but soon abandoned her breasts for her pussy. Sabrina didn’t even have to instruct her to play with her clit or stick a finger up her pussy. When she found something that brought her more pleasure, she went after it.

Watching Libby fuck herself made Sabrina even more horny than she already was. She began thrusting fingers into her own sopping pussy. But she wasn’t interested in simple masturbation anymore, not when she now had a horny female before her. Leaning forward, she took one of Libby’s nipples in her mouth and began to suck.

The feeling have having her breast suckled was too much for her. Libby let out a high pitched scream and held the witch to her breast as she began to cum. Sabrina, not wanting to be left out, picked up her own pace and soon found herself cumming too. After a few minutes, the two girls separated from each other. Sabrina sucked her juices off her own fingers before sticking them into Libby’s pussy and trying the other girl.

“Mmmm, nice and sweet,” Sabrina giggled. “Consider that lesson one. We’ll handle lesson two at some other time. Right now I think it’s time to show you to your room and to someplace where you can get washed up.”

Libby just nodded her head in agreement. Following the blonde, and watching her cute little ass sway seductively as she walked ahead of her, she wondered how it was that she could have ever called her a freak. She also found herself wondering what else was in store for her when she met this Morgan and Roxi.

Shona and Friends Part 5 - Sunday

theBlackDouglas on Teen Stories

Chapter 5 - Sunday

I had hoped for a long lie today but my room needs some serious attention after yesterday so I am up early straightening everything up and trying to work out what some of the stains are. I rub one and sniff my fingers. Katie I decide. Funny how everyone smells different! I turn cushions and rearrange covers hiding the worst. The musky smell has thankfully been blown away overnight. A knock comes to the door. "Come in" I say. It is Mum - one thing about my parents is they always respect my privacy, not that I'd abused it before!

"Jim - we're away now. Won't be back till about eleven tonight. My! Spend yesterday tidying up did you?" she asks surveying the room.

"Just some of it. Hung out with some friends the res

Read More
t of the time. Nothing much." I mumble.

"Missing Shona are you?" she asks.

"Yes." I think despite all the fucking I've done since she left on Friday, I am missing Shona but I say nothing.

"Never mind she'll be back tonight. Have her round if you like but behave yourselves! See you later."

"Bye Mum." I say giving her a peck on the cheek. Oh yes! I know just how to behave with Shona! Daydreaming about Shona and what she might be getting up to at camp especially with her prime target Sheila I finish my chores just as the phone rings. It's Dot.

"Hi Jim!" she calls down the line. "Busy today?"

"Nothing planned." I reply.

"Well get on your bike, as they say, and get out here. Sally and I are waiting for you and Bambie and Thumper should be here by the time you are."

"Bambie and Thumper?" I query.

"Our twin cousins - thought Shona would have told you."

"She did mention them but not their names."

"Oh! Those are their nicknames - really they're called Emily and Clare. You'll love them, thirteen, blond on the side of white and absolutely gorgeous. Virgins of course as is Sally - can't claim that myself for some reason."

"Ssh! Someone'll hear you!" I protest.

"That's the good bit, there's no one else to hear. Everyone's gone off to a boring old agricultural show - seen one, seen 'm all so Sal and I elected to stay here." I can almost hear her grin down the phone.

"OK, OK! See you soon. I will literally be on my bike though - there aren't any buses today." One of the worst aspects of small town living is the total lack of public transport on a Sunday. "Bye!" I hang up and having locked the house fetch my bike from the garage. My route takes me past Katie's flat, my cock twitching at the thought of the planned threesome with her and her daughter Cath. Impulse makes me stop and ring the bell although I don't really expect her to be in - a Saturday night with Cath away would undoubtedly have seen Katie off clubbing somewhere - but the door opens and I am quickly pulled inside.

"Jim! Saw it was you through the spy hole!" Katie hugs me tight standing naked in the hallway. We kiss with a passion, my cock rising as my hands run free over her body. She strokes my crotch appreciatively.

"Didn't think you'd be in. Thought you'd be off clubbing last night."

"Uh-uh. Short-cutted that this weekend and invited Linda down here instead - I've been seeing quite a lot of her since the tattoo business. Come and meet her." Katie pulls me through to her bedroom. There lying on the bed was a very beautiful girl in her late teens at best, her red hair cut severely short accentuating her facial features. Her cunt is bare like Katie's except she has a sort of geometrical design tattooed where Katie has her butterfly! Linda is obviously taken by surprise curling into a tight ball.

"Katie! I said I'm not too sure about all this!"

"Yeah but you couldn't wait to make my butterfly fly last night, could you?" Katie says indicating the large strap on dildo lying on the bed "I want Jim and if you just want to watch that's fine - just don't get in the way!!" Katie lies back on the bed smiling. "Come on Jim, fuck me!"

Literally ripping off my clothes, underwear etc. again having been left in the drawer, I join her on the bed. Is she one hot lady? My cock falls to her pussy and I gently take her making her sigh softly as my cock slides into her tight cunt. If only it were Cath rather than Linda watching us! But this thought is only a passing one as her Mum and I ride together bringing her off quickly. I press on not wanting to stop making her come time and again. Linda comes to us obviously having overcome her doubts having strapped on the plastic cock. "Said he was good in your arse too, didn't you?" Linda presses the dildo to Katie's rear. "I've never done this before! Have you?"

"No - not both holes at once!" Katie says "but like I said, Jim's fucked me there before now. Think I'd like to try!" Without pausing in my actions I roll us over exposing Katie's rear to Linda as I pull Katie's cheeks apart. Linda merely smiles and presses the manikin to Katie's arse. Katie desperately bucks back and suddenly both her cunt and arse are full. Is she tight on me or what? I gasp causing Katie to ask "Like that do you? Just imagine it was Cath with the dildo! If it were I'd want you to come all over me so she could lick it off - or vice versa, I'd like you to come on her so I could lick your seed off her!"

"Maybe next week." I say reaching up to Katie's tits as Linda continues to pound the artificial cock into her arse. "In the meantime I could come on these or Linda's!"

Katie rolls away a moment later having been brought off by the combination of my cock in her cunt and the dildo in her arse. "Gosh! That was good! Come on Linda then fuck her as I clean her up." Katie unties the dildo with one hand while keeping me alert with the other. Once Linda is ready, Katie starts wanking me furiously but somehow gently at the same time directing my cock over Linda's tits. Katie's fist pounds down on me until I am spurting all over Linda, her mouth, her tits, her belly, her puss. There is barely anywhere on her front which I miss. Katie dives in making the most of it but keeping her body clear of Linda's puss. "Go on Jim! Enjoy!" she says looking up smiling. Still hard I join the pair kissing them both as my cock finds Linda's puss. Katie pushes me forward causing my cock to part her lips into a familiar resistance. Virgin! I pull her to me and begin to fuck - to say I'm excited is an understatement! Making it good for her and making her come time after time I fuck her tight hole, I am insatiable! Katie is lying beside us playing with herself and enjoying the spectacle having licked all she can of me from Linda's body. "Try her arse Jim, I want to see that too." Next time Linda comes I pull out and turn her over, pushing my cock to her tight little anus. My knob breaks into her and she pushes back until I am totally within her making Katie squeal with glee as she watches. I would squeal too if I'd any emotion left over to squeal with as I fuck myself on Linda's tight arse. Linda's orgasm never ceases as I pound in and out of her dark hole until I finally let loose in her, my balls producing a gallon of sperm for her, she coming constantly as I do so.

The three of us cuddle together my hands tracing over their tattoos. "Feels nice." I tell them. "Didn't know you were still virgin Linda!"

"Well... I'm only sixteen you know?"

"Sixteen?" Katie and I echo.

"Yeah, yeah I know. Look older don't I? Been having it off with girls for nearly four years now and clubbing for the past year or so. Had to lick the cunt of the door person first time to get in - god was she butch! But since then its been fine. Got the tattoo about six months since on my birthday."

My hand continues to trace, a finger dipping into her fuck hole. "First time on a cock then?" I tease finding it dripping wet causing my cock to stir once more. "Bet it won't be the last!"

"Too right!" She rolls over on top of me spearing her cunt down onto me as she does so. "Triangles can't fly I'm afraid" she says as I continue to trace out the design on her pubes pulling her lips apart as she goes down on me. She leans over me offering me her itty, bitty titties. I guzzle away - her tits should have told me she was younger than I first suspected; they were only about the same size as Shona's - or to put it another way, just about perfect! Katie joins us, she sitting on my face allowing my long broad tongue to probe at and into her cunt. I drink her sweet honey, images of Cath once more in my mind.

"Let's try another trick!" Katie slides down me pressing herself against Linda rising and falling with her as she fucks down hard on my cock. Katie grabs my cock on an upstroke and as they fall takes me into her cunt. Next round I am back in Linda! "My cunt! Linda's! My arse! Linda's arse! Me! Linda! Oh.. my arse again!" Katie calls out. This hot pair, me taking them in four holes almost simultaneously, don't take long to make me boil over, they coming constantly as they continue to take me up seemingly random holes. The pace of the action means that I come on them at least as much as in them but they don't mind. Just as they settle to lap my cum from one another my phone goes again. it's Dot.

"Where am I? I'm on my way - had a puncture." I lie. I go to Katie. "Got to go" I whisper "or I'll have too much explaining to do. Wish it could have been Cath."

Katie smiles between laps at Linda "Me too although that was fantastic! See what you can work out."

Hurriedly I dress and let myself out. Grabbing my bike I speed the few miles to the farm and knock on the door of the farmhouse - the place seems deserted. After a good pause Dot lets me in. She is dressed only in a sarong. "Sorry I was so long but I needed to slip something on. Come and meet Sally." But instead I pull Dot to me kissing her luscious lips and managing to undo the knot on the sarong. It falls away leaving Dot standing naked.

"Needn't have bothered on my account!" I tell her as my hands and mouth explore all over her enjoying the fullness of her breasts, her erect nipples and taut stomach until my hand comes to her puss. I drop to my knees in front of her and kiss her pussy lips driving my tongue between them as I lave the length of her slit. She is very wet - too wet for it just to have been from my attentions making me wonder what she and Sally had been up to while waiting for me to appear. I flick my tongue over her prominent clit.

"Do that one more time and I'll come." she breathes but it actually takes two more lashes before she does, her juices sweet on my tongue. Having undone my trousers as I knelt, they fall as I stand allowing my cock-head to trace up Dot's inner thigh and on into the tenderness of her puss. As he slides further into her Dot throws her arms round my neck and kisses me. "Oh Jim, isn't fucking just so right and natural? Love what you've just done you randy little bugger!"

"No he's in your puss but if you want buggered I'm sure something could be arranged."

"You can fuck my arse later if you like - you will not bugger me!" Dot exclaims as I achieve a full penetration of her lifting her slightly of the ground as I do so. At this she jumps up drawing me half out of her before she settles back down on me with her legs wrapped round my back. I have to grab her bum to balance us and to relieve some of her weight from my cock. "Now to the bedroom James!"

Stepping carefully out of my trousers I ask the way. She indicates a back room - thankfully not up the stairs, don't think I could manage that. Dot wriggles about causing indescribable sensations on my cock as I very carefully walk to the door with her perched there on my dick and manage to push it open.

"Dot! Are you? Is he?" a girl's voice asks. Tripping over the bed Dot lands heavily on it with me still inside her.

"Oh yes, I am and he is. Now fuck me!" Dot manages to answer not really caring what the questions actually were meant to have been. Releasing her arm and leg locks on me she fucks up hard at me with her hips.

"Want it hard do you?" I ask fucking hard back at her. She nods. I think the tensions built up in both of us during the 'walk' had removed the need for any further preliminaries and when Dot said hard she meant hard, lifting her arse clear of the bed every time as she came to meet my downward thrusts causing our bodies to slam together. We are lost in each other - I am not even aware of who else is in the room. Dot arches back, her cunt muscles rippling along my cock as she finds her release and I follow her after just a couple more strokes into her now much more passive cunt consigning my usual huge load into her depths before we collapse together panting. A ripple of applause goes up. I look up to see Wendy as well as Sally smiling down at Dot and I.

"Some show Jim! You were out of it Dot!" Wendy applauds. "Now Sally, want to taste your first sperm? You'll find it in your sister's cunt." Wendy gently pushes Sally to Dot as she pulls me away from her. Sally doesn't need pushed in the slightest and goes eagerly to Dot looking very practised in her actions - Shona said she was 'wonderful pussy eater' - the difference this time is that she has just watched her sister and I fuck and now she was draining my cum from between Dot's engorged pussy lips. As we lie watching my hands caressing and fondling Wendy's ample tits I ask her "Fancy a tit fuck?"

"Not right now." Wendy giggles. "Save that for when everyone's here so they can all drink you from me. Right now I've a little hole between my legs that needs plugged. Can I come on top?"

I roll over onto my back. My cock is not quite ready for action but a couple of kisses from Wendy before she takes me into her tight throat soon puts that right. "That's better!" she exclaims grabbing my dick and setting it to her bare puss sliding it up and down her slit. "Feel how wet your show got me! Either that it was when Sally ate me out - she's good though not as good as Shona - she's one of the best. Some mover that girlfriend of yours!"

"I know!" I say pushing slightly up at Wendy. She takes the hint and sits down slowly on me. "Oh Jim! Oh! Oh! Ah!" She reaches the bottom her cunt tight around my dick. "Still can't believe he's so big. Think I'd burst if he were any wider." I buck up at her and she stops talking and begins to fuck back at me with rapid little movements. "Feel me Jim. Feel your cock in me!" I reach out exploring her cunt stretched around me before I start to play with her clit. "Fuck! Jim I'm coming!" Gasping for breath she hollers out her pleasure before pulling off me. "Sorry Jim - I know you didn't come but I couldn't take any more. Besides keeps you up for Sal!"

Sally having licked Dot to orgasm again comes and lies beside me. I pull her to me and we kiss. I gently run my hands up and down her body deliberately steering clear of her boobs and puss - basically just having a good snog leaving her to find my cock when she is ready. She is in no hurry and I don't mind - perhaps too much of my experience to date has been at a frantic pace. Eventually as we kiss she pulls my hand to her chest and I start to massage her firm little tits making her gasp in my mouth as my thumb finds her nipple. I am in heaven just enjoying being with her as I had with Shona only a few days ago. I pull myself from her lips as her hand begins to stroke my erection working my way down her neck and chest kissing as I go until I am able to draw her tit into my mouth. Softly, softly catchee monkey. She moans in satisfaction as I release her and, kissing softly as I go make my way over to the other side, gently drawing her in when I achieve my target. Her moans become lower and more constant, her grip on my cock firmer, as I continue to kiss my way down her body, over her tight little tummy until my mouth is in her downy bush, my tongue twirling at her merger covering of hair as I scent her cunt. She is obviously ready for this as I reach her honey pot. Deliberately I avoid her clit going lower to press my tongue against but not into her beautiful little love hole before drawing it upwards making her nearly scream with passion as I eventually give in and nibble lightly on her clit. I do not linger instead dropping down again and laving my way upwards once more. This time as soon as I reach her clit she comes, she tastes so fresh in my mouth I nearly come in sympathy - had she still been playing with my cock I probably would have but she'd not been able to keep up her actions as her passion grew. I don't mind - I just know she will be incredible on me! I come up and kiss her on the lips again letting her taste herself on my lips. "Don't I taste good!" she says modestly as we kiss and cuddle once more. "Liked that Jim!"

"If you fuck half as good as you taste this will be something to savour forever." I tell her almost meaning it. Still cuddled together she takes my cock and bends it downward until the knob is against her pussy lips.

"About there I think" she says "now push!" The angle is awkward but the potential reward is great as I push forward, she pushing back so that there is no doubting her intention. "Oh Jim, ouch!" she cries. "Wait a minute." I stop pushing as she adjusts herself against me. "OK, now go!" We push together, the pressure on the end of my knob great - her hymen is putting up a more valiant fight than most but then after one very determined thrust from Sally I am through, my knob in her delicate little cunt if only just. "Hell didn't think he was going to fit there!" I curl my body forcing my cock slowly into her. Honey pot has been right - her cunt juices feel almost sticky against me as I slide in going full length while still kissing her mouth.

"There you've got him all now" I tell her "How'd you feel?"

"Kinda sore but that's going. Very full and kinda buzzed!" She rolls her hips slightly and clamps down with her cunt muscles as she gets used to having a cock in her cunt for the first time. I gasp loudly.

"Keep that up and you'll make me come before I can fuck you properly!"

She smiles and after one last contraction stops abruptly. "Can't have that can we? Not now. So then, fuck me properly!"

I kiss her again and then begin to move within her. By curling and straightening my back I am able to take her with long strokes while maintaining the kiss. For a while she remains motionless just getting accustomed to things I guess. I can tell by the way she is breathing as we kiss her pleasure is mounting. So is mine, her pussy feels so hot around me as I fuck her. Just as I start caressing her exposed tit she starts rocking back at me and rolling her hips. I have to break the kiss to voice my feelings if only inarticulately. "Like that do you? Well I think its about time for you to come!" Sally grins taking my mouth to hers again, the size of her movements increasing. This is pussy heaven! Sally breaks the kiss to moan that she's coming a moment before my balls tighten and I am brought to release shooting a fountain of cum into her, her cunt clamping down hard on me in her orgasm. As I continue to fuck gently into her to drain the last of my cum from my balls I realise she is still moving with me. "Don't stop - it feels too good to stop. Keep going if you can Jim." Sally breathes softly. I kiss her again and do exactly as she says, my cock now slurping as I move into her everything being so wet with a combination of my cum and her orgasmic juices. Recovering, Sally commands "Do me like you just did Dot!"

"Hard you mean?"

"Yeah on my back and hard - well fast anyway!" Sally confirms.

Making sure my cock never losses contact with her cunt I flip Sally onto her back and raise myself above her lifting her legs into the air. "Might dick Sal's arse while I'm up here." I think to myself as I begin to pound into her with a rapid motion. Or at least I think I thought it to myself for as she fucks back up at me she replies smiling "Like to try that. Dot and Wendy have told me all about your antics. But not until you've made me come again."

"It a deal." I smile back knowing she is rapidly building to another climax as we flail our bodies together. "If I can last the pace - your cunt feels so good on me!"

"Shut up and fuck! Oh! Oh!" Sally moans, her breathing already starting to get quicker. Her eyes close and her moaning intensives as she gradually loses it. I grab her hips to keep her with me and she is gone, exploding into a huge orgasm. I lower her gently to the bed. "What about my bum Jim?" she asks.

"Later, you need some recovery time." I tell her.

"No! A deal's a deal and you've not come yet!" She rolls back on the bed raising her cheeks clear supporting herself with her arms. "Go on - but you'll need to do most of the work yourself!" Temptation is too much for me so I hook her legs over my shoulders, put my sopping wet dick to her pucker and push. Her arse takes just as much coaxing and straining as her puss did but eventually I manage to force a way in. "Shit!" she yells. "Its OK Jim, keep going. Oh yes, yes!" I press on into her rectum and when fully inside her begin to massage her tits causing her to relax some and allow me to begin stroking withdrawing only a little way each time but gradually increasing the length and pace until she is taking all of me on each rapid stroke.

"Oh Sal. That feels so good. It won't take me long to come!"

"Feels good to me too now. You can't come before me!" Proving the point another climax sweeps over her, the contractions in her arse almost literally pulling my sperm from me as we come together.

Lying down on the bed, I again hear applause, more this time and one or two cat-calls. As Sal and I recover it becomes apparent Bambie and Thumper have arrived. Two identical girls were standing watching fingering each others' puss along with Wendy and Dot. Dot pulls Sally up from the bed and hugs her. "Well little Sis! If Jim and I put on a show what was that? The Royal Command Performance?" The sisters kiss.

"Call it what you like! The pair of you didn't tell me the half of how good it all feels! I'm wasted! Kinda spaced out." Sally slumps back down on the bed beside me and turns kissing me. "Thanks for begin so patient with me at the start Jim. Everything was so wonderful for me."

I hug her. "Loved exploring you slowly like that too, letting you decide when you were ready to go on. You have a great body. I had a wonderful time too."

"Hate to break up the mutual appreciation society but..." Dot says "Jim meet Emily, Bambie and Clare, Thumper." The two girls curtsy in turn. I look closely almost staring. They are almost colourless, their hair almost white, their skin very pale. The only colour being in their emerald green eyes which twinkle mischievously. The two girls come to me and lie down sucking my nipples in a kind of role reversal. Feels strangely good! They fondle my balls and stroke at my cock slowly encouraging him back to life.

"Guess you two don't believe in sunbathing too much." I say as I stroke at their very soft skin making my way to their saucy little tits.

One of them, I'm already lost as to who's who for I can see no difference in them, breaks off from sucking my nipple. "Oh no! We're so fair we have to be very careful in the sun - we burn in about five minutes! Don't we Clare?"

"Certainly do! Just call us pale and interesting!"

"Definitely interesting!" I agree indicating my now rock hard dick.

The twins smile at each other "Hoped you wouldn't take long! Watching Sal with you got us so hot! You want to go first Bambie?" Thumper asks.

"Naw! You can have first go - you are my elder sister after all!

"True - by ten minutes! Thumper agrees rolling onto her back and spreading her legs. I can see her slit is already glistening in anticipation but instead of making an all out attack on her I roll onto my side beside her kissing her eager mouth probing with my tongue and being probed in return as my hand massages her chest before I abruptly break the kiss and dive down the bed to resume the kiss but this time on her puss making her squeal as I run my tongue up her slit. I am vaguely aware of Bambie and Sally standing watching us with Dot and Wendy kneeling in front of them eating out their respective cunts. A few minutes licking sees Thumper come hard against my tongue and I consider her ready for greater things. I raise my body over her's, my cock aimed directly at her inner sanctum, and press downward. She grabs my shaft and guides me in yelping quite loudly as she gives herself in lust to me. Her cunt feels hot around me as I glide gently but relentlessly into her. As soon as Thumper has me fully inside herself, her sister joins us kissing Thumper on the lips.

"Does that feel good!" Bambie says.

"Unbelievable!" her sister replies.

"It wasn't a question! Isn't he big?"

I'm a bit nonplussed but I'm not stopping for explanations as I start to enjoy the tightness of Thumper's cunt round me, pounding in and out quite hard. The two sisters lie side by side kissing deeply and playing with each others tits. I place my hand on Bambie's puss gently stroking her lips and caressing her clit. Only a couple of minutes of this action sees the twins both building in their passion to the point where they come in unison. The sight of two such beautiful young girls orgasming below me is too much for me and in only another stroke or so my balls begin to shoot my spunk into Thumper's hot tight hole. As I withdraw, the twins fling their arms round each other before they both fling them round me drawing me down between them.

"That was fantastic Jim!" Thumper (I think) declares as I come to rest between them. I look from one to the other. Were it not for the faint traces of my cum dripping from Thumper's cunt there is no way I can tell them apart and I say so! "Well right now its quite simple." Thumper (definitely) says taking my hand to her puss. "Push a finger in there!" I do. "See I'm not a virgin! Now try Bambie!" I put my other hand to Bambie's puss and gently press a finger a little way in against her hymen. "She is!"

"But that's not going to last is it?" I question. Bambie shakes her head.

"Definitely not!"

"Tell me how come the two of you got off together like that?"

"No pun intended I assume?" Bambie answers. "Well you see if I hadn't already known, seen really, you were fucking my sister I'd have known from the feelings I was getting. We not exactly telepathic but we always know when the other is happy or sad or..."

"Or playing with their puss!" Thumper puts in.

"Or playing with their puss!" Bambie agrees. "Sometimes we do it just to annoy each other. I'll be trying to do something serious and she'll slip away to her bedroom or somewhere and frig herself off. Quite often the feelings are so great I come too - which is just great if you're with someone and have to try and pretend nothing is going on!"

"Come on, you do it to me too!" Thumper exclaims.

"True." Bambie concedes "Anyway you can imagine the rush I got when your cock was actually in Thumper's cunt and when you started playing with my clit, that was it for both of us! Gone! Never had an orgasm like it!"

"Agreed!" Thumper sighs.

I kiss her and then turn to Bambie. "We've got a little unfinished business." I tell her drawing her to me. Immediately she kneels up on all fours.

"Come on then, fuck me doggy style - then do my arse if you can. I want to be first in something!" As I stand behind her she grasps my cock and pulls me to her thrusting back to ensconce me in the tightness of her cunt first go.

"Wow! See what you meant Sis!" Thumper calls out. I look up to see her sitting on a chair with Wendy lapping at her cunt, drinking my cum from her - she seems to be into that! Taking a brief moment to look round I see that Dot and Sal are licking and probing each others' cunt in an awkward looking sixty-nine.

"Wendy's tongue gives it an edge too." Bambie rejoins as I start to fuck her pulling all of the way out before lunging forward again giving her my all. "Fuck!! Like that Jim! He's a monster!" she pants. Pounding furiously in and out of this horny young girl, withdrawing on every stroke I am in heaven. I reach underneath us and fumble for her clit knowing that it isn't getting much stimulation in this position. Finding my target I begin to massage. "Shit!" Bambie yells as she instantly comes hard. I don't stop and nor does she coming constantly. "Shit! Shit! Shit! Oh SHIT!" she yells, my pulsating cock making her come ever harder as it delivers a fusillade of my sperm into her tight cunt. Without allowing her respite I pull out and press my cockhead to her arse pressing hard against her little pucker making her yield to me. Slowly her ring widens enough for the head to break through into her back passage. As I push my length slowly into her Bambie collapses forward onto the bed but not before her sister has darted underneath us. I feel Thumper laving at Bambie's puss and as I finally get balls deep in her arse Bambie lowers her head to Thumper's cunt to repay the favour. What feelings must they be experiencing now? As I pull out Thumper runs her tongue along my emerging dick before returning her affections to her sister. I push forward again making Bambie yell out as she regains her orgasm. "Oh SHIIIIT! I'm coming I can't stop coming." she yells. Before long, for the stimulation for me is immense, my balls tighten and I come in her my balls managing to serve up a huge load despite everything. Knowing Bambie can't take much more I withdraw. Thumper rolls out from underneath and pushes me down on the bed positioning her arse over my never flagging cock. She pushes down on me but my cock slips away spearing into her cunt.

"That wasn't what I intended." she moans nevertheless enjoying a few round trips on my dick - not that I object, her cunt so soft and tight around me - before withdrawing to try her arse again. This time she reaches underneath herself to hold me in position as she presses down. Her arse is unyielding as she squirms about on top of me trying to force my cock into her rectum. "If it fits in Bambie's arse it fits in mine!" she mutters pressing herself down on my cockhead. I try to help by bucking up with my hips. The combined force is so great that my cock is forced deep into her in an instant, she having to accommodate my entire length and girth almost without warning causing her to yell out in pain! "Oh fuck!" she yells as she bucks about on top of my dick fucking herself down hard again on me. Dot and Wendy come to us and kneel up on the bed to suck at Thumper's little tits as she continues to rise and fall, their bums pointed towards me. I reach to them and giving them one hand each slip a finger into each puss. Both press back at me in seeming approval so remembering when I was with Cath and Shona that first day I ball my fists and push them into their tight cunts. The whole thing basically blows my mind - here am I having my cock fucked in the arse of a thirteen year old honey while I fist both one of the most desirable senior girls in the school and a supple young PE teacher! I just lie back and enjoy basically doing nothing and letting the three girls fuck themselves on my various appendages. Wendy boils over first soaking my arm with her cum juices as she comes to rest with my whole forearm buried in her cunt. Dot is not far behind coming to rest in a similar position. This leaves me free to concentrate on Thumper who I now realise has been coming on me for ages - I'd just been too busy to notice! Well satisfied she lifts herself clear of me. "Wow! That was just incredible!" she declares turning and wolfing my cock down into her throat in a swift action sucking at me until I have to come in her tight muscular throat. My balls again do not let me down as I make Thumper swallow my pent up load. All of us collapse onto the bed, me, Emma, Clair, Wendy, Dot and Sally. We are spent.

Dot speaks first "Well you three - didn't I promise you a good time?"

"Gosh! Certainly did!" Sally replies as the twins make approving noises.

"It's incredible the way you two can feel what's happening to the other" I remark. "How were your arse fucks for each other?"

"Out of this world!" says one.

"Can't find the words!" says the other - once again I'm lost for who is who and I have to confess.

"Well that's for us to know and you to find out!" they chorus.

"Well... The virgin bit is gone but I'll know next time I fuck one of you." I decide.

"How?"

"Bambie comes for a lot longer than you Thumper." I say turning to the twin I hope is Thumper.

"Correct - and lucky guess Jim - " Thumper smiles "she always has done but I come harder so it all works out the same as far as we're concerned."

The five of us cuddle and talk of the afternoons events until I realise the time. "Oh-oh! Need to go soon." I say wanting to be in when Shona got back.

Wendy leans back juggling her tits. "Aren't you forgetting something?" she asks. Smiling I go to her and plank a kiss on her left nipple.

"No don't think so." I say crossing to the right planking a kiss there before laying my reinvigorated cock into the valley between her tits and pressing them over me pulling roughly at her nipples as I fuck into her cleavage making her gasp. The others giggle as they come to us joining in wherever they can, mouths and hands everywhere. With my knob being laved at whenever possible and tongues probing at my balls, my arse, my nipples, my anywhere it is not long before I am ready to come. Knowing all of the girls will want to lap my cum up from Wendy's ample bosom I yell "I'm going to come!" All break off from whatever they are doing and wait poised for my cream. They are well rewarded as I abandon Wendy's cleavage to stand over her in best porn star fashion jacking off making my load land square on her chest. Clair, Emma and Dot dive in on her fighting for my cum but Sally has a different idea sucking my cock into her mouth instead slowly and gently drawing whatever she can from me. Her mouth is so sensuous on me as she draws me to full erection again.

"Reckon this is mine." she says lying down on the bed once more legs wide open in invitation. Never one to resist I fall on her kissing wildly as I sink my cock into her waiting cunt. We go at it as if there is no tomorrow, each desperate for the other, she coming repeatedly below me until once more I am pumping a load into her tight little cunt. I roll onto the bed beside her.

"Look girls, I'm sorry but I've got to go. Take me a while to cycle back to town - especially after this afternoons events!" I grab my clothes and dress, the girls just lying watching as I do so until Wendy stands and begins to dress too.

"I've got my car - throw your bike in the back and I'll drive you" she says. So after kisses and 'cuddles' - if that's what you can call shoving the odd digit up a girl's cunt as you kiss her - all round I put my bike into Wendy's car and we start for town. I'm not surprised when she pulls off the road into a large secluded lay by. My seat suddenly reclines as Wendy twiddles the control backwards. "I've not put my knickers back on." she informs me climbing over on top of me.

"I know, I noticed as you dressed, and I've not worn Y's for the last two days" I say unclipping the snap on my chinos and pulling the zipper down to release my already bulging cock. Wendy grabs it and goes straight down on me, sucking my manhood into her tight pussy.

"God that feels do good!" she gasps. "Loved seeing you with Sally. Loved eating your cum from her puss and from Thumper's!"

"Your sort of into that aren't you?" I probe as I fuck into her without restraint. "So's Shona."

"Oh yes! Puts a whole new twist on being lesbian!"

"And you honestly think you're lesbian?" I ask incredulously fucking up into her even harder making her come.

"Yes! Well no! Fuck! That feels so good Jim!" She holds me down in the car seat as she slowly raises herself before pressing down on me again rolling her hips as she does so. I sit back and enjoy letting her do all the work until soon she comes again and my balls tighten and force an enormous load of my seed into her 'lesbian' cunt. She scrambles off me back into the driver's seat pulling down her skirt as she goes. "Well - guess not lesbian exactly, I love having your cock in me but I'm definitely into girls too - the younger the better I've decided, Shona, Cath, Claire, Emma, Sally, they were all wonderful!"

"You should try fucking them!" I declare sincerely.

"Wish I could!" Wendy says wistfully as she starts the engine to complete the journey. A short while later she deposits me and my bike back home. I give her a cheery farewell but we daren't risk a kiss - never know who might be watching - as we part. I go in and hit the shower after parking my bike in the garage.


Not long after the door-bell goes. I look out to see Shona and Cath and Eileen and Joyce and Ruth and Sheila and Susan all standing on the doorstep in Brigade uniform. Slightly disappointed Shona hasn't come on her own as I have so much to share with her - particularly with regard to Katie - I quickly usher them inside. Shona throws her arms round me. "Miss me?" she asks as we kiss.

"Yes!" I confess.

"Missed you too. Bet you've had lots of pussy though? I have and we've got photos AND video to prove it! Haven't we Sheila?" Sheila has the grace to blush as she lofts the school video cam. "Go and set that up next door - we've not seen the results yet." I go to show Sheila the way. Shona grabs me "Uh-uh! Not you! Not till I've felt that cock in my cunt again - its been too long!" she says whipping off the towel which seems to have become by perpetual dress around the house this weekend.

"Two can play at that!" I grab her hoisting her onto the bottom step and hauling her panties down. I am in her velvet cunt an instant later making us both gasp. She is still the wettest, the hottest, the tightest, the most beautiful, the most everything girl I have ever been with. I pull her mouth to mine as we just stand there united as we each try to eat the others tonsils. We start to fuck, me taking long strokes into her as she revolves her hips round my shaft. We are so hot for each other that moments later she comes on me and I prodigiously in her but we continue, Shona's orgasm continuing as I thrust at her until I come once more this time offering up an even greater quantity of my seed than before. This time we are both satisfied. "Golly! I have missed you Shona!"

She takes my hand and leads me though to the darkened living room where the video is already playing and the girls are in various states of undress fondling each other as they watch the screen. "Need to tell us about your weekend after we've seen some of this. Needless to say everyone wants your cock before they leave!" On screen Cath is working on Shona's cunt with the double headed dildo pushing it into her to the half-way mark before withdrawing it again pumping it rapidly in and out until Shona comes. Cath then pulls Shona up and, with the dildo still in her cunt, leads her to Sheila who is lying spread eagled obviously waiting. Shona lies down on top of her and slides the other half of the dildo into her cunt. The camera work isn't great but the pleasure the two girls are taking from each other is plain to see.

"So you got it on with Sheila then." I whisper to Shona stating the obvious.

"You bet! I'd already eaten her out by this point and she me. Go and give Cath a hand!"

Cath is lying on her side watching the screen intently while playing with her tits with one hand, the other working on her puss. I lie down beside her reaching for her breasts. "Let me do that for you." I offer as she nestles her body back against mine.

"Yes please!" she moans reciprocating by grabbing my cock and guiding it into her love hole. "Ah that's better - these plastic cocks are all very well but there's nothing like the real thing!" On screen I see Shona has moved on and is now fucking Cath with the dildo. As I hump into Cath's tightness my thoughts turn to her Mum and to how to arrange the threesome we so badly want but now is not the time to bring it up. It needs to be kept private I feel. Cath comes moaning loudly just as my cock serves up some more cream. Don't seem to be able to hold back once my thoughts turn to Katie and Cath together! Someone, Susan I think, tells us to keep the noise down they're trying to watch the telly! The video is now of Shona pounding the dildo into her sister Eileen - Shona seems to be making her way round the tent dicking each girl in turn - not atypical I decide.

I kiss Cath and get up going over to Joyce. "If they want the noise kept down, I reckon its your turn Joycy!" She smiles at my still erect cock.

"Sure thing!"

I sit on a dining chair and she comes and straddles me taking my thick cock into her cunt and going right to the bottom without hesitation. She flings her arms round my neck and we kiss. Sighing she says "I do like your cock in me, stretching my little pussy like it does. Its so hot in me - those dildos are a bit cold to have in you!" We sit there like that for ages, coupled but otherwise just having a bloody good snog, kissing deeply and with my hands roaming free over her tiny tits, until Joyce starts to move her hips in small, slow, random movements causing wonderful feelings in my cock as I feel my orgasm slowly begin to build deep within me. Joyce's breathing deepens slightly and then suddenly her cunt clamps down on me - a sure sign, if the only sign, that she has come. Her movements never cease though as we continue to snog, her cunt clamping down on me with increasing frequency until I can hold back no longer and my spasming cock erupts a steady stream of cum into her causing her to come even harder although not a sound comes from either of us.

"Very good Jim!" Joyce complements "Could add a whole new dimension to our game! Who'll be the first to get fucked in class?"

"Oh no! I don't think so! I've been in enough tricky situations lately - what if it doesn't work and we're caught?" I caution.

"'Suppose your right - it would be fun to try though! That certainly was!"

"Definitely!" I agree "Certainly adds a whole new dimension to snogging! Loved just being in you as we kissed and then those little movements were sensational! You forgot to say thank you though! How many times did you come?" I tease remembering the rules of 'The Game'.

"Don't know. Lost count. Anyway I'd have had to stop kissing you to say anything and I didn't want to do that!"

"OK, let you off just this once." I say as Joyce kisses me again and I lower my head to kiss her gorgeous and oh so small and firm tit. She just sighs.

By now the others seem to have lost interest in the video and cluster round us. Shona pulls Joyce off my lap and surveys my limp dick. "Joyce! You've broken it!" she scolds. "Ruth get down there and fix it - if you can its yours." Ruth drops to her knees and begins to lick my cock and suck at my ball bag. "Now Jim, beginning with Anne after school on Friday, tell us all about your weekend.

And so I do. About Anne being initially so frantic, about being discovered by Babs and Kirsty, about the other five, about the Golden Shower episode, about the bananas, candles and cucumbers the girls had used on themselves and each other, about all the fucking, sucking and fisting that that happened that evening.

"Sounds fun! Hadn't thought about bananas - mind you Eileen had raided Mum's toy cupboard so we weren't short of things to please our pusses, were we girls?" Shona comments. There is a general murmur of agreement. "Need to try Babs and Kirsty soon! What about Saturday?"

Deliberately missing Saturday morning and my encounter with Katie, Cath's Mum, I tell of the phone call from Anne and how I'd fucked her cunt and arse before Babs had sucked me off in the open air. Shona looks quizzically at me - I can just about see her brain working. 'If that was his first fuck of the day, how come he managed not to come for so long?'. I then tell of the bizarre goings on at Judith's house and how I'd dicked Jude in both holes as she lay on top of her manacled sister before Anne had taken her with a strap on dildo and of how Babs and I had slipped away for a nice quiet session back at Babs' house with Kirsty while Anne and Jude had laid into Alice.

"Knew that lot were into some kinky stuff! Don't fancy bondage much myself." Shona declares.

"Don't mind a bit of domination though do you?" I ask.

"Well... Only to get my own way really." she says "Nothing serious and definitely not with you - my bum still tingles where you slapped me. Not into S&M either!"

I laugh and pull her to me. "Don't believe you can still feel it - it wasn't hard!"

"Well no, suppose not. Anyway go on!" she implores.

I tell of Saturday night's visit from Angie and Pat. "Angie tells me you and she are going to get a flat together." I address Eileen.

"That's right. I know of a nice one for rent quite cheap and not far from here. Come and visit won't you?"

"Angie's already issued the invite." I smile. Ruth by now has my cock back in action. Hands go everywhere as the others help her to mount me. "Today'll have to wait!" I declare fucking into Ruth's hot hole not wanting to be passive this time. She reads me well and she is soon riding my hard cock for all she's worth, moaning and groaning as she does so. She comes rapidly and is instantly replaced on my dick by Eileen.

"Oh yes! You'd better come and see us! Maybe I prefer girls maybe I don't - I certainly like the feel of your dick stretching my cunt!" Slowly she pumps herself up and down on my shaft gyrating as she does so. I notice her cunt to be bald and remark on the fact. "Yes the girls did both me and Sheila at camp. Love the way it feels - 'specially next to another cunt or with your cock in me!" Katie and her butterfly come to my mind again and its all I can do to hold back the fountain as Eileen fulfils herself on me. "Better call it quits at that - you've still got Sheila and Sue to see to." she tells me climbing off. I look round and see Susan and Joyce sixty-nineing, not a murmur coming from either as they each explore the others cunt with tongue, lips and fingers. I soon change that sticking my long middle finger into Susan's arse as my cock penetrates her cunt from behind making her squeal delightedly into Joyce's cunt as I fuck her puss hard, my finger keeping time in her arse. It only takes a couple of minutes before she is coming, coming hard and repeatedly on my dick but still I am not ready. I pull out and am about to take her arse but Sheila pulls me away.

"Oh no you don't! Haven't forgotten me have you?" she lies back and spreads her legs wide. I look at her recently shaved snatch and whistle.

"How could I?" I reply diving in on her licking at her pussy lips before pressing my broad tongue as deep as I possibly can into her until I am rewarded with a mouthful of her juices.

"Fuck me!" she implores but I hold back, teasing her with my tongue until she comes again moments later with my tongue flicking over the hard button of her clit. Shona and Cath come to us as Sheila once again yells at me to fuck her. Shona grabs my cock and leads me to the prostrate Sheila rubbing my knob at her slit.

"Is this what you want?" Shona asks. Sheila nods. "OK then, do her Jim, do her good!" I smile and slide into her juicy haven fucking her with powerful strokes, my girth stretching her wide. I need to come! Shona manages to roll us onto our sides and next thing I know Cath is fucking into Sheila's rear with the two headed dildo making us both cry out. As we pound relentlessly into the girl Shona is kissing her gently, talking as she does so. "Like that? Lucky you getting your favourite fantasy fulfilled so soon." Sheila is soon lost in orgasm. Her natural tightness and the pressure of the dildo pressing against my cock soon has me blasting off too but I don't stop. Instead I roll the two girls over pinning Cath below Sheila as I bring myself to the top of the pile and continue to fuck deeply into Sheila's spermy cunt. Now as she bucks back at me she is effectively fucking Cath in the puss with the dildo. None of us can last the pace and the three of us come together in a flurry of limbs.

I pull away. "Wow, some fantasy, Sheila!" I am gasping for breath. Shona licks at my limp cock, lapping up whatever juices she can find.

"Well, it was only to have both my holes fucked at once." Sheila replies. "The bit fucking back at Cath was beyond my imagination!"

As I gather my wits I realise the time. "Sorry girls - its been a fantastic evening but I'm going to have to throw you out now. My parents will be back before too long."

"Tell us what you got up to today before we arrived home." Shona demands as they all dress. Quickly I tell of my trip to the farm and what went on with Dot, Sally, Wendy, Bambie and Thumper. "Told you Sal was good!" Shona smiles. Video equipment unhooked I see everyone to the door. Shona holds back for a last snog. "You can tell me the bits you missed out tomorrow." she whispers. "Come to the house in the morning as usual and come straight up to my room. I'll be alone."

"Good" I reply sincerely. Door closed I hit the sack - the shower can wait till morning. I'm goosed!
-----

As ever feedback appreciated. BD

abby and sarah

lion1967 on Lesbian Stories

Abby turned off the water in the shower, and pulled a 
soft Bath Towel from the rail. Wiping the steam from
the full length mirror she admired her superb young
naked body. Abby was quite tall, and slim and she was
often aware for the looks she received from boys at
School.

Abby was quite excited, as in an hour or so, she was
going to a Party, unsupervised or without a Chaperone
for the very first time.

"I hope that there are some nice Boys there," she said
to her self as he began to dry her wet naked body.

Abby had never had a Boyfriend, and was often quite
jealous of some of her friends at School, who although
were still, like Abby, only 14 years old, had steady
Boyfriends. So
Read More
me of her friends had told her of some of
the things they got up to with their boyfriends, and
although she thought that some of her friends were just
boasting a bit too much, and stretching the truth just
a bit, she was still a little jealous.

It was thinking about some of these revelations, late
at night, while alone in her bed, that led to Abby
discovering the pleasures of masturbation. At School,
that day, one of her friends, Patsy had told her that
she and her Boyfriend, had taken off all their clothes
and had lain naked together on his bed, while his
Parents were across the road at a party.

They had lain in bed, cuddling and fondling each other,
and Patsy had described in great detail how she had
slowly stroked his hard penis and he had touched and
kissed her little breasts and nipples and traced his
fingers up and down her moist pussy slit until it
became fully open and wet, and had French Kissed each
other, and had brought each other to an awesome orgasm,
and Patsy had told her how Paul her Boyfriend had cum
all over her belly, with loads and loads of thick white
cum, and how she had been consumed by this wonderful
explosion in her fanny.

Abby had taken this story all in, and had told Patsy
that it was awesome. That night, alone in bed, she had
thought over story, and discovered that her little
Breasts and nipples were tingling and deep down between
her thighs, she had become aware of a nice warm feeling
in her little virgin Pussy.

The more that Abby’s mind went over the story, the more
intense the feelings in her belly and Breasts and Pussy
became, and when she touched one of her nipples she
found that it was rock hard and sticking up, and as she
gently played with it, the heat in her Pussy, became
more of a very pleasant itch, causing her to slide her
other hand down over her smooth flat belly and Navel
until she touched the little nest of hairs surrounding
her Fanny.

Without really knowing why she parted her thighs, and
as she reached down further, she discovered that her
little slit was moist and hot, and as her lips opened
her fingers discovered hot wet juices inside, and when
she slid a finger up and down her inner cunt, and
electric like shock went through her.

"Oh Gosh, mmmmmm this is nice, I like this," she sighed
softly out loud.

At the top of her fanny she found that her little
clitty was quite swollen and very sensitive to the
touch, and as she slowly rubbed it with her slippery
fingers, she became aware of her heart beat increasing,
and her breath became more laboured and she was moaning
out loud.

She closed her mouth, lest her parents might hear her
moans of pleasure, and continued to slowly caress her
nipples and clitty, feeling a really funny, but very
pleasant feeling slowly course through her entire young
body, slowly taking over her. She began to twist and
turn, on her bed under the duvet, and the as this
really funny feeling increased she found that she just
could not keep still.

Gradually, Abby became aware that she was rubbing her
swollen clitty and nipples ever faster and faster.

"This must be what Patsy and her Boyfriend were doing
in bed," she thought.

Faster and faster she rubbed her clitty, and nipples,
and even with her mouth closed she could not prevent
some little moans and whimpers escape, as for the first
time in her life, she experienced these amazing and
pleasurable feelings.

She was sweating now, and her slim hips and trim little
bottom was raised from the bed, as her fingers raced
back and forth across her clitty and she tugged at her
tingling, erect little nipples.

"Ohhhh my goood, this is so gooood!" she panted.


Suddenly, deep in her belly, she became aware of a new
feeling, it made her all hot and creamy, and she began
to struggle for breath. Her Bottom was bouncing off and
on the bed, and she was twisting from side to side. Her
face was on fire, and sweat poured down her body, as
this feeling increased.

"This must be it, like Patsy said, I am going to cum,"
she told herself, "or else I am going to die," as she
moaned and gasped and panted.

Suddenly her body was gripped in the most intense, and
awesome feeling, as she gripped the sheet with one
hand, and the feeling exploded in her fanny, and she
began to shake all over, like nothing she had ever felt
before in her 14 years, and finally it calmed down and
she lay gasping for breath under the duvet, her slim
naked body, bathed in sweat, and her thighs wet and
slippery from the hot juices that had flowed from her
little cunt.

After drying herself off, Abby stepped out of the
shower, the Bath towel still partly covering her slim
naked body. Slipping off the bath towel she turned and
replaced the Bath towel in the rail within the Shower
stall and turning to face the full length Mirror in her
Bedroom, she admired the slim figure of the naked young
girl that she saw in the mirror.

Her flawless lightly tanned skin had just a few tan
lines. It was the tan lines that Abby did not like
about her body. She always pleaded with her Mother to
allow her to remove her Bikini top and bottom when she
was sunbathing in the rear garden, but her Mother never
allowed it.

Abby gazed at her slightly sloping shoulders down to
her superb little firm breasts. She turned to one side
and admired how her small breasts stood out from her
body, and were both partly out pointing and up pointing
and how the little pink nipples which capped her
breasts were partly erect. Her eyes moved down past her
trim waist and thighs, over her smooth flat belly to
where, nestling between her thighs was the little Brown
triangular nest of hairs surrounding her little virgin
Fanny. Turning round she bent forward and opened her
legs and saw her little bush peeping back at her from
between her trim buttock cheeks.

"Mmmm, Abby Girl you are quite a looker," she smiled at
herself. She sprayed her entire body with a special
perfume and Deodorant that she had. Opening a drawer
she selected a little black Bra, and pulling it on,
over her little tits, adjusted it and clasping it, and
then she fitted it over her little breasts and was
pleased to see how the Bra made her little breasts
stand out even more than they did without the Bra.
Opening another drawer she selected a pair of tiny Pink
Panties, and stepping into them she pulled them up over
her little cunt.

She was pleased to see how the outline of her little
bush was visible under the panties. She selected a
short flared skirt and tight blouse, and as she pulled
them on, she wondered if she would attract a nice boy
at the party.

"It would be nice if I got kissed, like the other girls
tell me about. I mean I would not let a boy on my first
date put his cock anywhere near my fanny, but I might
let him feel my tits through my blouse if he was nice
and I liked him, and even put a hand inside my blouse
and feel me, and even feel my fanny through my
panties," she said to herself.

"What I would really like would to let a boy feel my
fanny proper, let him put a hand down the front of my
panties and touch me."

"Well, I will just have to wait and see," she thought
as she completed dressing herself and went downstairs
to where her Mother was waiting to take her to the
party.

"You look very attractive, Darling, I just hope that
you are not too attractive to the boys, I told you what
they are like."

"Yes Mummy, I will be on my guard," Abby smiled back.

Half an hour later her Mother gave her a kiss and with
a final warning about watching out for Boys, she drove
off, reminding Abby that she would be back at 11 pm.
Abby walked up to the door and rang the bell. A few
minutes later, the Parents of her 14 hear old friend,
Sadie, opened the door.

"Hello Abby dear, go right in, Sadie is in the Lounge."

Abby entered the Lounge. There were a lot of girls and
boys that she knew from school and Sadie saw her and
came over.

"Wow, girl you will pull a boy tonight dressed like
that, you look stunning."

"Thanks, here's your present. I hope that you like it."

"Thanks," Sadie said, kissing her on the cheek, "come
and I will introduce you to my cousin Sarah."

Abby followed Sadie across the room to where a girl,
about 16 years old was sitting.

"Sarah this is my friend Abby," Sarah said, and the two
shook hands.

Abby looked at the older girl. She was absolutely
stunning. She was tall and slim with shoulder length
blonde hair. She was wearing a short flared skirt,
quite like the one that Abby was wearing and a
revealing little blouse, which showed off some of her
trim breasts.

"Where are you from Sarah?" Abby enquired.

"London," the older girl replied smiling widely showing
off and awesome set of white teeth.

"Gosh, she is a stunner," Abby thought to herself.

Just then the music started and as it was a sort of
quick dance type of music, some of the girls that did
not have a boy to dance with, began to dance together.

"Would you like to dance, Abby?" Sarah smiled.

"Yes, thank you," Abby replied and said to herself, "at
least I cannot get into trouble dancing with a girl,
although I am going to find a Boy later."

The two girls danced for several dances before the
music changed to a slower more intimate type of dance,
and Abby saw several boys and girls take each other in
their arms and begin snogging. She felt a twinge of
jealousy as she looked on.

"Abby, I am going outside for some air, are you
coming?" Sarah asked her.

"Ok then, lead the way."

Abby followed the older girl outside onto the large
balcony leading form the lounge. It was dark outside,
but warm.

"Is your Boy friend not here, I see plenty of girls
with boys?"

"I don't have boyfriend yet, my Mother would not allow
it, what about you?"

"No boyfriend, but it is not because my Mother tells me
so, ha ha."

"Oh."

The two girls stood side by side at the Balcony
railing, looking out at the lights of the nearby houses
in the warm darkness. Abby became aware that Sarah had
moved closer to her, and that the bare skin of her Left
leg touching the bare skin of Sarah’s Right leg. She
was on the point of moving slightly apart again, but
the touch of the other girls skin was strangely
exciting, and she was also aware that she could feel
Sarah’s right fingers touching her left hand.

She said nor did anything, but stood still, pretending
that she had not noticed. Neither girl spoke, but stood
side by side, each aware of the closeness of the others
body. Abby felt the hand touching hers, move slightly,
so as the fingers were slightly moving up her arm.
Still she said nothing, but stood still, her heart beat
quickening, as the hand slowly began to caress her arm.

She turned to look at Sarah, who said nothing, but gave
her a sweet smile. Abby was shocked to discover that
Sarah’s touch was exciting her. The slowly moving hand
slid up her arm until it was on her shoulder, and
suddenly Abby found herself responding by putting her
arm around Sarah and drawing her closer.

"Mmmmmmmm," she heard Sarah sigh.

Sarah’s hand was now down touching her back and slowly
moving down towards her waist. She turned towards Sarah
and found that the older girls face was on her
shoulder. Before she knew what was happening, their
lips met in a gentle, wet kiss, and Abby felt the hand
on her waist slide down and hold her left buttock.

She was really excited and turned on now, not really
knowing why she was, as never before had she ever
considered an attraction to another girl. Her nipples
were erect and she could feel a lovely warm feeling in
her fanny.

"Oh Sarah, mmmmm I love your touch on my bottom," Abby
sighed.

"Mmmmmm, good," Sarah replied, feeling the younger girl
through her skirt.

"I can feel your panties," Sarah said, ending a long
intimate kiss.

"Mmmmmm, it wonderful."

"You can caress me if you want."

Abby reached down and began to gently feel Sarah
through her skirt, thrilled by the feel of the smooth
skin under the fabric. She caressed lower and lower,
and suddenly became aware that she could not feel any
panties under the skirt.

"Can you not find any panties?" Sarah panted, really
turned on my this young girls touch.

"Funny, no I cannot."

"That is because I am not wearing any panties, I am
naked under there."

"Oh gosh, Saraahh!" Abby sighed, feeling her heart leap
in her chest at being told this.

"You can feel if you like," Sarah whispered in her ear.

Face flushed and hands trembling with excitement, Abby
slowly reached down until she found the hem of Sarah’s
skirt and reaching under, for the very first time in
her life, she touched another persons naked thighs. Her
trembling young fingers slid over the satin smooth skin
under the skirt and moving up her little fingers found
the top of Sarah’s thighs, and then they found smooth
pussy lips, hot and moist, and then further up a little
bush of silky hairs.

"Oh god, Sarah, I am so excited, I have never touched
another person there before,"

"Really?"

"Your pussy lips are all smooth, but you also have
hairs."

"Yes, I shave my Pussy lips, I love the feel of smooth
skin."

"Ohhh Gosh."

"I am still a virgin in the true sense of the word, I
have never touched anybody but myself."

"Oh god, you sweet, sweet baby," Sarah sobbed.

Abby felt a hand slide down over her skirt and then up
underneath. She reached for Sarah and kissed her, as
she felt Sarah take hold of her panties and begin to
tug them down. Slowly, little by little Abby felt her
Panties being tugged down until they slid past her trim
thighs and they fell to the wooden decking and she
stepped out of then and parted her thighs as wide as
she could.

"Ohhmm, I love you, Abby," Sarah sobbed.

"I love you too, oh so good, this is oh so good, "`Abby
sobbed back.

The two girls stood facing each other on the balcony,
kissing and feeling each other up.

Abby felt the hand under her skirt feel up her thighs
and then smooth small fingers found her hot wet little
virgin cunt, and gently slide between her wet outer
lips and found her swollen little clitty. Abby felt a
sort of mini explosion in her belly, like a mini
orgasm. Suddenly Sarah began to unbutton her blouse and
with her free hand, she lifted up the small Bra, and
closing her hot, wet lips over Abby’s right erect
nipple she begun to gently suck it.

"Ohhhh Jeeeessssuuuus, ooooohmmmmmyyymmmm!" Abby moaned
into the darkness of the night, as her right nipple was
gently sucked and at the same time her swollen clitty
was gently rubbed. She could feel an orgasm building.

"Sarah, I can feel I am going to cummoohhyeess," Abby
panted.

"Good! Baby, let it go, just let it go."

Sarah took Abby’s free hand and placed on her blouse.
Abby knew what she wanted so badly, and began to undo
the buttons on the blouse, until she could open it all
the way. Sliding in her free hand she found a left
breast and pulling away the bra, she found a small firm
breast, slightly larger than her own, but firm and with
a rock hard nipple, and taking the nipple in her mouth
she began to gently suck it.

Never in her 14 years, had Abby been so thrilled by
anything. Her young body was on fire, and as she felt
her orgasm approaching she became aware of Sara
twisting and turning on the balcony, just as she was
doing.

"Ohhhh, Abbby I am cummmmming, ooofffuukuuccckkk!!"
Sarah cried out in the darkness and clung to her and
then her own orgasm exploded in her cunt and she fell
against the older girl.


The two girls stood clinging to each other for support
for ages, then they broke the embrace and stood looking
at each other.

"Thank you Sarah, I have never ever felt like that
before, it was so awesome."

"Mmm, it was fucking brilliant, look we better go back
in just in case we are missed, and you better lift up
your panties, ha ha, or someone might find them and
accuse you of being fucked by a boy."

"Mmm, he couldn't make me feel like you have, Sarah."

Sarah kissed her quickly, then Abby picked up her
Panties from the decking and crumpled them up and held
them tightly in one hand and, followed Sarah back into
the party, naked under her skirt, and feeling very
daring and excited.

Shona and Friend. Part 4 - Saturday

theBlackDouglas on Teen Stories

Chapter 4 - Saturday

Being Saturday I sleep late trying to recover from the preceding three days but am rudely awakened about ten by the doorbell. I groan and rise as I know no one else'll be home at this time grabbing a robe en-route to the door since I sleep naked. "All right all right I'm coming!" I open the door and get a bit of a shock to see Cath's Mum standing there. "Mrs Hutchinson! Is everything OK?"

"It's Ms. Hutchinson actually and you've got some explaining to do young man." she says severely stepping into the hall closing the door behind herself. She is holding a slim book in her hand. "This is my daughter's diary - found it when I was cleaning her room, think she'd left it out to take to camp and then forgot. See

Read More
ms you had quite a time of it over the last few days with my daughter and some of her friends, even some of the staff at school!"

Oh oh! Deciding that honesty is the best policy I venture "Yes they've been out of this world and Cath is really, really good in bed - makes me feel fantastic."

"In bed? And in the darkroom or a locked office! She's only thirteen for heaven's sake!"

Deciding not to tell her I'd had younger only last night I change tack. "But you couldn't have been much older when you had Cath?"

"No that's just it, I was thirteen when I had Catherine and I don't want her making the same mistake. That's why I made sure she's on the pill - I wasn't when my boyfriend got me drunk at a party and forced himself on me! They'd call it date-rape nowadays." She is nearly sobbing. "Having Catholic parents abortion wasn't an option. But I've never let a man touch me since!"

I put an arm round her to comfort her. "I'm glad it wasn't an option. Cath is a wonderful girl. You should be proud of her." Thinking of Cath and effectively cuddled to an attractive young woman - simple arithmetic made her 27 tops - causes an unwelcome stirring in my loins despite my predicament. I try to adjust my robe to hide my growing erection but Cath's Mum soon spots it. She tears open my robe.

"My god! I thought she must be exaggerating about it's size!" she gasps. Something snaps. "All right show me how good it can be for a girl, show me how good you make Catherine feel!"

YES! I couldn't have planned it better!

Gently I lead her through to my bedroom and start to unbutton her jacket and then help her out of her dress leaving her standing in a skimpy bra and panties. Very nice I think moving to kiss her neck and down to the soft tops of her perfectly proportioned breasts.

"What's your name?" I ask - I can hardly call her Ms Hutchinson or Cath's Mum can I?

"My name's Catherine too, but most people call me Katie." she moans as I continue kissing at her body and running my hands very lightly down her sides to the curve of her hips.

"You have a beautiful body Katie." I tell her as I reach up to undo her bra snap, the flimsy garment falling away to the floor. "And very nice tits." I lightly cup her mounds, kiss first one and then the other on the nipple which are already hardening. I continue planting light kisses on her tits as my hands roam over her taught body. Her moaning increases and I boldly although gently slide a hand down the front of her panties to find her already very wet slit. She must be shaven for I can feel no bush - I'm sure my dick swells even more at the thought! Gently and slowly I run a finger up and down the outside of her slit teasing at her before sliding her pants down. She steps out of them revealing she is not only shaven but that she appears to have a multi-coloured butterfly tattooed where her bush should be. I whistle.

"Like it? Katie asks.

I respond by dropping to my knees in front of her kissing the butterfly softly before exploring her slit with both my lips and tongue. Her juices are really starting to flow and she tastes fantastic.

"Stop it Jim. You'll make me come." she says as I continue my ministrations.

"That's the idea." I reply just as she all but drenches me in pussy juice as her orgasm hits her. I lift her onto the bed limp as she is after the powerful climax and lie down beside her kissing her on the lips for the first time. She responds eagerly pushing her tongue into my mouth as I let my hand find her breast again.

"That was good" she tells me "but a girl can do that for another girl. Show me what only a boy can do!"

Gently for I've a feeling I must do everything gently with Katie, I spread her legs and move above her. Slowly and without fear of hurting her I slide my long pole all the way into her wonderfully tight cunt, stretching her with my girth making her gasp. Holding myself at the bottom and clenching my arse muscles to make my cock jerk inside her I ask "How's it feel? Your cunt is so tight round me."

"A-fucking-mazing! My puss feels stretched fit to burst!" Slowly I pull out, right out, before penetrating her again stretching her once more. "God!" she calls out as I reach bottom once more. "He so fucking big in me!" I repeat this slow action, pulling completely out and repenetrating her each time and each time drawing some form of oath from her as I bottom out before she starts to buck back at me. Taking this to be a good sign I up the pace until we are going at it frantically the sensations building all the time. Suddenly Katie throws back her head and yowls as the floodwaters break and a crushing orgasm sweeps over her. The clenching of her cunt muscles draws me with her, my cock spasming in her delivering a massive load of cum into her puss.

I lie back down beside her, pulling her to me and kissing her again. "Well that's what this boy can do. Do I pass?"

Long minutes pass before Katie has recovered enough to speak. "12 out of 10! I've never known anything as powerful as that! It was certainly better than my first time - not that I remember much about that, the sod got me so drunk! I can see why Catherine, Cath, likes begin with you so much - she positively raves about having sex with you - and Shona - in her diary. Didn't realise she was so into girls although I had a sneaky feeling about her and Shona."

"How'd you mean?" I ask.

"Takes one to know one,"

"Eh?"

"Lesbians I mean. I'm a closet lesbian and I had Shona figured as being that way inclined too." Katie informs me.

"Lesbian? Definitely not! More like bi since a few days ago - what's the term AC/DC, swings both ways? Cath too I suppose. And I don't think closet can be applied to Shona! Was that really only the second time you've fucked properly?"

"No I think you could say it was the first! I was fucked thirteen years ago but I definitely didn't fuck back as I did today. Since then there's only been the odd finger and slim dildo or vibrator in my puss - none of these monster rubber things some of my girlfriends like shoved up them. Never fancied that much - maybe change my mind after that seeing to your monster gave me just now!"

We lie talking. After Katie at had Cath she lived with her parents for some years finishing school and getting some qualifications at college only moving to town a few years ago to take up a position as a medical secretary at a local hospital. It is through this apparently that she is able to obtain supplies of the pill for Cath and any of her friends who want it - which by what I can make out is practically every girl in the school from second year up until they were old enough to go to their own GP for the prescription - she is having a torrid affair with one of the female doctors at the hospital who is so besotted with her she'll do anything Katie asks.

I ask about the tattoo agreeing it looks fabulous and I would love to have sex with her on top so that I can see it properly as we fuck. Katie confides that, when she can get a baby sitter for Cath or she's at her grandparents some weekends and holidays, she likes to hang out in the Gay and Lesbian clubs in the nearby city always on the prowl for a new partner. She admits to being fairly promiscuous but nothing like the gay blokes who would often have umpteen partners in the same night fucking and being fucked by total strangers. She prefers to meet a new girl, get to know her a bit and than go back with her for the night. One time fairly recently she'd been picked up by a girl who turned out to have a tattoo in the same place. This had been such a turn on for Katie that she couldn't stop licking and kissing it all night - not that Linda objected, that was exactly why she had it - and the next morning Linda had gone with her to the tattooist who removed all her pussy hair by electrolysis and etched the butterfly design she had chosen into her skin in vibrant colours.

"Didn't it hurt?" I ask running my hand over her silky smooth pubes.

"No not really, the tattooist really knew what she was doing. The worst bit has having the hair removed. It should never grow back I'm told. As it happened I hadn't shaved for a while otherwise I couldn't have had it done and I normally have a bare puss - it makes for better girl to girl contact. So you want to watch my butterfly while we do it? Think I can arrange that. Lie back and watch."

All this talk of pusses has my cock at attention again. Katie pushes me down and raises herself over me giving me a full frontal view as she grasps my cock and guides it to her hole as she lowers herself on me keeping her body upright. It makes for the most erotic sight as she makes contact with my cock slowly taking me inside her, the radiant design framing her slit as she does so. As she continues to lower herself she wiggles her hips, the ripple of her muscles almost making it look like the butterfly is flapping it's wings. Its all I can do to hold back! Katie must sense this "Like that, lover boy do you?" she asks as she takes me all the way in. "Well so do I - I like this position, I like being in charge. How's my butterfly doing?"

"I just love what you're doing!" I say softly as she continues to wiggle staying down on me. "Your butterfly looks like its flying." This makes her giggle and then she begins to raise herself again almost agonisingly slowly. I make to pull back, responding to her.

"Ah, Ah!" she warns. "Just lie still. This is my treat." she raises herself so much I begin to see my glands appear from her pussy and then, suddenly and without warning, she has me balls deep again making me cry out. This brings a smile to her face as just as suddenly I see my glands again. She repeats this a few times varying the rate of assent and descent before coming to rest with me deep in her again moments before I would otherwise have come. "What do you think? Slow or fast?" she asks.

"Don't know. Just whatever you like." If she wants to be in charge I am up for it. Everything she had done has been good for me and I tell her so.

Smile widening she says "Let's try sort of medium." as she sets up a steady rhythm sliding up and down my pole until she comes yelling long and loud time and again as she feels my sperm flood into her. She collapses forward and I roll us onto our sides still coupled.

"I enjoyed that! Am I as good as Cath?" Katie asks of her daughter.

"Yes" I tell her "yes but different. All the girls I've been with have been fantastic and all have been different. It's not right to contrast and compare."

"'Suppose not." she says snuggling in tight.

"Will you promise not to slap me if I ask you something private?" I venture cautiously.

"OK. What?"

"Have you ever made out with Cath?"

Silence. Have I gone too far?

"No" the answer slowly comes. "But I've thought about it. Just last week during that hot spell I came back from hospital late and went into her room to check her. She was lying asleep naked on top of the covers on her side. As I gently kissed her good night on the cheek she rolled over onto her back her legs slightly apart. She lay bathed in moonlight. I was so attracted to her that I moved to the foot of her bed to get a better view and just stood there fingering my puss and tits till I came. It was all I could do to stop myself diving in and lapping her puss!"

"Why didn't you?" I think to myself. The rolling onto her back, legs apart bit sounding more like an invitation than anything else to me. I bet Cath wasn't as asleep as she made out. "How far does Cath's diary go?" I ask still cautious.

"Friday lunchtime."

"Then you'll know about Cath and I being discovered in the act as it were and being summoned to Miss Maclean's office?"

"Yes and I know about 'Wendy' lying on her desk while you did her as she ate your sperm from my daughter and then the two of them reversing roles. Is Cath in a gymslip really such a turn on?"

"Well most of the time I was fucking Wendy I was wishing it was you who were lying there." I blurt out half expecting her to jump up screaming.

"Think I'd have liked that!" is the unexpected reply. "What about the gymslip?"

"Cath in a gymslip would keep me hard all day!" I assert.

"Well I'm a bit beyond that now" Katie says the other subject apparently dropped - I am not going to push, the principal has been established - "but you still seem pretty hard to me!" This is true I am still erect cosseted inside her sensuous puss. "Cath seems to like you in her bum too. Can we try that? Or lets put it another way 'do my arse or I'll snap your dick off in my cunt'!" she clenches hard round my cock to make her point.

"OK, OK! Let's take it easy!" I pull out of her and turn her round so we are nestled together like spoons and offer my knob to her arse.

"Yes let's. I didn't mean to come on so strong. I've never had anything up there before." she offers in retraction.

"OK, just relax as much as you can and you'll love it - promise." I cup one of her breasts as I ease slowly but continuously forward. My caresses on her tit seem to do the trick making her relax and soon she has taken my knob into her - the thrill for me intense, her arse effectively virgin. As I continue to push into her she is moaning loudly but not apparently in discomfort as she is pressing back at me just as hard. I pause in her as much as I can be.

"Why've you stopped?" she pleads "It feels so good. God I'd never have believed I could take that giant thing of yours up there!"

"It's not a 'thing'." I scold. Too much softly, softly I have decided, time to get serious. "Its a cock! What is it?" I demand as I begin to pound in and out quite hard.

"A cock."

"And where is it? Say it!"

"In my arse! It's in my fucking arse!"

"No my cock is fucking you in the arse and you love it!"

"Yes, yes I do."

"Say it!"

"I love to have your cock fucking my arse." she screams coming as she does so. She has to endure my cock violating her anus keeping her up there coming hard for a good while yet until I am ready to blow my seed into her. As I do so my balls and cock go into meltdown, my cock jerking as hard as I've ever known within her. For whatever reason this girl, woman really, is just such a turn on for me!

We lie there my cock slowly deflating within her, her tightness constricting the outward flow of blood, panting for breath. "So do you think Cath would be up for a threesome?" Katie asks.

"No that was wonderful Jim?" I tease.

"Certainly was. Loved the way you made me say all those words and things! Well what do you think?"

"One of my best orgasms yet." I say deliberately missing the point.

"No!" she nearly screams at me. "About Cath! About us and my daughter!"

"Almost certainly." I agree.

"How would we do it?" she queries.

"We could always ask her or you could just walk in and catch us and take it from there or ... Well what do you think?" I falter.

"Don't want to ask up front - that seems too premeditated. I'd want to see you actually..."

"Say it." I prompt.

"...actually penetrate her." She blushes before brightening. "I know - perhaps I could walk in on the two of you just as you're getting started, you know starting to undress, wearing just a robe or towel as if I've just come from a bath and see what happens?"

"Could work but won't Cath have made sure you're out first?" I query.

"I'll tell her I'll be out and then you suggest the two of you go back to her place. Unless she actually checks she'll never know. The acoustics are lousy in our flat."

"OK" I agree "but I don't know when. I doubt I'll see her till Monday with her being at camp this weekend. Tuesday, Wednesday maybe?"

"Sooner the better really!" she says "I have to go right now" She pulls away from me dressing, neglecting her underwear I notice.

"Tell me Katie, what did you intend when you rang the bell this morning?" I am curious.

"Suppose I expected to confront your Mum and Dad with the evidence. Get the school involved, the police maybe?"

"We might be under age but everyone was willing." I counter.

"That'd be called Statutory Rape in America. 'Suppose I'm guilty of that now - having sexual intercourse with a minor in this country. Going to press charges?" she asks.

"Only if you do!"

"No danger of that!" She kisses me and my cock instantly rises again. Standing as we are behind the front door me naked, her dressed again ready to leave but wearing no knickers I gently trip her cushioning her as she falls onto the stairs. Instantly my head is under her dress, tongue laving at her slit and tracing the outline of her tattoo before I let her have the measure of my cock again.

"There - that's us even. I certainly didn't ask permission of you, call rape if you like!" I say burying my dick to the hilt in her.

"Again no danger - anytime you want to do that just go right ahead. Just wish Cath was here to lick me out afterwards!" she moans. I am going fast knowing I'm not going to last long in her, images of being with both Katie and Cath in my mind. She comes first but only just as my balls familiarly tighten and release more of my fluid into her. I pull out, draw her to her feet and we kiss. "Quite a send off! Must leave my knickers off more often!"

Grabbing my robe to preserve my modesty before opening the door I see her out promising to see what I can set up for the two of us with Cath. "Maybe we could let her walk in on us?" I suggest.

"No - prefer the original plan."

I shut the door and hit the shower, another possible crises averted in the best possible way imaginable.


As I am drying myself the phone rings. I pad damply through to answer it. "Hi Jim! It's Bertie. Babs I and I are just dying to see you. Can you come over?"

"Sure, no problem. See you soon - I'm just finishing my shower." I respond.

"Shower? You just up? It's gone twelve, mind you after yesterday I'm not surprised! See you soon as you can?"

"OK, bye." I hang up thinking she doesn't know the half of it. I promise myself to confide what has happened with Katie to Shona but to no one else except maybe Cath herself until I've had the two of them together. I still think asking Cath to join in might be best, the notion of her lying stark naked on her bed letting - and I'm sure letting is the word - her mother frig herself off while looking at her strong in my mind.

I dress rapidly in chinos and a snap popper shirt eschewing any underwear or socks shoving my feet into some canvas shoes as I rush out of the door. Why wear more? I feel I won't be wearing what little I am for long! Anne and Babs meet me half way up the always deserted path which shortcuts almost directly between my house and theirs. "Change of plan" Anne informs me "Jude rang just after I'd got off the phone to you with an interesting suggestion. We're going to her house instead. First I have to get even with my little sister!" She drags me from the lane into a secluded glade. Babs I notice keeps station by the lane.

"Even?" I ask pretending not to know what she means knowing full well she must know what Babs and I did last night as I was supposed to be dressing in Anne's bedroom.

"Yes even, literally! You've been in her puss one more time than you have in mine. I've no knickers on so fuck me now!" she demands.

I pull her to me and kiss her eagerly running my hand up inside her short sleeveless dress to her overly wet crack. "Seen some action today already have you? You and your sister perhaps? What has it been, fist, banana, cucumber, candle?"

"Yes. Yes. Yes, yes, yes and yes!" she pants as I play on her clit. "Between last night after you left and then again this morning Babs and I have tried all of these. It was when I fisted her last night after every one else had gone and found her cunt sticky with your cum I put two and two together and made her tell me. Oh yes! Fill me!" As she talked I'd dropped my trousers and am now ramming my cock deep into her cunt. As she fucks desperately back at me I kiss her deep, my tongue finding hers. I feel her nipples hard against my chest and cup her tit finding, as I'd suspected, no bra - the skimpy dress and broad high heels being the only things she wears! Anne breaks the kiss trying to find breath as she comes on me. After my session this morning with Katie I am not ready to come yet and so I whip out of her, turn her round and bend her over pushing her dress almost round her neck before fucking into her back door.

"There!" I tell her as I ram into her arse, kneading at her exposed tits as I do so. "Not only even but one up!" Babs, who has been watching us more than the path gives up her watch and slips below her sister laving at her cunt and my balls. This is too much for Anne who comes again really hard slumping forward such that I plop out of her rear. Babs has me in her mouth at once sliding me into the tightness of her throat. She pulls me in and out fucking me with her face until I am breathing hard and I yield my load down her tight throat before I pull out.

"Evens!" Babs declares sitting on the ground recovering beside Anne. I pull my trousers up and help the pair of them to their feet. They adjust their dresses - Babs being similarly attired to Anne - and we return to the path. As we walk with me in the middle cupping one naked boob of each girl through the armholes of their dresses, we talk.

"Did you see Alice and Judith in the bathroom yesterday?" I ask.

"No." they both reply, Anne adding "What were they doing?"

"Jude was giving Alice what they called a 'Golden Shower' in the bath. You know, peeing on her?"

"I know what a Golden Shower is thanks." Anne says. "That's fairly mild for Alice! What she really likes is to be manacled to the taps while we all line up to takes turns peeing on her before massaging it into her or drinking it off. She's even tried to get one of us to shit on her but no one's done that for her as far as I know! Hate to think what she'll be like now you've actually fucked her - she's forever going on about being tied to the bed while some one works her over with a dildo, she unable to move or resist - not that she would resist!"

"Are all of you into this?" I ask trying hard not to sound too stunned.

"Five of us, me, Anne Mac, Jude, Lesley and of course Alice, are into bondage and submissiveness to a certain extent - that's why I really enjoy fagging the older girls in the showers and how I first got it together with Shona! We just finished fagging, she eating out Dot of course while I took Pat. We were kneeling side by side, the older girls kissing and playing with each others tits while Wendy looked on from the corner at us and the other girls, frigging away at her clit, when Shona caught me in the corner 'Lick my cunt.' she said looking me straight in the eye. At first I told her to get lost but when she said it again pinning me into the corner I did just that with her drenching me when she came. Later she told me that she got so frustrated with Dot she just had to get some release afterwards. She licked me out too by the way - she's very good at it. Bet she's a great lay for you!"

"She is I can assure you! What about Heather and you Babs and Kirsty?" I ask having worked out who was missing in the tale.

"Heather isn't really - she just likes her sex straight - if it can be describes as straight between girls that is!" Anne laughs at her own joke.

"What about you Babs?"

"Don't know, never tried! Until yesterday I'd only ever been with Anne and Kirsty and Kirsty only with me." Babs answers openly.

"Well the pair you got plenty more experience yesterday. Five new girls to explore! Six for Kirsty." I remark.

"Certainly did - it was marvellous exploring their bodies, sucking their tits, pushing my fingers into their cunts. It opens up all kinds of new possibilities when you're not cherry any more." she enthuses.

"You mean like watching your girlfriend fuck herself with a banana while she watches you do the same yourself?"

"Something like that! The one I liked best actually happened once everybody had gone and Kirsty and I had supposedly gone to bed. I put the tip of a cucumber in my puss and then Kirsty sidled up to me as I lay on the bed her legs straddling me and took the other end in hers. We then had a race to see who could get most into her cunt as we pushed together until our cunts were grinding into each other."

"Who won?" I ask wishing I'd been there to see it.

"We decided to call it a draw. We lay there like that for ages just talking about everything that had happened and gently pushing the cuck back and forth just using our cunny muscles until we got a little too overheated and both came together. The feel of Kirsty's hot pussy juice's against my cunt was wonderful. Kirsty then flipped over pulling the cuck out of us both and we lay drinking at each others puss till we both got off again!"

"Might have invited me!" Anne sounds a little peeved. "All I had for company by then was a candle - mind you I put that to good use!"

We are now nearly at Judith's rather grand house - her parent's own a factory in town - so I release the girls giving their nipples a gentle tweak as I do so. Judith answers the door in a robe - no messing about with these girls - and invites us in taking us through to a bedroom. Another shock to the system! There bound hand and foot to the cast iron bed frame is an older girl who at first I don't recognise but quickly come to realise it must be the very Pat Anne had mentioned earlier. Pat being Judith's elder sister. She was as naked as the day she was born save for a hood over her head which covered her completely leaving only two holes for her nostrils and she certainly hadn't been born with those tits - they are why I recognise her, Pat has the biggest pair of tits in the whole school - but her puss was bare.

"I've just shaved her puss for you Jim. Like it? You should have seen her squirm!" Judith declares now standing naked, the robe abandoned. "She wants fucked but we don't want to give her that! Not yet, not till she's heard you fuck each of us up both holes. She can hear but she can't see, obviously, or talk." Judith climbs onto the bed lying down on top of her sister squashing her tits into her back spreading her legs for me. "Nice cushion Pat. Now come on Jim, let her feel you fuck me as well as hear it!" Anne and Babs have by now slipped out of their dresses and turn on me, Babs ripping my shirt off (good thing for the poppers!) while Anne works my trousers down, releasing my straining cock. "Glad to see you're ready Jim" Judith enthuses from her perch "I certainly am - I got myself so randy shaving Pat and playing with her waiting for you to arrive. Didn't let you come though did I? Much too soon for that. Left you all frustrated haven't I? High but not very dry!" Pat nods slightly. "Don't you dare move! Hear me? You should see the size of the dick I'm about to take up my tight little hole. He's so big I wasn't sure I could manage yesterday but I did - we all did - in both holes!" Judith, the talker. Anne and Babs guide me into position above Jude, the sight of two cunts arranged one above the other is like no other. I'm tempted to spoil the party by plunging into Pat's slick fuck hole almost certain in the knowledge she's never had a cock in her before despite her looks - my little kick again! - but I'm prevented by Babs who has a firm grasp on my cock guiding me to Jude's waiting cunt. "Come on! Hard! Let Pat feel you in ME!". Hard it is then! I quite literally slam my meat into her really not caring if she is ready or not but she is as wet as hell! "Feel that Patty? Feel that? That's his huge cock as deep in me as it can go! And I tell you it is huge and SO thick, he's really stretching me - just wait till YOU feel it in your cunt. But you're going to have to wait, Jim's got a lot more holes to fill before we can allow you the pleasure of him - always assuming the three of us haven't drained him dry by then! Might never get round to you!" I fuck Judith hard and fast determined to bring her off as fast as I could. As soon as she comes I pull out, raising her bum and pistoning back into her this time forcing my way through her anus and up into her back passage really making her squeal.

"Good, hope it hurts." I think as I go at her mercilessly until she comes again. I pull away not really wanting to come in her. I am immediately replaced by Anne who pushes some sort of dildo she has strapped on deep into Jude's cunt. I cuddle Babs gently to me as we watch the three girls in the bizarre scene. "Well?" I ask "Into this?"

"Don't think so!" she replies gently stroking my erection. "Think I'd much rather have some privacy with you." She leads me to another bedroom.

"Wasn't much private yesterday." I remark as we settle cuddling on the bed.

"That was different and the last time was anyway - today I don't want to give Jude the pleasure of her sister hearing me fuck." As I try and get my mind behind that she kisses the end of my knob. "Not fancy Jude today?" she asks my cock knowing I hadn't come. "Can't say I blame you. Try me instead!" With that she slides her mouth down over him taking only my knob into herself, lashing it with her tongue causing me to moan. She pulls him out. "Like that?" I nod. "Well try this!" This time she sucks me fully into her mouth and down into her throat, the muscles tight around me. I moan again, louder this time. She pulls out again. "Tell me about that thing you did with Anne Mac yesterday." she says before drawing me deep into her throat again. Concentrating hard as I have to in able to be able to say anything over the feelings she is stirring up in me I tell her about the video and how a girl's throat seems to spasm causing the guy to come and giving the girl quite a head rush. I can just about hear her smile as she goes down and stays down. I'm so close to coming anyway that I start spurting at the first flutter and consign a tremendous load directly to her stomach as I keep on coming before I withdraw into her mouth to let her taste me (and to let her breathe before she passes out).

Panting loudly she says "Hell! Loved that!"

"You and me both then!" Twelve she may be, fantastic she definitely is! Lying next to me we cuddle as I caress her tits softly making her sigh beside me. "What should we do about Pat? I was about to have her earlier but you stopped me."

"Mmm! Perhaps I shouldn't have. Not into those sorts of games! Anne was my first ever partner but I've never seen that side of her before."

"Well... How about I fuck your tight little twat and then we slip away?" I offer.

"Nearly right! How about we slip away and then you fuck me back at my house?" she counters.

"Got my vote. I'm really not into this either."

Somehow and with me waiting in the other room, Babs manages to gather up our meagre collection of clothes unnoticed by the others - I sincerely don't care what they are up to, Shona may be up for most things but I find most of this rather disquieting and think she would too. Babs and I dress quickly and slip out of the back door back across the lane to her house. "Shame Kirsty's not around." I remark.

"Could be arranged!" Babs announces whipping out her mobile.

Speed-dial. "Kirsty? Where are you?"..."Good!"..."My place soonest! I've got Jim with me"..."Bye!"

Kirsty is waiting for us outside the back door of Anne and Babs' house when we arrive. "What's the score?" Kirsty asks.

"Score? Score? Well... About 2-1 for the opposition right now but I'm sure between us we can put that right!" Babs answers pulling us both inside and into her bedroom. The pair of them undress sensuously - they are each seriously drop dead gorgeous. Both only twelve but without an ounce of puppy fat between them!

"Definitely not into that sort of stuff." Babs says lying back on the bed. "Give it to me straight Jim!" she says parting her legs and beginning to play with her pussy.

"What y'mean?" Kirsty asks. Babs quickly explains the day's events. Kirsty shudders. "I'll have it straight too!" she says lying up besides Babs.

"One at a time please!" I laugh.

"You bet! Mind if I'm first Kirsty?" Babs says as she really starts to lay into her puss. Kirsty shakes her head as I pull Babs' hands away making her scream at me. "I need to get off!!"

"All in good time." I answer pulling her legs wide as I go down on her lapping at her puss. "Mumm! Tasty!" I comment as I roll away from her onto Kirsty repeating my actions there before rolling back to Babs except that this time I manage to bring my body higher, my cock penetrating her lips. I use my hands to grasp her slim hips and pull her fully down onto my erect manhood making us both gasp with the contact. "Mumm! You are tight Babs! Love your tight little puss!" She begins to fuck back at me.

"Love it too Jim! Love your cock in me! I feel so full. Go nice and slow - I want this to last!" So with long, slow, gentle strokes just like I prefer and with Kirsty kissing at us wherever she could, I proceed to make love with Babs. Don't get me wrong: she is nowhere near the top of my list of greats lays but after Shona, Cath and Katie she definitely ranks - especially after her sister's antics - Anne had really been good when first we fucked but this afternoon had done nothing for me. As for Judith!!! Babs comes to a long juddering climax long before I am ready to come. Sensing this she rolls away from under me. "Your turn Kirsty!" she informs her girlfriend. Kirsty moves underneath into the space just vacated by Babs. She grasps my cock and guides it to her sweet puss, sighing contentedly as I slide into her. Another ranker! Needing to come, I go at her more vigorously with her gasping below me until she is bellowing out her orgasm on every stroke. Eventually, unable to take any more, she too rolls away before I come. "My bum Jim" Babs pleads coming underneath me once more facing downwards. Not arguing, I nuzzle my cock-head against her arse hole as she yields deliciously below me taking me easily into her darkest hole once more. Responding to my every move she starts to come harder and harder until she again can take no more. Once more she and Kirsty trade places and with barely a break in my rhythm I stuff my pulsating cock up her arse looking for satisfaction. I am being none too gentle but she doesn't seem to mind, thrusting back at me as wildly as I am thrusting into her, all 5'0" of her. The episode with Judith and co. seems to have affected me more than I realised for still I can not come even as Kirsty explodes in her climax below me. Babs pulls me off as I continue to flail away. "Suck him Kirsty! Jim when you're ready, stay down in her but if you can, save some of your cum for our tits. Come on us if you can." she directs. Kirsty scoots down my body taking my raging cock in a single gulp straight into her tight throat, visibly bulging as she swallows my meat. She stays down on me for a long time before coming up for air. She does this again several more times staying down longer each time as I feel my climax eventually building until when I know I'm about to surrender I hold her down until she all but passes out from lack of oxygen, her throat spasming causing me to start to pump into her. Quickly I pull out as Babs joins the gasping Kirsty below me as I jack off causing my sperm to land on their open mouths and chests. They kiss deeply, Babs taking the lead, before lapping at each other to gather up all my cum from the others body.

"You took your bloody time!" Babs exclaims as we all lie back. "Damn near wore us out! Better than all that kinky stuff though!"

"And fucking two twelve year old goddesses in any hole going isn't kinky?" I gasp.

"No - not when you're only a little older than us and everyone is willing."

"'Suppose you could say that of the others?" I counter. "I feel sorry for Pat - she never did get laid. Hope Anne didn't do her with that dildo anyway."

"Yeah, well her fault for getting mixed up in weird shit!" Babs shrugs. "Look sorry Jim but I'm going to have to throw you out now. My parents will be back soon."

"OK" I say as I dress "Want to come back to my place - my parents won't be back for hours?"

"Sorry can't. I'm expected to be in for tea - my Aunt's coming."

"Lucky her - otherwise you would be!"

Babs reddens. "My maiden Aunt! Did you mean the goddess bit?"

"'Course I did! What other word is there for you two?" I cuddle them to me. "Nymphets perhaps? Want to come back Kirsty?" I can see she is torn but eventually she shakes her head.

"Can't. I'm expected in for tea too." is the reply.

I slip out from between them pressing their still naked forms together. "Not to worry, some other time maybe?"

"You bet!!" they chorus.

I walk jauntily off home with a spring in my step to grab another shower and a bite to eat.


Having showered and eaten I'm wandering around with just a bath towel wrapped round me when the doorbell goes. Peering through the spy hole I see Angie in a short skirt and high heels with someone else I can't make out hovering in the background. Opening the door she says "Found a frustrated virgin hanging around out in the street." She steps inside followed shyly by Pat. My turn to blush!

"Look sorry about this afternoon. Didn't mean to run out on you - its just Babs and I aren't into all that bondage stuff. OK?" I offer.

"Yeah OK. Not sure I'm into it either. First time I'd tried. Jude and Anne definitely are though. Once they realised the two of you had skipped they kinda lost interest in me and let me go although not before Anne threatened to rape me with that strap on cock. Instead they got Alice to come over and while Anne fucked her, Jude peed on her and then dumped on her tits - you know, actually shat on her as Alice rubbed the stuff into her herself? They wanted me to join in but I was too grossed out so I flung on a coat and left." She pulls open the coat to reveal herself as naked underneath. My cock instantly rearranges the towel I'm wearing as I feast on those colossal tits. Angie steps between us, one hand weighing Pat's left tit, the other releasing me from my towel.

"Thought you weren't into boys?" I ask surprised.

"Nobody ever said that!" she says sniffily. "I'm just into girls more right now and Eileen in particular. But I wasn't on my way over here this evening dressed like this just for a chat - I came to fuck you - to feel you stretch my pussy again like you did the other night. Bumping into Pat was just the icing on the cake - she was outside crying you know?" I shake my head. "Got her to tell me the whole story. Now we can have a cosy threesome."

I lead the two of them through to my bedroom safe in the knowledge that my parents won't be back for several more hours. Pat lies down on the bed watching as Angie undresses muttering approvingly. I lie down beside Pat and gently kiss her on the lips and caress one of her tits. An idea hits me. "Fancy a massage Pat?" She nods so I go to get some baby oil from the bathroom collecting my towel en-route. Back in the bedroom I kneel over Pat's tummy and pour a little of the oil onto each of her tits.

"Oh! That's a bit cold!" she complains.

"Sorry - soon have you warmed up." I say as I begin to rub the oil all over her tits paying special attention to the deep valley between her mounds. Angie meantime has spread some of the oil onto her fingers and is gently massaging my dick. Once Pat is fully relaxed, breathing deeply and my cock is fully lubed up, I whisper "I'm going to fuck your tits now."

"What do you mean?" she asks almost sleepily.

"This!" I take my cock and lie it into the valley between her tits and push them over me to complete the tunnel. As I begin to stroke pushing deeper into her cleavage, rolling her nipples in my fingers as I do so, Angie lies down beside Pat kissing her and watching. When my cock-head emerges at the top it is she, Angie, and not Pat who bends to kiss it taking my knob into her mouth whenever she could during my actions. The combination of sensations mean I am not going to last long. Shortly I feel my balls start to tighten, a sure sign, and make to pull away saying "I'm going to come!".

Pat grabs my hips to stop me asking Angie "If I let him come on me will you lick it off?" Angie smiles and nods enthusiastically so I continue in my actions, Angie now just flicking her tongue over my knob not wanting to take any of my load in her mouth - yet! The slight pause means the edge has gone off my excitement and I actually manage to last a while longer even with Angie's tongue licks being almost excruciating on my dick-head before bathing Pat's chest with my thick white cream taking a long time to come fully in her cleavage. Letting go of her tits I kneel up immediately for my sensitised cock to be engulfed by Angie's mouth, her tongue licking the length as she does so. No sooner am I in than I am back out.

"Just making sure he's clean!" she tells me as she turns to Pat. "Hardly know where to start! I've never done this before!" But she soon makes up her mind and begins to lap at Pat's cleavage then up over one tit to the nipple sucking it in hard and then repeating the actions on the other side making Pat breathe heavily. Angie's hand trails down Pat's body to her puss and she begins to play gently with her pussy lips before finding the girl's clitoris. One touch brings Pat off hard. Angie kisses her full on the mouth. Pat kisses back flinging her arms round Angie.

"Oh Angie! I needed that! I've been needing to come all day since Jude shaved me after tying me up - never told me she was going to do that." Pat sighs out, her breathing still not fully recovered.

"Feels kinda nice though doesn't it?" Angie comments, her fingers tracing over Pat's bare pussy lips. I think of Katie's comments about a bare pussy making for better girl to girl contact but say nothing - far too complicated to explain without admitting things I don't want to admit yet. "Well then, I'm the only one who's not come yet! What are you going to do about that Jim?" she demands before turning again to Pat. "Don't mind if I fuck him first, do you?"

Pat shakes her head. "Never seen anyone do it before - heard it, felt it even but never seen it unless you count Anne and Alice with that plastic thing!"

"Or done it?" Angie asks. Again a shake from Pat. "Don't know how you managed to avoid it with that body! Well lie back and watch and learn."

The show from the girls has ensured I'm rock hard again.

"I want to be on top OK?" Angie tells me so I lie down on the bed to allow her to take whatever position she chooses. She squats above me facing away, towards Pat, her anus winking at me. "Put his cock in my love hole Pat - help me fuck him." As Angie slowly lowers herself I feel Pat grasp my pole and slide it into place - not that Angie really needs any help, I think its just her way of entrapping Pat. Pat's hand doesn't move as Angie slides down me until her pussy collides with it. She starts to rise and fall on me seemingly content with the length she is being allowed to take as Pat begins to wank the base of my cock. Angie leans back over me to let me get her tits. I pinch her nipples drawing a squeal from her before settling to fondle them gently. The combination of hand and cunt on my dick soon has me near the edge. Sensing this and sensing I'm going to come too quickly for her makes Angie sit up and gently pull Pat's hand away. "I need all of him now" she says going right to the bottom and staying there pulling me back despite me being wrapped completely in the grip of her cunt. "Feel my pussy lips Pat. Look at them stretched round his cock! You can't imagine how good it feels." I feel a finger trace round the base of my cock just as Angie starts to fuck again. This time, free from the constraints of Pat's hand, I fuck hard back at her and soon Angie is coming in the same sort of staccato fashion of the other night. "He's good in the arse too!" she informs Pat quickly changing position slightly and taking me in her rear making me gasp. Angie leans back again. "Kiss my puss Pat! Feel my pussy lips after a good hard fuck!" Pat is on her in an instant and I feel her tongue and fingers begin to explore. "That's it! Don't be afraid to go deeper! Feel my puss!" I am unable to see what is going on but from the increasing pressure against my cock I reckon Pat is exploring deep into Angie's puss with her fingers until I hear "Yes! Yes! That's it. Now go deeper. Go as deep as you can!" I feel something which I can only guess to be Pat's fist slowly sliding into Angie's cunt constricting my cock in her rear so much that I am hardly able to continue pumping into her. Angie comes again just as I feel my balls tighten and a slow steady stream of semen escapes into her. I stroke through my orgasm, movement easier now with the fluid acting as a lubricant, and emerge from the other side looking for more but Angie has nothing left to give freeing herself from us both. "Wow! I love having both holes filled at the same time!" Looking back at what we had done together the other night I wonder if that was the first time or if she and Eileen had been up to things with dildos or whatever. I make a mental note to ask but don't get the chance as Angie continues "How did you like my cunt Pat? Loved having you there!"

"Loved the feel of you Angie. You were so tight round my wrist! But I wouldn't fancy it the other way round." Pat replies.

"How'd ya mean?" Angie puzzles.

"Well just as I was leaving, you know after Jude dumped on Alice? She stuck her fist right up Alice's rear and I mean really deep, as Anne continued to fuck her with the dildo. They were being really rough with her."

Angie shudders. "See what you mean. Don't fancy sticking my hand up anyone's arse, a finger's OK but no more. Although your cock doesn't seem to mind Jim?"

"No we don't - I like arse fucking" I agree "First time was an accident but both Shona and I had a great time and I think everyone else I've been with has too. But if I were never to fuck a girl in the arse again I wouldn't mind provided I was getting plenty of pussy!"

"Well then, one more for you to try." Pat answers lying back on the bed spreading her legs invitingly. I fall between her legs kissing and licking at her bare pubes. "Enough of that Jim. Let me feel what its all about!" Knowing if this afternoon had gone as Anne and Judith had planned they would have wanted me to force myself violently on Pat - rape her almost - I decide just the opposite is in order so I slowly make my way up the bed kissing at her skin as I go until my knob just naturally finds her entrance, the slight pressure as I continue to kiss my way up her body being enough to open it for the first time. A sigh comes from us both as my cock slowly, slowly travels up her tight tunnel until I come to rest on top of her marvellous tits, full length in her, and gently kiss her on the lips.

"Jude was right about one thing." I tell her.

"What was that?"

"Your tits do make a fantastic cushion." She laughs. The ice is broken and she begins to respond to me as I set up a very slow tender rhythm as I rise and fall above her propped on my arms so that I could enjoy the view of her tits heaving below me. She comes very quickly but stays with me as I increase the length of my strokes. We continue fucking gently for what seems like ages until she indicates to me to pick up the pace and soon we are going at it hammer and tong until she detonates into orgasm just as I climax hard in her filling her with my seed. Unable to hold myself above her any longer I collapse managing to roll us both onto our sides. She flings her arms around me.

"Oh Jim. Thank you for being SO gentle! I loved that, how'd you know to go so slow?"

"Well call me perverse but I did it because I reckon its exactly the opposite of how I'd have been forced to take you if Judith had had her way. And because I reckoned you'd like it like that."

This brings a smile to her face. "I loved the feel of your cock going so slowly deeper in me, pushing my cunt into me and then when I came - well its like no time I've ever come with a girl! And then when you kept going things just got better and better. I felt I was floating on air or something! And the earth definitely did move when I came the second time with you spurting away inside me."

"Let me lick that load from your cunt Pat." Angie offers. Pat looks at her for a moment before agreeing.

"But I want to thank Jim's cock properly too" she says bending to kiss at my limp cock. As Angie gets into place I pull her round so that I can lap at her cunt too, making a kind of triangle each of us lying on one side with their head buried in the genital region of another. Angie lifts her upper leg to give me the best angle on her as I feel my dick already begin to stir as Pat kisses and licks at both it and my balls. Angie is very wet, guess she enjoyed seeing Pat getting fucked for the first time and comes very quickly. Pat is not long behind her but although Pat has me licked up to working length I'm a long way from coming. I suggest she deep-throats me but she declines saying "I've got another hole that needs broken in first." as she gets up on all fours on the bed and pulls her bum cheeks apart. "Fuck my arse!" Jumping up behind her, I plonk a kiss on the rosebud. "Jim!"

I press my knob against her and with my cock well lubed from her tonguing and her crack soaked by her own juices when Angie ate her out it breaks into her sphincter fairly easily. I pause just inside her and no more. Characteristically I ask "OK?".

She nods "Just go easy!" Bravado evaporated!

"Easy it is. Just relax." I smile as I press slowly forward taking her by small degrees. Think I like the gentle type. Hell think I like most types with one notable exception so far! Eventually I am most of the way into her arse, I pull back most of the way and then press steadily forward again making her jump as I get all the way into her. "There, not too bad is it?" I ask.

"Feels good - just so big!" she agrees as Angie gets down underneath her kissing at her great melons as they hang underneath her, swaying, as I fuck back and forth in her arse. "Oh yeah! Don't stop Jim! Don't stop Angie! Don't anyone dare stop!" I'm certainly not about too with her back passage squeezing tightly on my cock. I don't intend to stop till I've come in her arse and I tell her so! "Come on then, come in my arse! Make me come with that huge cock of your! Come in my arse." Everything becomes too much! The sensations, the mantra, the sight of Angie underneath us sucking on Pat's giant tits and it is full time for me once more as my cock unloads again filling Pat's arse until mu cum is spurting out as I continue to fuck, she wailing in orgasm below me. I pull out sated as Angie goes to lick up my overflow from Pat's bum cheeks before we all stand up and laugh. Not sure why but we do. I pull the two girls to me.

"That's been a fantastic night. Just wish it could go on but I'm afraid it can't - my parents will be back soon." I say.

As they start to dress Angie tells me that she and Eileen are going to get a flat together - they'll each have their own room for the sake of appearances (their mothers mostly) but in reality they'll be living as a couple. Shona and I are welcome round anytime. - "I'm not totally averse to a good fuck you may have noticed - nor is Eileen. She's dumped John my the way - can't say as I blame her, he sounded lousy in bed."

"Am I included in the invite?" Pat asks.

"Sure! Bring any of your girlfriends Jim. Pat, you can stay with me tonight. My parents, and Eileen, are still away."

"Think I'd like that," Pat says. "Don't really want to see Jude just yet. Can I borrow your phone Jim - seem to have left mine at home." Given she'd arrived at the door in an overcoat and little else I'm not surprised she had left her phone behind!

"Its in the hall." I say leaving her to make whatever arrangements she needs with her parents.

"Not dressing Jim?" Angie asks me.

With echoes of Shona a couple of nights ago I say "No, I'm for a shower and then bed!"

"Might be a while getting to sleep myself tonight!" she muses as Pat comes back to say everything's OK, she can stay out.

"Whenever you get to sleep tonight" I tell her "I doubt it'll be by yourself!"

I see the girls out kissing each a passionate good night and have just cleared the shower for the third time today when the doorbell goes. I look out in trepidation, my parents are due back any moment, only to find it is them - they have forgotten a key! Good nights all round ensue before I beat a hasty retreat to my bedroom. It looks a tip at the best of time but tonight it looks exactly the part of what had just taken place in it - an orgy that is! The smell of musk is heavy in the air. I open a window and crawl to bed vowing to tidy up in the morning and hoping no one will notice the smell!

 ----

Please leave feedback - there is no point in me writing if no one is reading - and hopefully enjoying. BD

Spin the Bottle, Parts 1 - 4

mkirros on Taboo Stories

Part 1


“What do you mean I have to take Jennifer with me?” For 18-year-old Jason Marshall, the thought of taking his 14-year-old sister along to a Friday night party was a disaster.


“We're going out for the night, and Jenny's not ready to stay here that long by herself. You can either stay her with her, or take her along to the party.” The tone of voice Jason's father used made it clear that there wasn't going to be any debate about it.


“Oh, all right. Sis!” he yelled down the hallway. “I

Read More
f you're going with me, hurry up! We've got to pick up Wendy on the way.” Wendy was Jason's girlfriend, a 16-year-old with long brown hair, green eyes, and a tight little body. Jason had been hoping he was going to see some of the body tonight, but if Jennifer was going along to the party, chances were looking pretty slim.


Jennifer came bouncing down the hallway, ready to go, in low-cut jeans and a tank top, and bubbly. Jenny was a pretty little thing, with wavy, shoulder-length blond hair and blue eyes, but she was painfully shy and didn't have many friends of her own. Going to a party with her brother would give her a chance to actually talk to some other people for a change. “Okay, big brother, I'm ready. Let's go have some fun.”


They jumped into Jason's Ford Ranger and headed for Wendy's house. Wendy wasn't going to be happy when she saw Jennifer. The party they were going to was being put on by one of the kids in Wendy's class, and just about everyone there would be Wendy's age, which meant they were terribly immature as far as Wendy was concerned. She was used to hanging out with Jason's friends, two years older. The main reason they were going to the party was to have an excuse to get out of the house, and they had planned to spend as much time hiding out from the kids at the party as possible. That wasn't going to happen with Jennifer tagging along.


Wendy had been been watching out the window for Jason, and when she saw him drive up she hollered to her mother that she was leaving and headed out the door and down the steps. When she saw Jennifer sitting in the pickup with Jason, she was pissed. “What's she doing here? We're supposed to be going to a party, not babysitting!”


“Sorry, baby,” Jason replied. “I'm not any happier about it than you are. My parents wouldn't let me go unless I took her along.”


“God, guys, I'm right here,” Jennifer whined. “Don't talk about me like I don't even exist.”


“Jeez, all right, sis, just don't hang all over us tonight, OK. Try to find somebody to hang out with and leave us alone.” Jason didn't really think that would happen, he figured he'd be stuck with his sister all night.


*****


When they got to the party, Jason found out he had something else to worry about. David, the kid who was throwing the party, obviously thought he was some sort of player, and wasted no time in showing and interest in both Wendy and Jennifer. Jason wasn't about to put up with any of that shit. Wendy was his girlfriend, and everybody else had better stay away. As for Jennifer, she might be a pain in the ass, but she was his little sister, and any guy that wanted to get anywhere near her would have to go through Jason. Jason tried to take his mind off that by admiring the way Wendy looked tonight. She was a fairly small girl, though bigger than Jenny, about 5'4”, with long, dark hair and green eyes. She had big boobs for a girl her size, along with a slim waist and hips, and a really tight little ass. She was dressed to show it off tonight, wearing a loose top that only came halfway down her belly, and tight, low-cut jeans. The way Wendy was dressed didn't help Jason's mood any when he saw David looking at her.


While Jason was worrying about whether he'd have to teach somebody a lesson, Wendy was thinking about something else entirely. On the ride to the party, she'd be crammed up against Jason's whiny little sister in the seat of Jason's pickup, which was so small there was barely room for the three of them. At first, Wendy had been pissed, but after a couple of minutes, she noticed that she enjoyed having Jennifer pressed up against her. Wendy had always secretly wondered what it would be like to fuck another girl, and as she felt the warmth of the little blond next to her, she thought it might be time to find out.


Jennifer wasn't worried about much of anything except whether she'd be able to make it through the party without feeling so out of place that she started to cry.


*****


After about half an hour of sheer torture for Jason, things got even worse. Someone piped up with, “Let's play Spin the Bottle.” Jason leaned over to Wendy, who was curled up against on the couch and said, “They're not really going to play that lame-o kids game, are they?” Wendy gave him an evil grin and snickered, “Remember, they're not all as experienced as we are. Maybe the rest of them can pick up some pointers from us!”


David seemed to think Spin the Bottle was a great idea. He immediately started rounding people up. “Everybody sit in a circle on the floor. I'll go find a bottle and we'll get started. Come on, quit wasting time!”


As the kids started to arrange themselves on the floor, a boy named Steve said, “Hey, what happens if a guy spins the bottle and it points to another guy?”


David replied, “Just use the girl it's pointed closest to.”


Jason felt like stirring things up. "What if the two guys want to kiss each other?" That stirred things up all right. David mockingly said, "Yeah, right, like that's gonna happen," and then everyone decided to talk at once. Jason jumped in again with "What about two girls? What if they want to kiss each other?" That was a different story. "Well, I think they should be able to if they want to," said David, salivating at the thought of seeing two girls kissing. Most of the guys seemed to agree, while Wendy started wondering if Jason had been reading her mind.


Finally, Jason offered, "Why don't we just say if it's two guys or two girls, they get to decide if they want to or not. If both of 'em want to then they do, otherwise, no."


"But if it's a guy and a girl they have to, right?" That was David, of course. Probably worried none of the girls would kiss him otherwise, thought Jason.


"Wouldn't be much point to the game otherwise," replied Jason.


Everyone mumbled assent. The circle of people on the floor was complete. Wendy thought "Jeez, it's like a seance or something." David was the last to sit, holding the bottle, and, naturally, decided that he should go first. He spun the bottle so hard it almost flew out of the circle, but it eventually wound up pointed at a little redhead named Amber. They leaned across the circle and kissed. It was pretty obvious to Jason that neither one of them had much experience at it. Jason decided that David was likely all talk and no action when it came to girls, which didn't exactly surprise him much. After a couple of other turns, a fairly dweebie looking guy named Freddy spun the bottle, and it pointed to Jennifer. She squirmed a little bit; she wasn't about to admit that she'd never kissed anybody and had pretty much no idea of what she was supposed to do. Freddy leaned over and pressed his mouth against Jenny's. She thought it didn't seem like much at first. Then she felt Freddy's tongue start to worm it's way between her lips. Jenny wasn't sure whether to play along or scream. She opened her mouth slight, and let Freddy slip his tongue in. As the foreign object roamed through her mouth, sliding over her teeth, and gums, and the roof of her mouth, Jenny let her tongue slide over Freddy's, tasting him. After a few seconds, Freddy drove his tongue as far back in her mouth as it would go, then pulled his tongue back and broke off the kiss with a loud smack. "Not bad," Jennifer thought, "but not as great as everybody makes it out to be." She wasn't sure if it was her, or Freddy, or just being new to kissing, but something seemed to be missing.


The turns went around the circle. Wendy had to kiss David, which left her singularly unimpressed, his tongue flopping in her mouth like a dying fish, although it just about killed him. Jason got to kiss a very hot little redhead named Shannon. He was surprised to find that she was very good, and Shannon thought Jason was great, while Wendy silently steamed over how much Jason appeared to enjoy it. Jenny wound up kissing a couple of other guys, and found both of them to be in the same undistinguished category as Freddy.


Now it was Wendy's turn. She spun, and the bottle pointed directly at Jennifer. That caused a chorus of "Yeah, do it," from the guys. No girls had kissed each other yet, and every boy in the place was waiting for it to happen. Wendy stared hard at Jennifer and said, "Do you want to? I'm willing if you are." Wendy thought this was the chance of a lifetime.


Jennifer swallowed hard, and thought for a few seconds, but finally said softly, "Sure. OK, let's do it."


Jason, who was between them on the floor, leaned back so they could reach each other. Wendy put her hand on the back of Jennifer's head and pulled the younger girl toward her, gently pressing her lips against Jenny's. As soon as Jenny felt Wendy's mouth on hers, she knew this kiss would be different. Instead of just jamming her tongue into Jenny's mouth and wiggling it around, as the boys had done, Wendy slowly licked Jenny's lips, caressing them with her tongue. When Wendy's tongue entered Jennifer's mouth it probed with a purpose, learning the contours of Jenny's teeth, gums, the roof of her mouth. Jennifer felt a stirring in her belly that was new, exciting, and more than a little scary. Wendy, meanwhile, could feel the heat rising between her legs, as kissing her boyfriend's little sister caused her pussy to throb and begin to moisten her panties. When Wendy felt Jenny's tongue start to move against hers, she pulled her tongue back, teasing Jenny into letting her own tongue follow, back, over her lips, then over Wendy's, and into Wendy's mouth. Jenny let her tongue investigate Wendy's mouth, as Wendy sucked lightly, causing Jenny to breath a little heavier. It was all over in a few seconds, although it seemed to the girls that it went on for hours. When they broke apart, they both became aware that the boys had been cheering them on lewdly as they kissed, causing both to blush.


Jason had felt his cock start to harden as soon as Wendy's mouth had touched Jennifer's. It was the first time he'd ever seen two girls kiss in real life, and it was even hotter than seeing it in pictures or a porno movie. The fact that the two were his girlfriend and sister just made his dick rise that much faster. Now it was his turn to spin. The bottle pointed to Shannon, the same redhead he had kissed before. Shannon got real treat thanks to Jason being so fired up after watching Wendy and Jenny. Jason kissed her so intensely that Shannon felt lightheaded when they were done. Wendy had been angry enough about the way Jason had kissed Shannon the first time - now she was really pissed.


Jason passed the bottle to Jennifer. She spun and the bottle pointed straight at Jason.


"Uh, I don't know if I can do that," said Jenny nervously.


"Oh come on, sis, what can it hurt?" Jason was so horny now he was ready for just about anything. Without waiting for Jenny to answer, he pulled her to him, and planted his mouth on hers. To Jason's surprise, when he stuck his tongue in his sister's mouth, his cock got even harder. Meanwhile, Jennifer, still feeling kind of funny after kissing Wendy, found that kissing her brother was just as good. Jason was rougher than Wendy had been, but not so rough that it turned her off, and she felt the same tingle in her belly that she had with Wendy. Wendy watched, thinking that those two were kissing a little more passionately than a brother and sister should


After Jason and Jennifer finished the bottle continued around the circle, but after a couple of more turns the game started to break up. People were wandering off to continue the kissing more privately and maybe add a little something to it. Jason thought that was a great idea, and was ready to drag Wendy off into a corner, when his bad luck for the evening continued.


"Dude, I can score some righteous weed, but I need a ride. You've got a car here, right?" It was Freddy, the dorky little guy who'd been the first one to kiss Jennifer. Why Jason remembered that, and why it annoyed him so much, he wasn't sure.


"Yeah, I guess I can give you a ride. This won't take too long, will it?"


"No, it's not far from here. Thanks, dude, I'll get my stuff!"


Jason explained to Wendy and Jennifer what was going on, and disappeared into the night with Freddy. Wendy and Jennifer wandered over to a vacant couch and sat down.


"So, how did like Spin the Bottle?" Wendy asked with a chuckle.


"It was OK," Jennifer replied, "But there was something weird."


"What was that?"


Jennifer looked nervous or embarrassed. "Well, I like kissing, but I liked kissing you and Jason the best. My brother and his girlfriend. Pretty sick, right?"


Wendy giggled. "Maybe we're just better at it. We've done it more than the rest of these kids."


"Yeah, maybe that's it."


Wendy decided to take a chance. "Do you want to kiss me again?"


"You mean, now, with no game or anything?"


"Yeah."


"But, everybody'll look at us and say things like they did when we kissed before."


"I doubt it. Everybody's too busy making out to pay any attention to anybody else."


Jenny looked around. Wendy was right, pretty much everybody was busy, and the lights had been turned down low enough that it was hard to see anything anyway.


When Jennifer turned back to Wendy, Wendy reached one hand up to cradle Jenny's head, pulled it toward her, and began kissing her. The two leaned against the back of the couch as their tongues entertained each other, and both had begun breathing more heavily. Jennifer wasn't quite sure what she was feeling, but that strange flutter in her belly was back. Wendy was absolutely sure what she was feeling - she was horny as hell.


Wendy reached out with one hand and cupped it over Jenny's breast, squeezing lightly. Jenny gasped, broke off their kiss and whispered hoarsely, "Wendy, you can't do that!"


"Why not?"


"We're both girls!"


"So? Did it feel good?"


"Well, yeah..."


"Then shut up and kiss me again!"


Their lips met, and this time when Wendy's hand closed on Jennifer's breast, Jenny simply moaned softly into Wendy's mouth. After massaging Jenny's breast for a few seconds, Wendy moved her hand down between the younger girl's legs, pressing her fingers against the crotch of Jenny's jeans.


Jennifer had never been touched there. Ever. By anyone. Not even by herself. She broke off the kiss with Wendy and leaned her head back against the couch, breathing heavily. The fluttering in her belly was more of a burning and itching, now, and was concentrated around Wendy's hand. Wendy rubbed her hand up and down along the crotch of Jenny's pants, and Jennifer instinctively thrust her pelvis out against Wendy.


Wendy could feel the heat rising in Jennifer through her jeans. She lowered her face to Jenny's throat, kissing, licking, then nipping lightly with her teeth, and was rewarded with a sharp gasp, followed by a low moan. Wendy wasn't sure how far Jenny would let her go, but she wanted to find out, and she wasn't going to be able to do it on the couch with everyone else around, even with the lights turned down.


Wendy suddenly stood up, grabbed Jennifer's hand and pulled her to feet, and said, "Come with me."


"Where are we going?"


"To look for something." One of Wendy's friends had told her that once during a party at David's house, David had taken her off to a small bathroom in the back of the house for a make-out session. It was in a place where nobody was likely to wander by. Wendy was hoping to find it, and sure enough, after a couple of minutes of wandering, there it was. Very small, a toilet and sink and just enough room for a couple of people, but that was all Wendy needed, and it had a lock on the door.


Wendy dragged Jenny inside, locked the door, and planted another big kiss on Jennifer's lips, at the same time putting her hand back between the younger girl's legs. Wendy resumed rubbing along the crotch of Jennifer's jeans, and Jenny again moved her pelvis in rhythm with Wendy's hand. Now, though, with some privacy, Jenny was moaning into Wendy's mouth and breathing heavily, which made Wendy even hornier.


Jennifer wasn't sure what was going to come next, but when Wendy took her hand away from Jenny's pelvis, Jenny moaned, "Oh, god, Wendy, don't stop!"


"Don't worry, I'm not going to stop."


Jenny felt Wendy's hand on the waistband of her jeans, unbuttoning them, then unzipping. When she had Jenny's jeans open, she said, "Now you do mine." Jenny hesitantly moved her hands to Wendy's jeans, opening them the way Wendy had opened hers.


"Now, you do to me what I do to you," Wendy whispered, "and we'll both have plenty of fun."


Jenny gasped as Wendy's fingers slid along her belly, under the waistband of her panties, and brushed through Jenny's light blond pubic hair. Wendy's fingers reached Jenny's pussy lips, and began to rub her again, but this time with no clothes in the way. "Aaaahhhh...Oh, wow!" Jenny could hardly believe the feelings running through her body, as she felt the muscles in her lower belly twitch at Wendy's touch.


Wendy's other hand wrapped around Jenny's wrist and guided her hand to Wendy's lower belly. Jenny hesitated as her fingers touched Wendy's bare skin. Wendy looked into Jenny's eyes and moaned, "Put your hand in my pants. Please!" Jenny slipped her hand inside Wendy's jeans, and felt Wendy's pubic hair; Jenny was surprised to find out that Wendy wasn't wearing any panties. Jenny's fingers moved to Wendy's pussy lips, and Jenny could feel the moisture starting to seep out of Wendy's cunt.


When Wendy felt Jenny's fingers starting to caress her pussy, she curled her middle finger and slipped just the tip between Jenny's pussy lips and up inside her. At the feeling of having her cunt penetrated for the first time, Jenny's hips bucked forward against Wendy's hand, driving the older girl's finger deeper into Jenny's pussy.


"Aaaahhhh. Shit, that feels good!"


"Yeah, now make me feel good."


Jenny pushed her fingertip up against the opening of Wendy's pussy. She was a little awkward, never having done anything like this before, but eventually she wiggled her finger enough to get it to slide into Wendy's pussy. "Mmmm, baby," Wendy moaned as she shoved her pelvis against Jenny's hand.


Wendy began to pump her finger in and out of Jennifer's pussy, pulling back and flicking her fingertip over Jenny's clit, then driving her finger back in again. This time she didn't have to tell Jenny to follow her lead; the younger girl began finger-fucking her in time with Wendy's own thrusts. Jenny was moaning softly, obviously enjoying her first sexual experience. Wendy, meanwhile, was looking for a release of the sexual tension she'd been feeling all night. She couldn't believe now that she'd been pissed off when she saw that Jason had his little sister with him. Wendy plunged her finger into Jenny's pussy up to the hilt and held it there, at the same time humping wildly against Jenny's hand.


"Faster," she whispered to Jenny, "and harder!" Wendy felt the muscles in her belly tense. "Oh fuck!" She let out her breath in an explosive gasp, her body shook, and she clutched at Jenny, pulling her lover against her and leaning on the younger girl for support.


"Wendy, are you OK?" Jenny looked scared.


"Oh, yeah, I'm OK. You just made me cum!" It wasn't the most intense orgasm she'd ever had, but it was really good, and she was pretty sure things would only get better with Jenny, and other girls, in the future.


Wendy reached down an coaxed Jenny's hand out of her pants. Jenny's middle finger was soaked with Wendy's pussy juice. Wendy lifted it up in front of the 14-year-old's face. "Lick it and see how I taste," Wendy encouraged Jenny.


Jennifer licked one side of her finger, then took it into her mouth and sucked it like a popsicle; or maybe like something else, Wendy thought. This girl was going to be something when she got some experience.


"Interesting," Jenny purred. "Different, but nice." She'd never tasted anything like it; musky, but also slightly sweet. She definitely wanted to taste more.


Wendy's finger was still inside Jennifer, and now Wendy began to move it in and out again. "Mmmm, oooohhhh." Jenny could concentrate on how her own belly felt now, she didn't have to worry about what her finger was doing inside Wendy. She could also still smell and tasted Wendy's juice from her finger, and it aroused her even more. Jenny felt her hips moving against Wendy's hand as the older finger-fucked her. Jenny's body was on fire. Wendy had backed her up against the wall, and began massaging Jenny's breasts with her other hand, at the same time licking and sucking her throat. Each time Wendy's finger moved in and out of Jenny's cunt it scraped across her clit, sending a lightning bolt through Jenny's belly and up her spine. Jenny's body was becoming tense, and she needed a release. As if reading her mind, Wendy suddenly took her clit between her thumb and finger and pinched it hard.


"YES! YES! YES!" As her first orgasm surged through her, Jenny panted and gasped; her body shook, and her mind swirled. "Aaaahhhh. Aaaahhhh, god."


As Wendy withdrew her hand from Jenny's jeans, the two kissed deeply. Then Wendy slipped her finger into her mouth and sucked Jennifer's juices off. It was the first time she'd tasted pussy juice other than her own. Jenny tasted slightly sweeter and somehow not as strong as Wendy herself.


The two girls leaned against each other for a couple of minutes, worn out from their adventure, until Wendy said, "We better get back out there. We don't want Jason to wonder where we are when he gets back!"


*****

Part 2


It had taken longer than expected for Freddy to take care of his dope deal, and by the time Jason got back to the party it was getting a little late. The time hadn't been all wasted, though. While Jason was waiting for Freddy to take care of business, his cell phone had rung. It was his father, with bad news, or, from Jason's viewpoint, good news. Jason and Jennifer's parents were also at a party, about an hour's drive north. They'd been drinking, and the weather in that area had turned really nasty, so their hosts had invited them to spend the night. They'd accepted in the interest of safety.


"So you and Jenny will have to be home alone tonight, son. Think you'll be all right?"


"Yeah, we'll manage somehow, dad. Don't worry about us." God, his father was such a dork! Jason wondered if he'd been that way as a teenager, too, or if you just got more stupid about things like that as you got older.


When Jason and Freddy got back to the party, everyone who was still there was paired up and making out, except for Wendy and Jennifer, who were sitting on the couch talking. Freddy thought it might be his lucky day, since Jenny wasn't busy with anyone.


"Hey, why don't we all go get high!"


"Sorry, dude," Jason said. I got a call from my dad while you were finishing up your deal. Something came up, and we've got to go now."


As they headed out to the car, Jennifer, worried, asked, "What happened? Why do we have to leave?"


"What happened is that mom and dad aren't coming home tonight, and we've got the house all to ourselves." Turning to Wendy, Jason added, "How late can you stay out, baby?"


"Late enough," she answered with a grin.


"What am I supposed to do while you two are doing... whatever it is you do?" asked a very perturbed Jennifer after they had piled into Jason's pickup.


"Hell, I don't know, you'll think of something." Jason just wanted a piece of Wendy's ass and really didn't care much about what happened to his sister. "You can watch for all I care?"


Jason had said it to shut Jennifer up, so her was startled when she said, "Really? You'd let me do that?"


Startled didn't even cover when his girlfriend added, "Cool Jason, that would be so hot! I'm getting wet just thinking about it!"


Shit, Jason thought to himself, guess I put my foot in that one. As the thought percolated through his mind, though , he found that it was starting to make him feel hornier, too. Damn, what kind of sick pervert are you?


When they got back to the house, all three of them headed to Jason's bedroom This would be a treat for Wendy. They didn't get to be on a bed very often; they had to settle for whatever they could get. In the car. In the hot tub when nobody was watching. A couple of times even at school. Wendy wanted to be able to do it like normal people once in a while. Jason, on the other hand, didn't much care.


In the bedroom, Jason pulled Wendy to him. "Come here, baby, I'm ready for some action!" He began kissing her, hard. They hadn't kissed each other all night, and Jason was ready for his girlfriend's tongue instead of his sister's, or that little redhead Shannon's. Wendy took his tongue deep into her mouth, and her hands immediately went to his jeans and began unbuttoning and unzipping them. Jason thought Wendy was unusually horny tonight, even for a girl who normally had a pretty strong sex drive. Maybe the game at the party had turned her on.


They broke off the kiss and pulled off each other's tops. Jason pressed his mouth back against Wendy's, this time sucking Wendy's tongue into his mouth, and reached around her to unfasten her bra. Jason grunted as Wendy finished freeing his dick from his pants and began to stroke it with fingers. She reached under to cup his balls, then slid her hand up, wrapping her fingers around his cock and stroking all the way to the head.


Jason wormed his hand down into Wendy's jeans. She wasn't wearing panties, which didn't surprise him much. What did surprise him was how wet she already was. She must have enjoyed Spin the Bottle more than she wanted to admit. He curled his finger up inside her and started stroking.


Jenny was following along with what her brother and his girlfriend were doing. When Jason and Wendy had taken off each other's tops, Jenny whipped her tank top off over her head and dropped it on the floor, where it was quickly joined by her bra. She moved her hands to her breasts, and started massaging, feeling a thrill shoot through her as she did. Now she had her jeans open, and was doing to herself with her fingers what she and Wendy had done to each other earlier. She couldn't believe she was doing this, and getting to look at a cock besides. Yeah, it was her brother's, but it was still a dick, the first she'd ever seen. And, brother or not, it looked pretty good to her. She was watching everything Wendy did, looking for pointers. Who knows, maybe someday she'd be able to do something like that with a boy.


Wendy dropped Jason's cock, leaving it pointing at her, backed away from him slightly, and started taking off her jeans. When she was done, she dropped to her knees in front of Jason and pulled down his jeans and underwear, dropping them in a pile on the floor when she was done. She glanced over and saw that Jennifer, still watching them, was stripping off her jeans and panties as well, leaving all three naked.


Wendy took Jason's dick in her hand again, and moved her face close.


Jason moaned, "Yeah, honey, suck my cock!" He always wanted her to put it in her mouth, but she wouldn't do it very often.


Wendy hesitated, then looked over at Jenny with a wicked grin on her face. "Wanna help?"


Jenny was shocked. The thought of putting a guy's dick in her mouth was weird enough, but this was her brother. She wasn't sure what to say.


If his sister was shocked, Jason was devastated. "Are you crazy?" he practically shouted at Wendy. "That's my sister. She can't do that."


"You want your cock sucked, or not?" was all Wendy replied.


Jason groaned. He was trapped.


Wendy reached up, grabbed Jennifer by the wrist and pulled her down onto the floor next to her. Now both girls were kneeling in front of Jason's stiff prick.


"Just watch what I do, and then you'll get a chance to do it too," Wendy instructed Jennifer. Wendy was a great cocksucker, and she actually enjoyed doing it, but she wouldn't give it to Jason any time he wanted it. That way, she could hold it over him when she wanted to - like now.


Jenny watched, her mouth hanging open, as Wendy held Jason's cock straight up in the air, leaned her face against it, and stuck her tongue out against the base just above his balls. Wendy licked up along the shaft, all the way up until she grazed her tongue over the pee-hole in the tip of Jason's cock. Then she wrapped her lips around just the head of his cock and sucked lightly on it before pulling her head back.


"Your turn," she said to Jennifer. "Hold it with your hand like this."


Jenny reached her hand over and took hold of her brother's cock. She held it up, and leaned in, mimicking Wendy's movements. When her tongue touched the base of Jason's cock, she felt him twitch. She licked up his cock as Wendy had done. He tasted salty and gamy, not at all like her finger after it had been in Wendy's pussy. Jason twitched again when Jenny's tongue reached the bottom of his cockhead, and groaned when the tip of her tongue opened his pee-hole. Jenny opened her mouth and took the head of her brother's cock in. It was just for a second before she let it go, but she got the full taste of him in her mouth, and thought about what it would be like to have his cock fill up her mouth; or fill her up somewhere else.


Jason was just about going wild. As his little sister handled his cock he was torn between incredible guilt and the most intense sexual arousal he'd ever felt. Before today he'd never thought of Jennifer in a sexual way. Now he might never be able to think about her any other way.


Wendy took Jason's cock back from Jenny, smiling as she said, "OK, next lesson! Watch close!"


Wendy licked up the length of Jason's cock again, but this time when she reached the top, she opened her mouth and took a couple of inches of his dick in, then bobbed her head up and down on it a few times, taking a little more into her mouth with each stroke. After half-a-dozen or so strokes, Wendy let Jason's cock pop out of her mouth, and turned to Jennifer again.


"Don't forget to lick it with your tongue while you suck," Wendy advised Jenny as she handed Jason's dick back to her.


Jennifer again did as Wendy had showed her. As she began to take more than just the head of his cock into her mouth, Jenny found she had to open her jaw as far as she could. She'd never tried putting anything that big into her mouth before. As Jason's cock slid past her lips, the curled her tongue around the bottom of it. She felt her teeth scraping along his skin, and the head of his cock bumped against the roof of her mouth. It felt hard and smooth, and she was incredibly turned on. How much of her excitement was because it was her brother she was sucking, she wasn't sure. She took in as much as she could without gagging, maybe a couple of inches, then pulled her head back, started down again.


Jason's mind had pretty much stopped functioning by now. He knew it was his little sister sucking his cock, but he didn't care anymore. All he cared about now was that he had two hot girls paying sexual attention to him, and he was having the time of his life.


Wendy watched Jennifer's head move up and down on Jason's cock a few times, then reached in and pulled Jenny back.


"Keep that up and he's going to cum in somebody's mouth instead of where I want it," Wendy said. "Come on, Jenny, time to get you up on the bed."


Jennifer wasn't sure what Wendy was talking about, but she found out soon enough, as Wendy half picked Jenny up, stretched her out on Jason's bed, then scooted her up so her shoulders were propped against the headboard. Wendy pushed Jenny's legs apart, knelt in front of her, and lowered her face in between the younger girl's legs. This is what Wendy had wanted since she'd kissed Jennifer during the game, and she wasn't going to wait any more. Wendy spread Jenny's pussy lips apart, and pressed her mouth against the opening, shoving her tongue out so that pushed inside Jenny. Jenny's taste and smell made Wendy practically go wild. She purred as she started lapping at the girls' cunt.


Jennifer moaned when Wendy's tongue entered her. It was a different feeling than having a finger there. The tongue was wet and moved around more against her pussy lips Jenny's pelvis jerked and her back arched up off the bed when the tongue hit her clit.


Jason had simply stared, open-mouthed, when his girlfriend went down on his sister. It was like every teenage boy's dream come true. After a minute or so of watching, listening to his sister moan and looking at Wendy's ass sticking up in the air, it was time to join in. Jason hopped up onto the bed behind Wendy, and rammed his cock into to the hilt in one motion. Jason groaned, knowing he was finally going to be able to finish something. Wendy gasped as he pushed into her, and the force of his thrust shoved her face away from Jenny's pussy and up onto her belly. Jenny squealed, as Wendy's teeth scraped over the fourteen-year-old's clit as she was forced up.


Jason couldn't hold anything back now. He simply started hammering into Wendy's pussy as hard and fast as he could. Wendy was breathing heavily now, and Jason's thrusts made it impossible to keep her mouth on Jenny's pussy. Instead, Wendy slid her middle finger into Jenny, then quickly added her index finger. Wendy gasped, "Shit, Jason, fuck me harder!" and amazingly, he managed to do just that.


Jennifer's hips thrashed against Wendy's hand, Wendy's two fingers opening her farther, and reaching deeper into her, than anything she'd felt yet. Then she felt Wendy's thumb rub against her clit, and she lost it completely. Jenny's back arched up off the bed, then she fell back and jerked her shoulders up. She dug her hands into the bed as she felt spasms run through her pussy, then spread in waves through the rest of her body.


"Aaaahhhh! Wendy, I'm cumming again! So...good..." Jennifer collapsed back on the bed, her breathing heavy.


Wendy pushed herself up on her hands and looked down at Jenny as Jason kept fucking her. She could feel her own orgasm getting close.


"Oh...god...Jason...yeah I love being fucked hard! Oh, fuck, I'm going to cum! Unh...Unh...Unh... AAAAHHHH YESSSSS!" The sixteen-year-old dissolved in the most shattering orgasm of her young life. Her entire body vibrated and her breath left her in a wild explosion. She fell forward on top of Jennifer, unable to move.


When Wendy fell forward, Jason's body followed hers, his cock still inside her. He'd held off as long as he could, but now, after watching his sister and girlfriend both cum, there was nothing more he could do. As he flopped onto Wendy's back, his load forced it way through his cock and out into Wendy's dripping pussy. As he finished spurting, and his cock began to shrink and soften, he rolled off the girls onto his back on the bed.


All three lay still for a few minutes. Then Wendy said, "Come on Jenny, we've got work to do. No way is he going to get away with just once tonight!"


*****

Part 3


With Wendy leading the way again, the two girls started working on Jason's cock, intent on getting it to perform at least once more. Jason was still on his back on the bed. Wendy started licking and sucking him, then, when Jennifer joined in, Wendy moved farther down and began sucking on his balls. Jason was in heaven, his cock in his sister's mouth while his girlfriend licked and sucked his balls. Jennifer could feel her brother's cock hardening as lenthening as she sucked it. She wondered if she'd be able to get more of into her mouth this time once it was fully erect.


Wendy decided to leave the brother and sister to themselves and see what would develop. After giving Jason's balls a final good licking, she moved off the bed and onto a chair that sat next to it. She had a fine view of what was happening on the bed as she began some self-exploration. Wendy put her feet up on the seat of the chair, pulling her knees up toward her shoulders, spreading her thighs apart. She laid one hand along the opening of her pussy and began rubbing up and down, sliding her fingers and palm over her crotch. After a few strokes, as she moved her hand down toward the seat of the chair, the tip of her middle finger slid between her ass cheeks and bumped against the ring of her anus. Wendy let out a small gasp as a thrill ran through her body. She moved her hand back up, and when it went down again she applied slightly more pressure to her anus with her finger, this time stopping just short of allowing the finger to penetrate her. As she played with herself, she noticed that things were getting more interesting on the bed.


Jason's cock was now fully erect, Jennifer was taking more of it into her mouth than she had before. At one point she let it move far enough into her mouth that she could feel the head bump against the back of her throat. She gagged slightly, and her throat closed around the tip of Jason's cock, causing him to grunt.


When he felt Jenny's throat squeeze the head of his cock, Jason knew he had to have more. He pulled his sister's head away from his cock and rolled up onto his knees on the bed. Jason grabbed Jennifer by her shoulders and pushed her down onto the bed, on her back, and knelt above her. Jason took his cock in his hand, guided it between his sister's legs, and wedged the head in between the lips of her pussy... and stopped, frozen by guilt, suddenly realizing what it was he was about to do.


Jenny felt a thrill of combined fear and excitement race through her when Jason threw her down on the bed. She was shaking with anticipation when she felt the head of his cock move between the lips of her cunt. It was so much thicker than anything else she'd ever felt there! But then he stopped. Jenny looked up at him and saw the hesitation on his face. She had to do something to get him to continue.


"Jason, do it to me! I want you to... to fuck me!" It was the first time she'd ever used that word out loud. And that was all it took. Jason bucked his hips forward and drove his cock into his sister's pussy, not stopping until he bottomed out as the tip of his cock hit her cervix.


Jennifer whimpered as she felt Jason's cock sink into her. It was not only thicker, but much longer than anything else that penetrated her that night, reaching much deeper inside her. She felt intense pressure inside her belly as the walls of her pussy were pushed apart. A stab of pain made her wince and mewl, but it wasn't nearly as bad as she expected, and lasted only seconds. Then she didn't think about it at all, as Jason's cock opened her up all the way inside. She moaned as she felt his dick bump up against her cervix, completely filling her.


"God, Jason, it feels so good! Fuck me, please!"


Wendy got hotter and hotter as she watched the two incestuous teenagers. She spread her legs farther apart on the chair, and dipped two fingers of her right hand into her dripping pussy. She slid them in as deep as she could, pulled them back out and lifted them to her mouth, then sucked her juices off. As her right hand drifted back to her pussy, she moved her left hand under her ass, so she was sitting on it, then curled her middle finger up between her ass cheeks and began playing with the opening of her anus again. This time, though, just pressing her finger against her anal ring wasn't enough. As her right hand fucked her cunt, she shoved up hard with the middle finger of her left hand, pushing it inside her ass. She gasped as she felt her butt being violated for the first time. She inserted her finger as far inside as it would go, then began to experiment with it. She wiggled it around inside her ass, then curled it up, and tested the way different motions made her feel, the entire time pumping the fingers of her other hand in and out of her pussy. Wendy found that the sensations she received by having a finger in her ass were different from anything she felt from having her pussy penetrated, and having her ass filled made the experience more intense. She was soon finger-fucking both holes furiously.


When Jason heard his sister begging him to fuck her, he lost all restraint. He was now ramming her as hard as he ever had Wendy, using short, hard strokes. His pelvis was slamming against Jenny's clit and his balls slapped against her ass with every stroke. If he hadn't come once already he'd probably have blow his load as soon as he stuck his cock into his sister. but with one already behind him, he was able to keep going for a while.


Jennifer couldn't believe how it felt to have her pussy filled up and stretched. Having her brother be the one fucking her just made it that much more exciting. The walls of her cunt squeezed together as Jason pulled back, then split apart again as he plowed into her. She thrust her pelvis up at him with each stroke, moaning as he banged against her clit. She had no control left over her body. She leaned her head back, breathing heavily through her mouth, and closed her eyes, giving way to the shivers running through her as her brother ravished her. As her breathing grew more ragged, she could feel the climax approaching.


"Oh god, Jason! Oh fuck! Unh, yes, AAAAHHHH!" Jennifer's back arched up off the bed, then slammed back down. She wrapped her arms around Jason and clawed at his back, her nails leaving marks. Jenny locked her legs around Jason's hips, pulling him tighter against her. Her body vibrated, and her chest heaved with the force of her breathing.


Jason had been thinking that he should pull out of Jennifer before he shot his load inside her, since he was pretty sure she wasn't on the pill, but when Jenny's orgasm hit that was no longer an option. The pain of his sister's fingernails digging into his back drove him on, then her legs trapped him inside her. Feeling her pussy squeeze his cock as she came was the last straw. As he forced himself as deep inside Jennifer as possible, his cum boiled up out of his balls and through his cock, and he started squirting it inside his sister's pussy.


Jennifer felt her brother's cum stream out of him and into her, squeezing around his cock to coat the walls of her pussy, seeping through her cervix into her womb. She lay back, completely satisfied, with Jason sprawled on top of her. Jenny felt Jason's cock shrink and begin to slip out of her, and could feel his semen leaking out of her pussy onto the bed.


Wendy had brought herself to the edge of another massive orgasm with her two-hole masturbation, then slowed down. She didn't want to miss anything that was happening on the bed because she was too busy cumming herself. Now, as she watched her boyfriend and his sister finish their incestuous coupling, it was time. Wendy pumped the two fingers of her right hand furiously in and out of her pussy, while rubbing her thumb against her clit. At the same time she finger-fucked her ass hard and fast with her other hand.


"Unnnnhhhhh! Aaaahhhh!" She let out an explosive breath, and her body shook so hard she nearly slid off the chair. "Oh, fuck, yes!" She slumped back against the chair, catching her breath, and already thinking about what the next step would be tonight.


*****

Part 4


After resting for a few minutes, Wendy decided it was time to get things going again. She bent over Jason's cock, looked down at him, and said, "You better be able to do one more tonight!" Then she turned to Jennifer and added, "You going to help me with this?"


Wendy opened her mouth wide and took in Jason's entire limp dick. The taste was intoxicating; a mixture of Jason's usual flavor, along with his semen, together with the pussy juices of both girls. She'd never tasted anything quite like it. Wendy joined in, and they took turns sucking Jason, and giggling at each other as his cock began to grow and stiffen again. Jason simply lay there, letting his girlfriend and sister work on him, wishing he'd be able to tell his friends about it. They'd never believe him! He'd just have to be content with enjoying the experience. He watched as the two girls each licked up one side of his dick, then brought their tongues together at the tip, dissolving into a long, deep kiss. Damn, just like he'd seen it so many porn movies!


Jason's cock was back to full throttle now, and Wendy was ready for her next step. She moved to the head of the bed, knelt down, and braced her hands against the headboard, then turned to Jason and said, "Put it in my ass."


"You... What?!" Jason was shocked. He simply couldn't believe what he was hearing. After everything else that had happened tonight, this might just be too much.


"I want you to fuck me in the ass. Do it. Now." Wendy wasn't in any mood for a debate.


Jason, moving in slow motion, crawled up behind Wendy, while Jennifer watched. Jason was still a little hesitant about the whole thing, but the sight of Wendy's naked ass sticking up in the air was enough to overcome his misgivings. He slowly spread apart Wendy's ass cheeks with one hand, while he guided his cock to the opening of her anus with the other. He placed his cockhead against the ring of Wendy's ass, and pushed forward just enough so the head popped through into her ass. It gripped his cock like nothing he'd ever felt before.


"Owww! Oh, god!" Wendy winced in pain as Jason's cock stretched her anal ring. It opened her up a lot wider than her finger had. Still, she was excited by the feeling.


"Does it hurt? Do you want me to stop?"


"No! Don't stop! Just take it slow."


Jason leaned forward pushing just an inch or so of his cock into Wendy's ass, then pulled back slowly until just the head was still inside. Wendy groaned as she felt her ass open reluctantly to take him in. He repeated the stroke, then again, and again, each time moving into her just a little further. Wendy grunted with each stroke as more and more of her ass was stretched open. The mixture of pain and pleasure she was feeling was something completely new to her, and was taking her places she had never expected to go. Since her ass was tighter than her pussy, she could feel each movement of his dick inside her more clearly than when he was in her cunt. As Jason's cock penetrated farther into her ass, she could feel her pussy begin to pulse with the rhythm of his strokes. Each time she thought she must have all of him inside, he humped again, and she felt her ass violated deeper.


Jason, meanwhile, found that same extra tightness meant that his cock got more stimulation when it was in Wendy's ass. He began to thrust into her more quickly, and finally announced, "It's all the way in."


Wendy let out a gasp; she knew she wouldn't have been able to take much more inside her. She looked over at Jennifer, still lying on the bed, and ordered, "Come here. Finger-fuck me." Jenny did what she was told, kneeling next to Wendy, reaching between her legs, and thrusting two fingers into the older girl's pussy.


Wendy was on fire. Her pussy pulsed around Jennifer's fingers, dripping wet. Her ass burned with each stroke of Jason's cock. Unlike when she'd had her cherry popped, the pain wasn't going away, but it didn't matter, because the pain was now simply part of what was driving her to the edge. Her mind no longer operated, her body was simply a series of nerve endings. She was gasping with every stroke now, barely able to breathe.


"Oh shit, oh fuck, I'm gonna cum. I'm... Oh my god!" Wendy's entire body convulsed. Her ass spasmed around Jason's cock, her pussy around Jennifer's fingers. The muscles in her belly contracted and released, again and again. Her hands gripped the headboard as if she was trying to rip it off, as her back arched. She let out one, two, three explosive breaths, then her body shuddered and relaxed.


And then Jason's semen erupted into her ass. Combined with Jennifer still fingering her pussy it was enough to trigger another orgasm, although her body didn't have enough strength left to explode as it had seconds before. This time she simply trembled and moaned, then remained frozen in her kneeling position, her body too spent to even allow her to lie down. Jenny took her fingers away from Wendy's pussy. Jason's cock had quickly shrunk and slipped out of her ass, worn out from its big night.


Wendy finally slumped onto the bed and curled up in a ball. Under her breath, she was moaning, "Oh fuck, oh fuck, oh fuck." Meanwhile, her mind had started work again, and she was beginning to wonder what she could try next that would outdo even this.

Shona and Friends - Chapter 2: Thursday

theBlackDouglas on Teen Stories

Chapter 2 - Thursday

The following morning I wake early still on a high after yesterday's events and wondering what little surprises Shona would have in store for me today. I shower, dress and grab a bite of breakfast telling Mum I'll be going to Shona's to study after school - if I ever get to school again! "Don't make a nuisance of yourself - she's a nice girl but don't you think you're seeing too much of her?"

"No" I silently think to myself "and you don't know just how much I'm seeing, and feeling, of her!"

I get to Shona's house out of breath having rushed, desperate to see her again in case it was all some sort of fantastic wet dream, and ring the bell.

"Come in" she shouts and I open the door. She

Read More
is standing on the bottom step. "Shut the door." she commands. "I've not got any knickers on and I don't want everyone to see."

I go to her and kiss her pressing my tongue into her mouth. As her tongue finds mine, my hand slips under her school dress to find she tells the truth. As I gently stroke her pussy lips she moans. "Fuck me Jim. Drop your trousers and let me feel your huge cock in my pussy again. Yesterday was fantastic - I'm glad you can keep going so long!"

She has my belt undone before I can move. My trousers drop and she grabs my already swelling erection, guiding me to her hot hole and once more I am in her feeling the exquisite tightness of her cunt walls all along the length of my cock as I fuck her where she stands, her being one step up making up for our height differences - I think she had planned it like that and that was why she was standing where she was when I came in.

I piston hard in and out of her and she sets up a counterpoint rotating her hips as she grinds back at me. She comes within a few strokes but keeps the rhythm up coming once more on my every stroke and in no time my cock pumps waves of sperm into her velvet puss. "Don't get any on my dress - I'm told it stains." she admonishes. "Anyway I want it all inside me, I love the way it feels in me." After a few more strokes to wind us down she pulls away from me. "That'll need to do for now - we'd better not be late for school after missing yesterday. If we bunk off too much they'll send someone looking. We were lucky twice yesterday we might not be so lucky again."

We certainly had been lucky having been discovered fucking by both Dot Black and Shona's sister Eileen. However they weren't about to rat on us as both had been more than willing to join in our games.

As we walk to school, Shona sounds as if she's organising a diary for the day. "Don't forget your meeting Cath - remember to call her Hutch when you're not alone - in the chemistry lab at break. I won't come, enjoy her on your own this time. You'll have lunch at my place - I'll need to organise something for then. I'm sure Dot will want to see you at some point and then you'll come back home with me? Eileen said she would try and finish work early tonight." What a girl - truly insatiable! Already been fucked once today, planning at least two more times as well as setting me up with at least three other girls in the day! Good job I seem to be pretty much insatiable too.

The first half of the morning drags past as I look forward to my rendezvous with Cath. Finally the break bell goes and I slip into the chemistry lab making sure no one sees me to find Cath already waiting for me. "Hi Jim." say says as we hug and kiss. She feels my already rising cock press at her leg. "Come on. Shona wouldn't want us to waste this." she jokes in a reference to yesterday's events grabbing my hand after rubbing my cock through my trousers. We rush to the darkroom at the end of the lab but to our surprise it isn't vacant as we had supposed it would have been. "Catherine? Jim? Something I can do to help you?" the startled lab assistant inquires as we tumble through the open door.

"Yes, Sheila" Cath replies after seeing the pretty little brunette who I suppose can only be 17 or 18 staring openly at my now rampant hard-on, scarcely contained by my trousers. "You see" she continues moving forwards to stroke Sheila's hair and face "we need someone to make a nice little threesome, think you can help? You won't believe how long and thick his cock is. Shona Campbell tells me she and her sister measured it to be fourteen inches long last night. Think you can handle that? It feels so good inside me, my cunt, my throat, my arse." Cath's hands are lower now unbuttoning Sheila's lab coat and caressing her tits. I am surprised to see that Sheila wears only a camisole top and panties under the coat but I suppose it is hot in the lab sometimes.

"I've never been with a boy before." Sheila stammers.

"Prefer girls do you?" Cath coos taking Sheila's hand and placing it inside her blouse. "Feel how soft my tits are."

"Its not that - I've, well I've not had much experience."

"Well how much experience would you like? Jim and I came here to fuck and fuck is what we're going to do - you can join in if you like." Her tone changes "Jim lock that door, get your clothes off and get over here. I need fucked badly."

"How about I fuck you good - I don't do bad!" I quip.

"Oh you know what I mean! Just do it!"

As I comply and Cath undresses I can see how wet she already is, wither from anticipation of what is to come or by her seduction of Sheila I know not. And seduction it had been, once more we'd been lucky as Sheila removes her top and pants to join me feasting on Cath's tits. Her hand joins mine as I caress Cath's inner folds. "That's right Sheila. Feel how soft I am. Experience the glories of another girl's body. Go as deep as you like. I'm not a virgin. Jim saw to that yesterday - he can see to yours today if you like. Now watch while we fuck." Cath's voice seems to have a hypnotic effect on Sheila. Slowly she moves away as Cath positions her bum on the workbench, arching her back to rest her elbows on the bench, spreading her legs wide. I move in to stand between them - fucking standing up seems to be the order of the day - and press forward, my knob leading the way. "Now watch as his cock stretches my pussy lips. Think how that would feel for you Sheila. Ah" she mumbles keeping the litany going as I enter her, going full depth on the first stroke "Ah ah! That feels so good. He feels so good in me, so big. I can feel my cunt walls stretching to take his big cock Sheila. I can feel his knob against the opening of my womb. Ah I'm coming, I'm coming." Cath has turned herself on so completely describing everything to Sheila that she has lasted only a few strokes before her orgasm hit her but I need more so I keep pumping in and out making full use of my length. Cath's mumbles are now incoherent as she writhes about below me, orgasms hitting her now and again. As I come Cath pulls me out. "Taste him - taste Jim's cock." Sheila seems helpless to resist and kneels down in front of me taking my knob in her mouth while Cath jerks on my cock to keep me coming. As sperm begins to leak from Sheila's mouth Cath commands her to swallow it. She swallows so hard that my whole cock is pulled into her mouth and into her throat. Sheila gags in surprise and pulls me out but then goes straight back down on me again taking my length down her throat in a much more controlled manner. She starts to bob. "That's it. Doesn't he taste good. Imagine how that would feel in your puss!" Cath begins cooing again. She's turning me on as well and soon I begin to pump more seed into Sheila's tight throat as I come again. "Yeah, give it to her Jim. Swallow the lot Sheila - there's virtually no calories and its fat free! Now is he done? Yes - well come and eat out my cunt - suck his load from me!" Sheila turns to Cath as I withdraw, lapping at her pussy like a demon. Inexperienced? Well, like all of us had yesterday she was learning fast! I move behind Sheila ready to take advantage as my cock reawakens. "Not so fast Jim" Cath warns "I want to see you fuck Sheila at least as much as Shona wanted to see you fuck me yesterday. Just watch for a few minutes can't you?"

I sit back to await my turn with Sheila which I know will surely come (! - both of us I hope). Sheila sucks Cath out making her come quite hard and then rolls over onto her back positioning herself on the bench beside Cath. "I think I'm ready now." she says quietly.

"Ready for what?" Cath demands.

"Ready for Jim to fuck me now." she responds in a small voice.

"Louder Sheila! I don't think Jim can hear you." Cath teases.

"FUCK ME JIM" she bellows "take my virginity. I want to feel your cock in me!"

"Hush!" I say "D'you you want the whole school to know what's happening?"

"I don't care - they can all come and watch if they like. Just do it!"

So I ease forward, pausing only to kiss her twat, her bush quite full unlike my previous partners, and then gently part her pussy lips with my knob. "Yes Jim yes" Cath takes up her mantra "Come on push a little harder." She is down below us, watching closely as my knob slides in finding her hymen delicately resisting.

"You OK." I ask concerned.

"Of course she is Jim! Wasn't I? Wasn't Shona? Wasn't Dot?" Cath demands. "Fuck her - get that big prick of yours up her lovely tight hole!"

What sort of demon had I unleashed? I remember her own doubts from only the previous day! I press forwards and Sheila responds, thrusting forward to meet me and soon we are enjoying each others' bodies, her pain replaced by the joy of her fullness as she takes all of me, her cunt tight around me. "That's it Sheila. Doesn't it feel good? How tight is she Jim? Come on, fuck her properly! Let me see your cock slide in and out of her." Cath demands ever more frantically. As I set up a motion fucking Sheila as Cath wants, I feel her tongue laving at my cock and balls, exploring Sheila's pussy lips stretched as they are to take me in this her first fuck. Sheila is wonderfully tight, her cunt compressing my cock as I fuck her. Soon she loses herself in her first orgasm but again I'm not ready to surrender my seed to her yet so I continue to pump in and out until she explodes into a second orgasm and my balls tighten to give her her reward. She feels divine around me as I slowly lose pace having given her my all. "Oh Sheila" Cath continues - I am aware she has been calling the shots to Sheila all through our coupling but the words had been lost on me - I had been enjoying myself too much putting the fifth notch on my belt as it were - "did it feel as good for you as it did for me the first time? It was a real turn on to see you fucked, to see your cunt stretched like that. Now turn over and let him fuck your bum too - that's nearly as good."

Sheila seems powerless to resist Cath's commands as she rolls over to expose her arse. Cath licks at her anus rimming her and making her come before motioning me over. "Want to feel a cock in your arse?" she starts. I see an almost imperceptible nod and Cath positions me, my knob rubbing at Sheila's arse hole. Up till now my anal experience had been mixed, all most enjoyable but the type of penetration had been different, almost accidental with Shona, gentle with Dot, a bit more forceful with Cath (at her insistence), almost downright violent with Eileen. Gently does it I decide and push forward slowly breaking her anal ring as my knob slips inside. "Yes, Jim yes! Give her more, give her more of your lovely big cock. Make her squeal!" Cath continues but I hold back until Sheila relaxes and starts pushing back at me for more before I push forward again. Soon she has my full length in her, wiggling her arse, causing quite amazing sensations on my cock as she adjusts to the fullness. I then begin to fuck her properly, taking longer and longer strokes as I increase the pace. Cath is no longer calling her mantra, her mouth too busy on Sheila's cunt and my balls as she lies below us. Finally I feel her slip a slim finger in Sheila's puss. That does it for both of us. Sheila gasps out a mighty orgasm, her anus clamping down hard on me as she does so, squeezing me so hard that my sperm is forced out in an almost painfully constricted stream.

As we sort out our tangle of bodies I look at the time. It is almost lunchtime - we'd been at it for more than an hour and a quarter! "I have to go." I say "I'm meant to be meeting Shona at lunch time - she'll probably chop my dick off if I stand her up."

As I dress hurriedly I tell Sheila how good she'd been for me, how tight her puss and arse were and ask if she had had a good time.

"You bet I did! I suppose I was, well, just unsure about everything. You, and you Cath, have made my first time something else." she assures me.

I notice the girls aren't dressing. "Aren't you two finished?" I tease.

"Don't think so, are we Cath" Sheila asks. "I'm sure you've got a few more tricks to teach me over lunch." Cath hugs her and caresses her breast.

"I'm sure I can think of something." Cath says rising to let me out of the darkroom and make sure the door is locked again. I hug each of them one last time and then I'm gone, off to find Shona.

She is waiting at the school gate. "Where have you been?" she asks impatiently. "Why did you miss the last two periods? I thought it was meant just to be a quicky with Cath?"

I gather she is peeved but as we walk down the road and I recount the tale, her features soften until she is smiling. "Sheila eh? I've been trying to get into her knickers all term - I'd decided she wasn't interested in girls. You'll have to introduce me sometime."

"I think by the time Cath is finished with her Sheila'll be up for anything. You should have heard Cath all through - Sheila seemed to have to do everything Cath told her - I think we got a sex monster on our hands there!" I tell her.

"Who?" she rejoins "Cath or Sheila?"

"Cath I mean. I think Sheila could be quite submissive."

"Good, I like a submissive girl!" Shona exclaims without offering further explanation. She continues "Well for my part at break I managed a rather hot 69 with Dot in the changing room - its so good to feel her tongue and fingers in my pussy after all this time. She says I'll still have to fag her after hockey and everything otherwise someone could become suspicious but when we're alone anything goes. By the way she wants you to met her in the changing room at afternoon break. Mind if I tag along? You're not safe to be let out alone it seems!"

By this time we're nearly at Shona's house and catching up on another girl from our year. "Joyce. Joyce wait for us." The girl stops.

"Hi Shona!" she says cheerily. "What's doing?"

"Well Jim and I are going in for a fuck. Want to join us?" Shona asks her matter-of-factly, a glint of mischief in her eyes.

"Sure!" Joyce laughs back thinking her to be joking I'm sure.

Shona takes her arm and leads her into the house, up the stairs and into her bedroom. I follow on making sure the front door is firmly closed and locked today. By the time I get there Shona is already stripping. Joyce is standing opened mouthed. "Come on Joycy!" Shona implores her. "We've only got an hour and you can't fuck with your clothes on. Well you can but its much better without. Isn't it Jim?"

"You mean you two have actually done it before?" Joyce stutters.

"Sure. Yesterday and before school this morning - that was the clothes on time. I've lost count of the number of times he's had his big, thick cock up my puss. Seven? Eight? It doesn't really matter. And my arse and mouth. You wouldn't believe the number of times I came or how hard! And you wouldn't believe how good it is to watch him fucking other girls - and join in. Well I find it a turn on anyway, perhaps you don't?" Shona gushes.

"I've never seen anyone do it. What other girls?" Joyce is obviously intrigued.

"In order? Dot Black, yes don't look so surprised. Dot Black, Hutch and my sister Eileen and this morning I believe he's added Sheila Weir, the lab assistant, to his tally but I didn't see that." Shona counts off, obviously enjoying the look on Joyce's face. Shona and I are now fully striped, my cock hard ready for action. Without another moment's hesitation, Joyce hurries to shuck off her clothes. She is slim, almost boyish, and short, maybe two inches smaller than Shona, with mousy coloured hair cut in a fairly short bob. As she strips, she reveals quite little tits, no more than an AA cup but not exactly flat chested, in fact they look just right for chewing on - bit sized you might say. I move closer and kiss Joyce's mouth cupping her breast in my hand as I do so as Shona helps her out of her knickers, her hand caressing the inside of Joyce's thighs on the return journey.

"Can I kiss your nipples? I ask as I caress the softness of her tits.

"Yes!" Joyce breathes almost inaudibly.

I lower her on to the centre of the bed and lie down beside her, kissing first one nipple and then the other until they are fully engorged and then I suck her tit into my mouth, taking it all, while my hand explores the other, caressing and kneading softly. Shona pushes my hand away and replaces it with her mouth mimicking my actions. "Oh Shona, you know I love you doing that! I've never had both done at the same time before." Joyce's breath is getting ever shorter. My hand creeps down her short body until I find her clit which needs little stimulation before she comes.

Shona rolls away. "Your tits are coming on nicely Joycy! Very tasty. Ready for your first fuck then? Or do you want to see me go first?"

"Does it get any better? That was fantastic. I've never known the like!" Joyce asks incredulously.

"You better believe it girl! I think you should go first. Its not fair to keep you in suspense not knowing how good it is." Shona offers.

"OK!" Joyce turns to me. "Let's see if she's right then."

"No complaints so far." I tell her moving between her legs which she throws wide apart. She reaches out, running her finger over the top of my knob making it tingle, before guiding it to her puss.

"Just remember I've never done this before. OK?" Joyce asks.

"OK, don't worry. Shona's right - you'll love it." I assure her. "Or certainly the others have" I add silently to myself. I don't suppose every girl's first time can be good. I am going to do my damnest for Joyce (and any of her other girlfriends that Shona connives to line me up with). I press slightly into her, her puss sodden with her own juices from her earlier climax, feeling that almost familiar resistance of a virgin puss. She presses up in equal measure to me bearing down and soon I'm through. Joyce gasps but immediately sets up a fucking motion with her hips taking me deeper and deeper until my whole length is being encased in the wonderful tightness of her cunt with each stroke. For once, Shona seems content to lie back watching, just watching, not so much as playing with herself, as Joyce and I go at each other, she rising in time with me to meet my strokes and falling again as I pull out making the tempo fast and furious. Joyce's breathing hardly changes and she doesn't make a sound but I begin to feel her cunt clamp down on me as we stroke milking me in a similar way to Shona in her orgasm. My balls react by beginning to pump their load into her depths making my cock jump within her. Convinced she'd yet to come I keep on pumping although she was no longer moving with me.

"Stop Jim stop" Joyce yells. "If I come again I'm sure I'll die."

"You did come then?" I am puzzled. "I thought you hadn't. You didn't show much sign."

"Didn't you feel my cunt on your cock? I was coming every time that happened. Guess I'm not very demonstrative, am I Shona?" she asks Shona.

"Definitely not." A look passes between them - one more thing unexplained I feel. "Now let me lick Jim's load from your tender little puss while you tell me how it was for you." I move out of the way and Shona kneels between her friend's legs. Just prior to lowering her head to Joyce's puss she instructs me. "And you Jim get round behind me and fuck me. No watching for you, time's too short. Do me hard, no pussyfooting about. OK?"

"OK. Cunt or arse?" I ask.

"Either, both! Just do it!" she implores, her words slightly muffled by Joyce's legs around her head she already having started her self-appointed task.

Puss, I decide and push my full length into her in one go forcing her deep into Joyce who is lying calmly telling us how good she felt taking my cock deep, how her hymen had caused her almost no pain, how wonderful her orgasms had been for her, asking Shona if she came the same way as she'd heard a lot of girls come in a single shot and saying she was glad she wasn't a virgin any more. She talks quite rationally and almost without emotion while Shona eats her out and I fuck Shona with long pounding strokes, its only when she says "Thank you Shona" in a couple of inappropriate places I begin to wonder if something more is going on. I am too busy flailing away at Shona's puss to worry. Shona is now climaxing, gasping her orgasm into Joyce's cunt with every stroke. I pull out not long before I judge I'll come and ram forward again, taking Shona's rear. Well, she did say both and she did say hard! She doesn't miss a stroke in her orgasm as I pound in and out my own climax coming after another couple of minutes, my load crashing down the length of my engorged cock into her tight rear. As I pull out I notice Shona continues to lap at Joyce's cunt and not until I hear "Thank you Shona" again does she stop.

I'm about to say something but Shona stops me. "Get dressed. We can talk on the way back to school!"

Soon we are on our way. "Why did you decide to sit and watch Shona? You normally like to join in." I comment.

"Yes" she agrees "but it was something Eileen said last night about watching being a passive thing - I decided to try it and I must say it was brill watching the two of you go at each other, concentrating on the detail of your cock moving in her cunt, watching her pussy lips stretch, trying to catch Joyce out..."

"Catch Joyce out? Is this anything to do with the 'Thank you Shona' bit Joyce when Shona was eating your puss?" I ask my curiosity getting the better of me as ever.

It is Shona who answers "its a game we play at school. The girl being pleasured, either by mouth or hand is not allowed to say anything, no moans, no sighs and definitely no squirming! The only thing she is allowed to do is say thank you to whoever is pleasing her if - when - she comes!"

"So you came three times? Right Joyce?" I catch on quick.

"Right."

"But how can you manage to go on talking like that while all that is happening?"

Again Shona answers "Oh Joyce is unofficial second year, no make that school champion. Nerves of steel I think. I'm no good myself, not as vocal as some though." I think of Dot yesterday "but not in Joyce's league! Half those squeals and squeaks you hear in class from the girls' tables are because of folk playing. I've even managed to eat Joyce out in class, haven't I?, without her uttering a noise except to answer the teacher's questions - that gets bonus points! Only trouble is a round consists of the two players doing each other in turn so that's why I'm always in trouble for making noise in class."

"Is that why you were so quiet with me Joyce?" I ask.

"No that just sort of happened. Just the natural me I guess." Joyce shrugs.

"Don't remember you saying thank you though!" I joke.

"Thank you Jim. Thank you Jim. Thank you Jim. Thank you Jim. Thank you Jim. Thank you Jim." she starts "Thank you Jim. God how many times did I come?"

"OK, OK! As long as you had a good time! " I interrupt.

Looking round to make sure no one can see - I'm not her boyfriend after all - she gives me a big hug. "It was wonderful Jim, truly it was. You'll need to teach me that arse trick sometime though, sometime soon."

I turn to Shona. "And what about the submissive bit Miss Campbell?" I go on but we are already at school.

"That'll have to wait. See you at break" she says going of with Joyce to join a group their friends as the bell goes.

My mind spinning with all the new twists I've learned and suspect I go off to class and manage to actually do some work in the two periods before the next break when I sneak down to the girls' changing room meeting Shona on the way. "How to you feel?" she asks "My puss and arse are still tingling. I think I like it hard."

"I think you like it anyway you can get it!" I exclaim perhaps a little meanly.

"You could be right." She says with a mock-coy smile. "Wasn't Joyce the best?"

"Wasn't she? She really didn't know you meant what you said at the gate, did she?" I reply.

"No, but she soon cottoned on. Did you notice us playing in the art class just now? Joyce won of course even though I tried every trick in the book. She went first caressing my pussy lips and frigging my clit as per usual but she soon had me squealing as I came. I went next and even when I was three fingers deep in her cunt - definitely not allowed, we're all supposed to be virgins remember - not a sound did she make. I actually think she came two or three times before she eventually said thank you. I suppose that's sort of cheating but in a class game like that the 'thank you' ends the round so its a sort of reverse cheating. I think she was just enjoying herself too much to want me to stop."

By now we are at the changing room and carefully go inside. Dot is waiting. "Hi Jim! Shona! Glad you came, that might make things easier."

I am not sure what she means but I am uneasy. "Dot" I start "I'm not sure about this. If I get caught here let alone with my trousers down as they say I'll be for the high jump."

"I know - that's why we need to make this a 'safe haven' just like you and Cath have managed with the darkroom - or so I hear." Dot says puzzling me even more. "Both of you come with me."

She promptly marches along to Miss Maclean's office. I begin to panic - is Dot going to turn us in?

"Don't worry." she assures us knocking on the office door.

"Come in" is the reply from the other side and as the door opens Miss Maclean's face lifts from her paper work and she smiles first seeing only Dot and Shona. She frowns when she spots me hanging at the rear. I'm in two minds wither to run! "Yes can I help you?" Now where have I heard that somewhere before?

"Wendy" Dot starts.

"Miss Maclean please." 'Wendy' says indicating me.

"Oh don't worry about him - he has the most fantastic cock! Hasn't he Shona?" Dot continues unabashed. Shona nods. "Long, thick and he can keep it up forever given a little encouragement! I know you've told both Shona and I you don't believe in penetration sex but we're here to change your mind! Jim and Shona became lovers yesterday and then I walked in on them. Before long Jim had my virginity too - he is SO good to have inside you, believe me. Doesn't matter which hole really cunt, arse, throat - its all wonderful."

I can see Wendy's mind racing. "Well then if my two star pupils tell me so I'd better at least try once! Lock the door please." Wendy is obviously easily persuaded, perhaps she doesn't want to lose her 'star' pupils especially so soon after having given into Shona's charms or perhaps she hopes to turn the situation to her own advantage but anyhow she stands to remove her one piece Lycra costume and continues "I want you all to strip and then for you, Jim?, to do whatever you do to first Dot and then Shona. If I like what I see I'll join in, otherwise I'll call stop and the matter shall go no further except that you two young ladies will have to report here regularly for punishment. Agreed?"

The submissive thing again? But I'd have put Shona more dominant than submissive. She'd certainly taken charge of me at the start of yesterday's 'orgy' and of Dot when she discovered us, even today Joyce was only too willing to be told what to do by her. "Oh I don't think so!" Shona smiles at her sweetly "If you don't do what I say I'll go straight to the headmaster and cry rape. It is legally possible for a girl to be raped by a girl you know and, of course, you know, and knew at the time, I'm under age. Might not be able to prove anything happened but mud sticks." Game, set and match Miss Campbell. "Now suck his cock and when your quite ready fuck him!" Shona commands.

Strangely I can see Wendy respond to this monologue - perhaps she too likes to be submissive but her position in the school, her being a teacher and older, made this difficult or at least unexpected. Having stripped I lie back over her desk and offer Wendy my cock. With only a little encouragement from Shona, unlike Cath's constant commands to Sheila earlier in the day, Wendy begins to kiss and lick at my knob before slipping a few inches of my shaft into her mouth, sliding slowly up and down, deeper and deeper. Satisfied Wendy is going to do the job fine, Shona slides down and, lying on the floor below her, begins to lap at the juices rising in her cunt. Dot kneels down and applies her mouth to Shona's savoury slit - which I'm sure is the best I've ever tasted. First time is the best time? Who knows? I'm only sorry that within the confines of the office I'm unable to lick Dot's cunt. One for the 'to do' list next time I get together with two or three girls - make a complete circle! Or even a 69 eating the girl's cunt as she deep throats me.

I thrust deeper into Wendy sliding into the confines of her throat, holding her head down on me for a moment before letting her withdraw. Up, down, up, down. Although I'm sure its the first time that she'd done this, she certainly has the right idea. In no time three of us come almost together, me shooting come down Wendy's tight gullet, she in Shona's mouth and Shona in Dot's. This leaves Dot moaning in frustration but help is at hand. No way is my dick going to be satisfied with just a blow job however good so I help Dot up on to the desk where I'd been and thrust into her very wet puss. She moans loudly - she'd never win Shona's game, whatever they called it - gyrating wildly as she thrusts back up at me, calling out her orgasm before collapsing back on the desk spent.

"Your turn now Wendy!" Shona commands. "I can wait. How would you like it? Doggy style from the back? Yes? Kneel up on the desk then."

I thrust into her forgetting her views on penetration sex, feeling her hymen pop before my balls lap off her pussy lips all on the same stroke. "Grief! Oh!! All right Shona. You're forgiven - no punishment exercises for you. Ahh! I don't think I could take another millimetre - its the breadth more than the length! You feel so good Jim. Just how big are you?"

"Shona and her sister measured fourteen inches long and eight inches round at the base" I confide "but I think they were exaggerating!"

"Were not!" Shona exclaims. "Feels good doesn't it Wendy?"

Wendy moans out an affirmative as I begin to slide in and out and she slowly starts to push back against me. I reach round for her luscious tits, much bigger than those of any of my previous partners, even Dot's, especially hanging down beneath her as they are right now, and roll her half inch long nipples between my fingers making her moan louder before I grab her flesh and firmly begin to knead her mounds together as the pace of our thrusting increases raising Wendy's noise level considerably. Another loser in 'The Game'? "Hush", I tell her "or you'll have someone in on us!" This calms her down and she manages to reduce herself to a low moan as we continue thrusting together.

Dot meantime has collapsed onto a chair, her legs akimbo, Shona kneeling between them lapping away at her cunt bringing her off again forcing Dot to yield up my load into her mouth. Shona looks up licking her lips. Does that girl like the taste of my sperm or what? However she doesn't mind sharing the taste as she moves to give Dot a long sloppy kiss, sperm trailing off their tongues and down their chins.

I withdraw from Wendy just for the sheer joy of parting her pussy lips again and sliding full length into her. She obviously likes this as much as I do, arching her back in pleasure. A couple of repeats brings her to a huge long drawn out climax, her cunt tightening and tightening on my dick. Sensing her to be what Joyce had described as the 'single shot' type I pull out. "I'm going to do your arse now." I tell her. "Are you ready for that?"

"Yes, yes. I want to know everything. I want to feel everything!" she begs.

"What happened to the 'lesbian through and through'?" I think as I reposition my cock against her puckering anus and push forward feeling her relax and her anus expand until my knob is embedded in her arse. "OK?" I ask with my usual concern at this stage.

"its a bit sore but its a kind of sore I want more of. Go deeper Jim" Wendy implores.

I push slowly into her resistance, feeling her back passage expand grudgingly around me, until suddenly she gives a little yelp. "That's enough. Don't go any deeper - I can't take you any deeper!"

"Don't worry - I've no more to give. You've taken all of me Wendy. Feel my balls against your pussy." I reassure her.

"Have I?" she reaches underneath herself to find I'm telling the truth. "I have, haven't I?" She begins to roll her hips and contract her arse muscles as she explores making me gasp.

"Much more of that and I'll shoot my load!"

"What's wrong with that?" she asks.

"Nothing - except I want to fuck your arse some first. I want to enjoy your tight rectum against my cock." So saying I being to slowly pull back until I'm almost out of her and then push forward again. "Like that?" I ask continuing the motion as she pushes back in time still rolling her hips slightly.

"Mum-um" she considers "its quite different to my puss. it's so hot in my arse. I feel so stretched. Keep going Jim. I think I'll come again if you keep going - no one's ever made me come twice in row before."

So encouraged I continue with ever quicker strokes. When I'd first gone to fuck Wendy's arse I'd had to move my hands from massaging her tits to hold her by the hips, steadying her as I pushed in and now Shona and Dot had taken up position on the desk either side of Wendy, underneath her, paperwork scattered asunder, working on one tit each, now licking and kissing, now biting at her nipples, now drawing as much of the ample mounds into their mouths as they could, while working at their own pussies with their hands. Dot simply frigging her clit while, from what I could see, Shona had nearly her whole hand up herself, saved only by her thumb which she is using to massage her clit.

Wendy's breath is coming in low rasping gasps now and I feel my orgasm not too far away. "Oh Jim, come in my arse. I'm going to come soon. Come with me. Come in my arse." Wendy chants disappearing over the edge into her orgasm as my balls tighten and the pump once more cuts in making my cock twitch in her arse as she is filled by my cream.

As I withdraw, Wendy collapses down beside Dot and Shona, unable to speak for the moment. Dot flings an arm around Wendy to cuddle her but Shona jumps down from the desk, pushing me into a chair as she does so. She bends down to my cock. "Where do you think you're going?" she asks talking directly to my half-hard cock. "You've still to show Miss Maclean Shona's tight pussy taking cock." Talking over her shoulder, she adds "You'd like that Wendy, wouldn't you. You'd like to see my 'smooth hairless puss' taking cock. Wouldn't you?" The thought of being in Shona's beautiful cunt once more is enough to make him rise again even before Shona nibbles gently at my foreskin, teasing him to a full erection once more.

Recovering slightly, Wendy raises herself slightly off the desk so that she can see where we are and manages to reply "Yes Shona. I would." She sounds slightly surprised at herself, but given her recently shattered views on penetration sex perhaps she is! Shona flashes her coy smile, head to one side and then straddles my body, her back to my chest, holding her pussy lips clear of my cock. She grasps my shaft and lowering herself slightly, slides my knob along her crack, teasing both me and Wendy.

"Now you see it, now you don't." Shona says as she sits down hard on me taking my length into her velvet puss in one swift action until all that can be seen is my balls. It is Wendy who gasps as is she herself had been penetrated. "Thought you'd like that." Shona tells Wendy. "Now come and feel Jim's cock in me. Feel how stretched my pussy lips are as I take that monster cock in me. You can kiss my pussy if you like." I am right, Shona did like to dominate despite being the youngest. It is probably the main reason she doesn't like fagging - a more submissive girl would love it, love exploring an older girl's body. Assuming she is into girls that is but to my surprise they all seem to be!

Shona stays still, my cock firmly implanted as Wendy explores first with her hand and then with her mouth at one point sucking my balls into her mouth and making me gasp. "That's enough." Shona commands. "Now come and kiss me and let me feel those huge tits of yours." As the girls' bodies come together Shona begins to rise and fall on me and I do my best to thrust back but the chair is unyielding and the combined weight of the two girls on my lap makes it difficult so Shona motions me not to try. The two girls rise and fall together kissing deeply, hands exploring each others tits, the contrast stark. Shona with her pert little 'fledgling' mounds, Wendy a full grown woman with full grown tits. Shona breaks the kiss to whisper something in Wendy's ear. Wendy stifles a little giggle and nods before the kiss resumes. There is no question of Shona 'doing a switch' like she had with Dot the day before - Wendy has had her turn and now Shona is on for the ride - so I can only wonder what is going on. Ride Shona does - like a veritable bucking bronco - until she is gasping her orgasm into Wendy's mouth with every round trip on my dick, the kiss never breaking. Soon I am not far of coming but before I do, first Wendy stands up and then Shona does too pulling me out of her. Figuring Shona wants me to come in her arse, I try to reposition myself. "No you don't." she says avoiding.

"But Shona, I've not come yet!" I implore indicating my dick "I was so close!"

"I'll tell you when you can come." she snaps.

I reach to her and slap her bum cheek firmly but not too hard. "Don't try that dominance thing with me!"

She face reddens (as well as her bum cheek, a fine imprint of my hand appearing) but she is smiling. "OK Jim. I'm sorry but what I'd really like you to do is tit-fuck Wendy. I want you to come on her chest so I can lick your cum off those gorgeous big tits of hers. I guess I should have asked. Will you do that for me?" she wheedles. "Then you'll need to pay some attention to Dot - she's really only had a quicky." she adds brightly.

I consider. "OK" I agree "but you'll need to lie on the floor Wendy - the desk's too awkward." Wendy lies down and presses her tits together making a tunnel at the base where they meet. I position myself over her with Shona's help and slide my knob up between them. It is surprisingly soft and tight although it is perhaps a good job that my prick is still well lubed from Shona's orgasms otherwise the friction of the skin to skin contact might have been too much. As I slide forward my knob slips out of the top and Wendy bends to kiss it, her tongue flicking over the end. This is better than I'd expected - sort of fuck and blow job combined! I'd just decided that I liked little tits best, tits like those of Shona, Cath and Joyce, tits I could get into my mouth all at once, but now I can see big girls have their advantages too! Variety is the spice of life I suppose. I look up to see Dot watching us, kneading at her own breasts, pushing them together, perhaps wondering if they were big enough to try the same thing? I decide they are and make a mental note to try. Shona is hovering watching, encouraging, waiting to dive in when I come. Having been brought nearly to the boil in Shona's cunt it only takes a few moments of stroking and licking before I do, my cock pulsing as hard as ever, my balls jerking in their tightness, to deliver a full load. Seeing me done Shona pushes me off "Go and see to Dot." she says going, not to lick up my sperm from Wendy's chest but first to spread it out over her giving her an even, glistening coat. "You won't need a shower by the time I'm done with you" she tells Wendy "I'm going to lick you clean. If you don't agree I'll be as submissive as you like from now on and you can give me as much punishment as you like."

Shona is in no danger of losing as I turn to Dot. Awkward or not, I climb onto the table beside her and push my cock up between her tits which she is still massaging together. "That feels good Jim." she says softly as if for fear of breaking a spell. I replace her hands with my own gently thumbing her nipples as I press her tits together, the pressure keeping me hard as I recover from my ejaculation of only moments before. I know Dot will want a little more than titillation! After a little I release her tits and stand between her legs pulling her down onto my hard shaft letting her cunt enclose me. "Shona was right - my cunny was feeling a little neglected but not any more." she moans " I love the feel of you in me." I begin to fuck back and forth Dot coming with me, her cunt tight after the tit-fucks. It takes no more than five minutes of this action before she arches her back and comes hard nearly passing out again but when she regains her composure, she lifts her legs onto my shoulders, changing the angle of her body and giving me access to her back door. "Come in my arse Jim. I loved that yesterday and seeing you do Wendy's bum's made me hot to try it again."

She reaches down for my shaft and presses my knob against her anus. "Just push. Don't worry, I've done this before." she teases smiling up at me. I push forward into the depths of her back passage, neither pausing nor going anything like as slowly as yesterday. "That's it. Feel me expand around you, feel me grip you!" As Dot says this last bit I bottom out in her and she began to ripple her anal muscles. It is as if she is playing a tune on my cock, the feeling out of this world! She can only keep it up for a little but it is fantastic while it lasts. "Now fuck me, fuck my arse, make me come." I begin to saw in and out of her and reach round for her tits massaging them firmly. Dot begins to pant for breath as she comes again but has to endure another few strokes from me until I'm ready to come. As I do so I feel a ripple against my cock and Dot gasps "Wow!". I finish pumping and pull out. Dot stands and hugs me although she scarce seems able to hold her own weight. "That's never happened before! I came twice with you in my arse - almost in multiple like Shona does. Thank you Jim!" Dot gasps out breathlessly.

"Thank you Dot." says I always the gentleman. "It was really good for me too. Guess we'll need to keep practising on the multiple orgasm bit." I tease.

We look to the floor where Shona is laving at Wendy's cunt, Wendy thrashing about in orgasm. Seeing us Shona sits up, releasing her prey. "Well Wendy. I'll guarantee that there is not one bit of Jim's sperm left anywhere on or in your body. Not on your tits, not in your puss, not in your arse, not anywhere. Do you agree?"

I'm not sure Wendy knows what she is agreeing to but agree she does. Shona smiles at me looking like the cat that ate the canary (perhaps she has - she's eaten everything else!) - no punishment exercises for her. The two girls scramble from the floor and we see the time - school had finished ten minutes before. "Lets get out of here before the Janitor comes to lock up." Wendy implores. We dress and sneak out separately agreeing to meet outside.

When we meet I ask Wendy about how she'd enjoyed everything. She said it had been a fantastic experience for her and had certainly changed her views on boys. She said that she'd loved Shona pumping her fingers into her twat and doing the same back, feeling the very inside of her cunt which she never had experienced before ending "If for no other reason any girl who thinks she's a lesbian should sleep with a boy at least once for the experience and to have her hymen broken the proper way!" Profound stuff.

"Will the three of you come back to my flat this evening - I want to thank you properly?" Wendy asks.

"No, Jim and I have other plans for this evening." Shona tells her but Dot agrees and our two parties go their separate ways.

"Other plans? Didn't tell me." I ask as we walk off towards Shona's house.

"Did sort of." Shona defends perhaps remembering that slap on the bum I'd given her. I'm not too keen on being dominated but I don't want to dominate either. In my own, inexperienced way, I sort of love Shona - guess I have for months - and want us to go forward as equals. "I did say Eileen was planning to finish work early today and Hutch hopes to come over later after her piano lesson if she can persuade her Mum...."

I hug her as we walk. "Don't worry. But I'm not fucking Cath's Mum."

"That's not what I meant and you know it!" Shona exclaims indignantly. Actually, Cath's Mum is a very attractive lady - a tall leggy blonde like her daughter and only in her late twenties. I guess she must have had Cath really young. As I ponder the possibilities we arrive back at Shona's. Opening the door Shona calls out "Eileen!". Getting no answer she leads me to her own bedroom saying "Thought she'd be here by now - she's desperate to take up my offer."

"Offer?" I query.

"You remember - you fuck her, I watch? We lay for ages last night after you'd gone discussing various positions and combos and what we'd liked best..."

"Just talked?"

"No! Don't be daft! Eileen took my fist deeper than she ever had before - I was in her nearly up to my elbow! Then she got to feel my insides for the first time - someone having dispatched my virginity" she said pointedly rubbing my cock as she undresses me having already gotten out of her own school dress and blouse - I notice that she hadn't bothered with underwear after our session with Dot and Wendy.

"And what do you like?" I enquire of her as we lie down on the bed together naked.

"Oh! Anything. Everything. I like your cock in my puss, my throat, my arse. I like watching you with other girls - and joining in! I like the feel of another girl, her tits, her puss, especially the inside! I like pumping my fingers into her cunt and having her, or you, do the same to me. I like...everything" she finished lamely before brightening "I can even get my fist in my own cunt, but not too deeply - the angle is all wrong. Look!" Shona proceeds to demonstrate balling her right hand into a fist and proceeding to push it between her pussy lips which are still swollen from this afternoon's antics until all I can see is the base of her thumb and wrist. "That's as much as I can manage." Demonstration over she lies back and fishes under the bed for a magazine. "I want you to fuck me like that!" she says "it's called the 'Ancient Roman' according to this." She shows me a picture of a couple fucking - my eyes pop! It's a real hard core mag, something I'd never seen before. The young couple are lying on their sides facing the camera, the girl with her back to the stud holding one leg in the air with the guy's cock embedded in her puss. "I think you'd be able to get quite deep in me and to would be a good position for you to get my tits at the same time."

"Sure, I think we can manage that. But first tell me where you got this." I indicate the mag and start to look through. The text, what there is of it, is in German and the title translates to something like 'School Maidens'. Well, perhaps that is too literal - nothing maiden about these girls although they certainly all look fresh from school. There are six or so photos sets in the mag of girls and guys sucking and fucking in various combinations always ending with the guy (or guys) coming on the girl's (or girls') face or pert little tits, never in their lightly downed or shaven pussies. One particular photo takes my attention. In it the young looking girl is fucking two guys at the same time, one each in cunt and arse while sucking at a second girl's puss. I pass the mag back to Shona indicating the picture. "There's one for you." I comment.

Shona takes the mag and examines the picture closely. "This belongs to Mum and Dad - they've got hundreds, all different sorts but I like this series because the girls don't look much older than me and my friends. They will be of course, even in Germany and Holland they have laws. They've got videos too - we can watch one later if you like." She looks again at the picture "Don't fancy that much though - well, I do fancy having both holes filled at once, but I don't fancy getting another bloke involved..."

"So I can have sex with as many of your girlfriends as you can lay your hands on" I conjecture "but you're a one man girl? Is that what you're saying?"

"More or less" Shona concedes "besides anyone else wouldn't be as big as you or be able to keep it up so long. What I want is this" she fishes out another mag open at an advert thankfully in English. "I've already ordered one by phone using Mum's credit card."

I read, my jaw dropping further with each line. "Make a penis kit" it started "Make a perfect copy of your own erect organ using a fully reusable mould. Make two, make dozens - the perfect gift for your girlfriend(s). A perfect firm latex copy every time. Guaranteed."

"Won't your Mum notice?" is all I can manage.

"Naw, they buy all their sex stuff like that. All I have to do is get to the mail first which shouldn't be a problem as they are always out when it comes. In the meantime I've borrowed this from Mum - not that she knows of course." she calmly assures me as she fishes under the bed once more this time producing some sort of two-headed rubber cock. Shona laughs as I stare. "Its a double ended dildo" she informs me "Not as long or thick as you but we'll have some fun with it and Eileen when she finally appears." She rolls over onto her side and pulls one leg into the air mimicking the girl in the first picture. "Come on" she smiles to me "let's see if this works."

"What a an incredible, insatiable girl!" I think rolling into position ready to try. "Anything goes as long as it doesn't involve another male!" I push forward into her wasting no time in giving her my all.

"Mumm that feels good. Quite a different sensation at this angle." she muses as she tests her muscles against my shaft, tightening and shortening on me.

I pull back again and reach round for her firm, little tits but she slips out away from me going to the door. "Shona! I implore.

"Shush! Come on." she whispers leading me out into the hallway to another door. I can hear now what Shona must have heard, soft low moans of passion. Eileen and John? Then a voice can be heard, a female voice "That feels so good Eileen. Don't stop." Shona and I look at each other and then Shona softly pushes the ajar door open. We are greeted by the sight of Eileen sixty-nineing another girl. Eileen is on top facing way, her cunt lips being laved by her unknown partner. "Go on give her a little surprise." Shona whispers indicating my frustrated cock and her sister's puffy lips. I need no encouragement and moving swiftly into the room stuff my cock right into Eileen's puss in one single action - no time for subtlety, I need some relieve now! Eileen and her girlfriend shriek in surprise.

"Jim! God does that feel good! I've been waiting for that all day." Eileen cries out as she recovers from her initial surprise and comes on me hard. "Angie, don't stop. Eat me while we fuck. Lick his cock and balls. Didn't believe me when I said he was so big did you?" Eileen returns her attentions to her friend's cunt as I fuck her from behind feeling her girlfriend's lips and tongue all over us. As she sucks my balls into her mouth they tighten and pump my jism into Eileen who feeling the first spurt hit her cervix comes to her own climax with shattering intensity collapsing on top of Angie.

As I withdraw and the two girls sort themselves out Shona calls to me "Come on Jim, we've got some unfinished business!" She is lying on a second bed in the room, on her side, leg in the air back in the same position as the girl in the porn book. I move over to her and slide into her still oh so beautifully tight cunt but she is at least ten times wetter than when I first taken up the position with her not so long before. I hadn't noticed but she must have gotten herself off while watching me fuck her sister. As I start to slide gently in and out fondling her tits as I do so, Shona asks grinning "Get a fright Sis?"

"Well more a wonderful surprise really." Eileen replies, she and Angie settling back on Eileen's king size bed to watch the show. "This is Angela, Angie. Don't think you two know her. She works beside me. Her family only just moved to town." Angie's eyes are wide, feasting on the sight before her - I don't think she'd ever seen anyone else fucking.

Shona had been right, the 'Ancient Roman' does allow a deep penetration and I am able to slide my right arm under her body to caress her tits. She finds that by varying the angle of her upper leg she can vary the sensation by adjusting the pressure on my shaft and finally settles for crooking her knee, her foot flat on the bed. Feels good to me! My other hand finds her clit from above driving her into sensory overload making her come after only a few full strokes from my dick. She remains on her high, coming and coming and coming until she can take no more and squirms away from me. She is satiable! This time, having come so recently, I don't mind the interruption, my mind already racing ahead to what variation Shona will come up with next. As we lie there cuddling, my cock rudely protruding from between Shona's legs, Eileen continues the introductions "Angie, this is my horny little sister, Shona, and the one with the monster cock is her boyfriend Jim. What did you think when out little party was interrupted? I came as soon as his cock bottomed out in my cunt..."

"I know, I got a full mouthful of your juices, you taste good Eileen." Angie interrupts.

"... and then with your mouth going everywhere I just came so hard when I felt Jim begin to shoot in to me. What did you think? And then watching Jim and Shona?"

"I've never seen people do things like that before..." Angie starts.

"Tell the truth Angie! Until I seduced you in the showers at the health club last week the sum total of your sexual experience had been zilch! Nothing, zero, zip!" Eileen exclaims.

Angie goes bright red! She has to agree that Eileen is right, she had only ever experienced any sort of sex with Eileen. She relates how only a few days a ago after a game of squash Eileen had come up to her in the shower offering to wash her hair, little knowing it was really her pussy hair Eileen had her sights set on! After lathering her hair, Eileen had reached round to Angie's tits and began lathering them. At first apparently Angie had told her to stop and tried to move away until the fire Eileen was igniting became too great to resist and soon she was lying back against Eileen's body giving her free reign until she turned and started to reciprocate beginning to timidly explore Eileen's body. Again apparently, the two of them had managed to make out at least once a day since culminating in today when Eileen had persuaded her to come back to her house and try 'this wonderful stud' her young sister had found. The two of them had been going hard at it when Shona I had arrived back and never heard us come in.

"So never been with a boy before?" Shona asks Angie her eyes twinkling. "What age are you?"

"Sixteen. Just started work at the factory with your sister."

"Sixteen! Far too old never to have had sex - even just with a girl." Shona put emphasis on the 'just'. "How do you fancy this then?" she strokes my cock, which sticking out between her legs looks as if it might well have been her own.

"Think I'd like it fine" she says lust coming to her eyes. "Eileen has never come so hard with just me licking out her puss and you looked beautiful in your climax Shona. Your face was so peaceful."

"Peaceful? I felt anything but! I hated having to get Jim to stop but I simply couldn't take the pleasure any more, I was coming so hard I could hardly breath! Anyway, think you can finish the job for me?" Shona asks, secretly flattered I think but in truth her face always did look peaceful in orgasm whatever her inner feelings.

"I'd like to try the same position as you Shona. Think that's OK for a first time Jim?" Angie asks me. I don't know. I look at Shona who nods.

"Yes I'm sure it will be. I certainly liked taking Shona like that." I reply.

So Angie lies on her right side and kicks her left leg energetically in the air holding it there without support. "At least those aerobic classes have done something for my muscle tone." she smiles at me. Now that I stop to look, Angie does indeed have what my inexperienced eye perceives to be a well toned body.

"You've got a beautifully toned body Angie" Eileen enthuses "that's what attracted me to you in the first place. Your innocence was an added bonus!"

"Go on Jim. You need satisfied. Make it good for her!" Shona encourages.

Needing no more bidding I switch beds positioning myself behind Angela, pausing to pull her mouth to mine, kissing her fully, drawing her tongue in my mouth, my hand finding her tit as I slide into her slightly, asking "You sure?" before I proceed.

"Never surer." she affirms pressing back at me. "It was such a turn on when I saw you fuck Eileen right above my face. Watching you with Shona was even better - she really seems to like having you in her."

"You bet she does! Now try for yourself!" I say pressing forward against her tight, resisting hymen.

"But doesn't it hurt at first?"

"A little maybe at first but it doesn't last I'm told." says I drawing on my widening experience. Where was I now eight? Shona, Dot, Cath, Eileen (not that she had been a virgin except for her arse), Sheila, sweet little Joyce, Wendy. No make that seven. Angie looking set to be my eighth all in less than two days!

I push forward. She groans slightly and then I am through into her tight and very wet cunt, taking her deeply. She rocks her hips at me and I start thrusting. She feels so good clamped round my shaft as I explore the depths of her pussy for the first time. Much as I love being with (and in) Shona, I realise that I get quite a thrill from virgin puss - boldly going where no man has gone before! As I stroke quickly bringing Angie to her first vaginally induced orgasm - this girl is hot! - I see Shona pull Eileen up into the same position as Angie, Shona having one end of the dildo stuffed in her cunt and about to go 'Roman' with her sister. Now all four of us are fucking. I reach over Angie to find her clit which I begin to massage as I enjoy her tightness making full use of my length. As I increase tempo Angie comes in a staccato of orgasms each seemingly more intense than the last. Feeling her totally relaxed, I pull out and press my knob against her anus. She is so relaxed that my cock slips in without difficulty although it goes without saying that Angie's back passage is very tight. As I work my cock into her arse, almost withdrawing totally and going deeper on every stroke, Angie moans a low, almost animalistic, growl. When I have only a couple of inches left to give I feel a strange resistance in her arse and figure that is maybe all Angie can take so I stop trying to go deeper and start stroking to this seeming limit, enjoying her tightness but Angie seems to sense that I'm holding back. "Go deeper" she instructs "go deeper Jim. Give me it all. I want to feel your knob as deep in my bowels as you can get it. Come on do it!" What happened to virgin innocence? I pull back and thrust into her as she pushes back, I feel the resistance again but this time manage to push into it eventually getting balls deep in Angie's rear. Angie roars with pleasure as I fuck her rear going full length every stroke but I cannot last long in this paradise. Pumping furiously I drive Angie to her orgasm just as my balls tighten and deliver up their homage into the depths of her arse before we collapse together on the bed.

Once I have come round a little I become aware of Shona and Eileen again. While I was enjoying Angie I had known Shona was fucking her sister with the plastic cock as if she were demented but now they had changed positions and roles seem to have reversed. Eileen is underneath, the dildo sticking out from her cunt as she takes the man's role reaming her little sister's arse with the other end. Shona is squatting above Eileen facing away giving me and Angie a full frontal as she rides the dildo. The sight alone is enough to keep me hard - her firm little tits bouncing slightly, juices dripping from her well fucked cunt. She motions me over, lying back on Eileen's chest and pulling her pussy lips open to let me see inside. "Come and fill my other hole Jim. Come and fuck my puss while Eileen fucks my arse." I am on her in an instant. "Can't wait can you?" she smiles "This is going to be so good." She is right. As I slide into her cunt I feel the hardness of the dildo in her arse and once both Eileen and I begin to stroke in and out of Shona at differing rates the feeling is out of this world - sometimes we are both in her to our respective limits, sometimes one is in, the other nearly out, sometimes both are nearly out. Shona is beside herself, coming constantly, writhing between us adding to the variation of motion inside herself. Despite having just come moments before in Angie's arse, the sensations are too great to be resisted for long. I can feel my own orgasm build and soon I am spurting another load of seed into Shona's all devouring little cunt.

As our threesome comes apart Angie comes upon Eileen taking the dildo into her cunt and riding herself to orgasm in only a few strokes. Shona and I lie back, cuddling and watching, our hands straying everywhere on each others bodies, as Angie reverses the roles becoming the man for Eileen as she clamps her end of the plastic cock firmly in her cunt and begins to pull the other end out of Eileen's cunt before pushing forward back into her again. Eileen pulls her girlfriend to her and they kiss, their hands simultaneously finding each others' chests. Eileen is soon panting out her climax but the kiss doesn't break until the two girls slump back on the bed still joined at the puss.

No one speaks for a while. "Well Angie? What did you think of that then? Who's a little slut taking Jim up your arse with hardly a murmur?" It is Shona who is speaking.

"Think of what?" Angie replies dreamily as if lost in another world.

"Think of what? Think of what?" Shona is incredulous. "How about your first fuck? Your first anal sex? Being fucked by another girl with a dildo? Fucking another girl with a dildo? Think that covers it unless you want to add watching other people fuck including me getting my puss and arse fucked at the same time?" she catalogues the events of the past while for Angie.

"What can I say." Angie starts. "its been quite a couple of hours. The feeling of Jim's cock in me was wicked and then I was so gone after he'd made be come so much, him stuffing it up my bum seemed to be natural. It was even better once I took all of you Jim. Why were you holding back?"

I explain about the resistance but she only shrugs before continuing, "Well I don't think it'd resist too much again. I loved watching you fuck Eileen with the dildo and then you taking the dildo in your arse and then with Jim in your cunt too Shona. But..." she trails off.

"But what?" Shona prompts.

"But what I really liked most was fucking Eileen with the dildo." she blurts out flushing.

"I loved that too." Eileen confesses. "I came really, really hard." The two girls kiss again and cuddle really tight while Shona and I exchange quizzical looks. As the embrace breaks, Eileen stands and begins to look round for her clothes. "Sorry to be a party pooper but I'm supposed to be meeting John this evening and if I'm late he'll probably come round here so I'd better go."

"Me too." says Angie. "I've got night school tonight."

Eileen gingerly feels her puss as she pulls on her knickers. "I suppose I'd better sleep with John tonight but I don't really want to after that. You three certainly know how to give a girl a good seeing to!"

"Don't then. Tell him its your period." Shona suggests.

"Better still, dump him and come round to my place later. Stay the night if you like, Mum and Dad are on holiday so I'm on my own." Angie flushes again. Eileen kisses her.

"Best idea yet! Why don't I do that?" Eileen replies eagerly.

"Good. I'll be in about nine. No need to bring a nighty but make sure you bring that dildo!" Angie instructs her.

"OK - lets go and raid Mum's toy cupboard before you go." The two girls finish dressing and hand in hand run giggling down stairs to where I presume the 'toy cupboard' lies leaving Shona and I lying together in each others arms, rather surprised by this turn of events.

Eventually Shona says "Let's get this room straightened out and then have tea. After that we can watch a film." So we do that managing to leave Eileen's room looking reasonably tidy and not as if an orgy had just taken place and go down stairs to the kitchen never bothering to dress. "Pizza OK?" Shona asks looking to see what was in the fridge. Shona's folks had recently taken over a pub and restaurant business in the town. This currently had two advantages, one that they worked long hours leaving early in the morning to see to the ordering etc. for that day and then long into the night as cook/bottle washer/barman/mine host trying to make a go of the place giving Shona and I plenty of time to be together (more or less) alone and, two, there is always plenty of food in the fridge. Shona soon has the pizza heated up in the microwave and as we sit eating we discuss Eileen and Angie. Shona concludes Eileen always had preferred girls and probably only went with John for appearances and that at least Angie 'had had her hymen properly broken' as Wendy had put it earlier in the day!

Dumping the dishes into the sink, we go next door where Shona switches on the TV and starts a video running. "You'll like this." she says mysteriously as she settles down next to me on the sofa, her head in my lap. With no intro the scene is of four people in a hot tub. The two guys are white and probably in their early twenties but the two girls look oriental and really quite young. "Don't know where Mum and Dad got this but I reckon the girls are Thai prostitutes which means they probably are as young as they look." Shona whispers already engrossed. The two girls are soaping their partners paying special attention to their cocks and balls, experienced hands bringing the guys' dicks up to attention. The girls step out of the tub revealing fully their lithe young bodies. Both are very slim with small tits and hairless pusses - definitely jail bait looking no more than 12 or 13, but then so is Shona!! The girls could quite easily be twins. As the guys follow them out they fetch towels and begin to dry their charges keeping them erect with the merest touch of their fingers. They drop to their knees in unison teasing the guys' knobs with their tongues before laving the lengths of their shafts moving in perfect synchronisation. "Not as big as you" Shona comments, gently stroking my dick "only eight or nine inches." The girls are now rubbing their nipples against their partners' cocks, Shona proceeds to follow suit on mine sending shivers coursing through me.

"Do that one more time and I'll pin you to the couch with my cock and fuck your brains out Shona Campbell!" Always up for it, Shona repeats the motion, her nipples hardening. True to my word I grab her, push her down onto the couch and take her quite forcefully, not that she is unwilling, squealing and giggling below me. Our pace is fast and furious - we fuck like long lost lovers who had been separated for years. Shona, desperate to take my full length on every stroke, comes quickly and keeps coming harder every time my cock bottoms out in her cunt if the way her cunt is clutching harder and harder on my dick is anything to judge by.

"Come on Jim, fill my pussy with you delicious cream." Shona pants at me. This is all the encouragement I need as I feel my balls tighten once more and I begin to pump into her with almost explosive force. It is quite probably the hardest I've ever come, the sensation mind-blowing. I slow down and collapse on top of Shona never withdrawing. She throws her arms around me and pulls me close. "Oh Jim that was the best yet! I think I like you being masterful! Now roll over, let me on top." We roll over then Shona sits up, pirouettes 180 degrees and lies back down again her back now to my chest. She had maintained pussy lock on my dick throughout, my dick showing no sign of softening. "I'm glad you came, I don't like it when I'm coming so much that I have to get you to stop."

"Come? I've never come so hard in my life. It felt like he was pouring gallons of the stuff into that hot tight puss of yours. It was absolutely brill." I assure her giving her gorgeous little tit a hard squeeze. She giggles and pulls away slightly but she is only reaching for the video remote and settles back into position. Somehow as I grabbed her she had managed to stop the film.

"Now where were we? Can you see Jim?" she asks as the action starts up again.

"Yes I can see. I can see the most perfect little pair of tits imaginable. I can see my cock in your puss or rather I can't except for the last inch or so. You've eaten the rest! I can see..."

Shona pushes back to take that last inch saying "That's not what I meant. Can you see the telly? Do you really like my tits so much? They're not very big?"

"Yes, I can see the telly and yes, your tits are fantastic. I love the feel of your soft skin and I love those little hard nipples - the feeling they caused in my cock was out of this world!"

Shona sighs moulding her body closer to mine but only says "Now watch."

On screen the blow jobs are continuing the girls now taking their partner's knob into their delicate little mouths until as if on a signal they go all the way down deep-throating the guys. You can see their members stretching the girls' throats. The girls stay down for what seems like a very long time never moving. "How can they breathe?" I comment.

"They can't" Shona replies "apparently just before you black out your throat spasms hard enough to bring a guy off. We can try sometime if you like."

"Don't know - sounds dangerous." I reply. As we watch we see the girls' throats spasm and the guys throw their heads back in ecstasy before pulling out leaving only their knobs in their partner's mouth. Neatly judged I reckon. The girls immediately start to bob deep-throating the guys time and again (but never staying down) until they climax again. Instead of them pulling out to spray the girls with their cum as I expect from the earlier mag the guys keep their cocks in the girls' mouths until they are done before withdrawing. I am puzzled - there isn't actually any sign of sperm anywhere. Surely the girls couldn't have taken it all without spilling a single drop?

The guys move over to low benches and lie back, their still hard cocks waving in the air. The girls straddle them facing the camera and then one at a time with the camera zooming in to catch each moment of penetration in detail they sit down on their fuck-mates, their young pussy lips stretched wide as they go right to the bottom first time. They are obviously tight and the guys moan in delight as the young girls start to rise and fall back in unison, gyrating their hips as they do so. The guys are doing nothing, quite literally letting the girls fuck them, watching as much as participating as the girls put on a show for the camera, playing with their own tits as they French kiss keeping upright to give the camera the best view of their cunts and the cocks within them. Their hands now drop to their pusses as they each wrap one petite hand round the base of the shaft embedded in them, wanking their partners as they fuck them. Each girl's other hand goes to the others clit and begins to frig it. The girls gasp out a brief orgasm as they bring the guys off. "They faked that" Shona murmurs "those girls didn't come!"

Wasting no time the girls hop off and change partners. Now facing away from the camera they go down again one at a time with the camera zoomed in each taking a cock balls deep in their arse. Again the guys just watch as the girls rise and fall again in unison each soon bringing their partner to another orgasm. This time only one of the girls hops off while the other leans back slightly against her partner, he grasping hold of her little tits quite roughly. "That's a sin." I say to Shona as I gently begin to fondle her tits feeling her puss tighten around my cock in response. "Way too rough." The camera angle changes to focus on the girl's now exposed cunt as the second guy penetrates her sandwiching against the other stud. The guys are now very animated fucking the young girl very hard, almost violently, cocks pistoning in and out her until they come again. As they withdraw I still can see to trace of sperm - this intrigues me more! The coupling changes with the guy who had been in the girl's arse now taking the second girl in the cunt. The other guy goes to them and I expect to see him take her anally although the angle seems wrong, but no, he actually pushes his cock into her cunt as well! "I wouldn't have believed that possible!" I murmur.

"Well not everyone has a dick the size of yours." Shona is becoming quite excited as I continue to play gently with her tits, her cunt muscles pulsing on my cock.

The little girl rides the two blokes to orgasm again before the two girls lie back on the floor, the guys wanking their cocks over them until they send wads of sperm over the them as they proceed to spread it over each others chests before licking it all off. "Reminds me of someone." I say. The girls are obviously hot for each other and the film ends with the pair of then scissoring their bodies together, their cunts mashed against each other until they quite obviously came.

"That's better!" says Shona "Pros are quite often lezzies you know - see too much cock for them to get excited by it."

"If you say so! How do you know they're prostitutes rather than porn actresses?" I ask.

"Too young and they're Thai. People go on holiday there specially to get set up with young girls like that - or young boys if that's what takes your fancy - like men with boys? It's part of the tour. No I reckon they were on the game - the movie probably made it a big pay day for them."

"Shona" I begin "those guys seemed to come lots of times but managed to hold onto their load until they shot it over the girls. How the hell did they do that? Its a trick I'd like to learn. It's like they've separated their climax from actually ejaculating!"

"Big words!" she says clamping down hard on me "I don't know - you're the one with the cock but I've seen it in other videos."

"How many've you seen!" That had been my first although I don't say so.

"Loads - and there are loads more in the cupboard I've never had time to watch."

"Would this be the 'toy' cupboard?"

"Mumm yes. There's a big walk in cupboard in the kitchen Mum and Dad have stuffed with mags and videos. Oh and sex toys too. They always keep it locked and never go to it when Eileen or I are around but I found the key by accident one day. Nearly frigged myself crazy that first day when I saw all the photos! Show you sometime but right now give me your best shot!"

Rather than begin to screw her I have enough experience of being with Shona to know that all I need do is knead her adorable little tits harder until her cunt milks the come out of me. She comes for all her worth shortly before I lose my all in her - perhaps video studs can come without coming but I can't - my recovery time to date has been remarkably quick though!

We lie together fulfilled for the moment when the doorbell rings. Shona rushes to the downstairs loo to grab a robe closing the door on my naked form as she goes to answer the summons. Moments later she is back with Hutch/Cath and another girl. Squinting in the semi-darkness I make her out as Ruth, another girl from our year but one I scarcely know as she was in a different stream. Not one bit shy, Ruth closes on me, kissing my still erect shaft - what did I say about recovery time? "Hutch!" she admonishes "You didn't say he was this big! Big, but not _this_ big!" She kisses and licks my erect form.

"Ruth" I start "I think you are taking advantage of me!"

"No not yet... But I intend to!" she says peeling off her clothes to reveal a very pretty little pair of tits coupled to a slim body and long legs, a nearly hairless but not shaven puss intervening. She pushes me back - what is it with these vixens and domination? - and mounts me without another word. Well those guys in the film could let themselves be fucked if they wanted but I wasn't about to be! Here is some prime virgin pussy and I am going to make the most of it! Death or glory (and preferably the latter)! Ruth is a virgin undoubtedly as she skewers herself down on me with barely a murmur as she gives me her all. I groan with the satisfaction of the feel of her new cunt round my proud cock and begin to buck taking her loud and clear. I reach up for her tits and thumb her nipples as we fuck. In no time she is on cloud nine wailing in spasmodic orgasm as our bodies pound together, her cunt ever tightening on my dick until I too come, discharging a mortar load of sperm into her.

Unseen hands pull Ruth off me as Cath replaces her. "Mummm! its been too long since I felt you inside me Jim! That feels so good!"

"It was only this morning." I remark feeling her tight cunt around me again. "What did you teach Sheila after I left?"

"Oh, nothing much." she declares "Only how to please another girl and how to be pleased by another girl - her cunt felt so good against mine - but she's yours again for the asking Jim and we can use the darkroom almost anytime we like."

"I've been trying to get it on with her all year - think she'd be willing?" Shona asks.

"I'm sure she would - she's just shy basically. Or she was - think Jim and I have shaken her out of that!" Cath responds smiling roundly as she begins to ride me. Perhaps there is something to being passive sometimes after all! I let Cath bring herself off on me before I begin to respond holding her there until she can take no more. As relief she rises off me and firmly shoves my cock up her arse without so much as a by-your-leave however she is so hot she can't stop coming and rolls off pulling Ruth back to me for her first anal fuck. I am slick from all the action but as I push against Ruth's anal ring I feel her tense, undeterred I continue to push forward still in need of satisfaction - perhaps I hadn't separated orgasm from ejaculation but at least ejaculation wasn't the end of the sex act for me. As I press forward I feel her relax until soon I am fully within her back passage enjoying the limits of her tightness. My hands reach out for her tits once more and soon she is writhing around above me barely able to contain herself, her orgasm this time constant until I come once more in her bathing her insides with my jism.

As the four of us relax coming down from our post-orgasmic highs, Shona and I relate the strange tale of Eileen and Angie. Cath shrugs "Never made it with either but if they're happy, good on them. For heavens sake Shona, I'd have had you as a lezzie until yesterday! Well I did I suppose!" she smiles at her own joke. "After all who originally seduced who and who still likes other girls?"

"Well, guess I seduced you - and Ruth - and I guess we all still like other girls." Shona responds smiling.

"I guess you did and I guess we do." Cath responds reaching out to cuddle Shona. "Shame Eileen took that dildo with her - that sounded wonderful."

"Oh yes it is certainly that but I'm afraid Mum's only got the one. Why don't you take Jim in your arse while I play with your puss?" Shona asks "You know how much I enjoyed that yesterday!" Translation "Lie back on top of Jim with him in your arse while I wank him off with my fist buried as deep in your cunt as I can get it."

Cath smiles and pushes me back down (I'm too much of a gentleman to refuse) and mounts me firmly, almost pulling me into her rectum. As she lies back over me I fondle her tits waiting the onslaught from Shona but instead Shona settles her cunt on my mouth as Ruth balls her fist in shoves it rudely into Cath. I gasp blowing hot hair into Shona who sighs settling herself more firmly over me. Between Shona and Cath I am pinned pretty much to the couch scarcely able to move except for my increasingly expert tongue in Shona's puss. God, what a taste, her pussy juice mixed with my fresh sperm made for a heady cum-wine - I could eat, or is that drink?, her all day. Cath and Ruth make up for my inability however; Cath fucking herself on my cock while Ruth pounds her fist in and out of Cath's tight cunt until Cath and I come each to a blistering orgasm at more or less the same time as Shona floods my mouth with a fresh dose of her juice. I round on Ruth pinning her to the bed ready to fuck her again. She acquiesces but only for a little does she let me fuck her tight little hole until she manages to roll me over and reposition herself above me taking my cock in her arse once more. "Now Shona" she says blushing I'm sure "let me feel your fist in my cunt!" Shona gives her a wicked grin before moving in to kiss her and letting her fist find it's target driving almost roughly in making Ruth squirm. The feeling for me? Words can't describe but I could happily get used to it! Ruth comes very quickly and soon can take no more but it is too soon for me to come again so as Shona withdraws her fist and I my cock, Ruth turns to me and bends her head to my still proud member muttering words of thanks and praise before proceeding to take him into her mouth and down her throat. It feels so good to me and although I am remembering it is her first time I make to imitate the scene from the film, holding her down on me where she can't breathe, until I feel her throat spasm around my dick, drawing the cum from me and deep into her belly before I withdraw into her mouth to allow her to breathe.

She spits me out spluttering. "Sorry Jim. I wasn't expecting that - it was so good though! Gave me quite a rush." She proceeds to lick my shaft and knob draining that last vestiges of cum from me.

"That was naughty." Shona admonishes me. "Still not sure about trying it with me?"

"Don't you ever get enough?" I ask teasing.

"We had this conversation but now I think the answer must be no!" Shona confesses.

The hour is getting late and both Cath and Ruth must go. They hurry to dress with both Shona and I teasing at their bodies as they do so, I managing to drive a finger up Cath's well lubed arse while massaging her clit with my thumb bringing her off gently while Shona does something similar for Ruth - except I think Shona, being Shona, is three fingers deep in her cunt! We say goodbye and once more Shona and I are alone again. If yesterday had been one long orgy, today has been a series of orgies strung together with only periods of brief respite between.

Shona sighs again "I enjoyed all that. Did you?"

"Yes too right I did but I suppose I'll need to go soon." I reply.

"Please not quite yet. Wait there a minute." Shona implores before rushing next door. She comes back with 3 little metal balls in her hand. "Know what these are?" she asks. To me they look like marble sized ball-bearings so I say so. "No!!, they're Ben-wa balls. Know where they go?" I shake my head. "In my puss of course! Supposed to really up the anti for both boy and girl when they fuck. Want to put them in place for me?" She lies back spreading her legs wide, I kiss her slit pushing my tongue as deep into her hole as I can and then press the first ball into place with my finger. "Mumm feels good." Shona mutters as I continue with the second and third balls before finally swirling them round inside her. She gasps "You'd better get your cock in there quick. If it feels this good with just your finger, I can't wait to try your cock!" I pull my finger out and lick her juices from it, making her wait, teasing her. "Come on!" she begs. "Fuck me, let me feel your cock." Moving slowly to draw out her anxiety I position myself above her, running my knob up and down her slit before giving her what she wants as I slide into her hot, wet hole. I can feel the little balls retreating ahead of my dick really stimulating my knob. Shona is gripping the arms of the seat tightly, her breath already coming in short pants and as soon as I hit bottom on the very first stroke she comes and comes hard, her eyes glazing over, a low inarticulate sound coming from deep within her. As she comes constantly the groan getting ever louder I gently slide in and out of her velvetness, keeping the pace slow sensing Shona couldn't cope with anything faster. And cope she must - I certainly don't want her to make me stop, the feeling of her tight, tight cunt against my cock, the balls teasing at my knob heightening the sensation, is just too good. I try to hold back from coming if only to prolong the moment but have to give in. My balls tighten to deliver Shona's reward making my cock jump inside her and driving her ever higher in orgasm as she feels my seed inside her. I try to fuck through my own orgasm as I had done the first time Shona and I had made love but Shona pulls away unable to take any more. I lie down beside her caressing her breasts softly as her breathing slowly returns to normal.

"Wow! Must get myself some of these!" Shona eventually gasps still panting. "I was in orbit - totally gone. Don't you dare tell me I looked peaceful!"

"No not peaceful, more like serene - a kind of radiant glow..." I start only to be cut off as Shona reaches round to playfully slap me.

"Come off it! I'm coming harder than a steam train and you're telling me I looked serene?"

"Honest, if only you could see yourself - need to video you sometime so you can see for yourself. By the way, it was mind blowing for me too, thanks for asking." This earns me another slap, harder this time.

"Good, "she smiles reaching down to slowly wank my still erect cock "I'm only sorry I couldn't keep going to let you come again but I'd have passed out before you did and that would have been no good." She kneels up to extract the Ben-Wa balls, allowing me to slide beneath her. "Let try that again without these" she says climbing back on board my dick making me gasp, my dick still ultra-sensitive (but ultra-hard) after my last climax. "I don't think I could cope with another round with them!"

Her puss is so hot as she bucks up and down on me rotating her hips first one way and then the other, belly dancing in effect. "Like that Jim?"

I just groan. What a beautiful feeling she was setting up in my cock. I feel as though my entire gentiles are going to melt when she pulls me over the edge just a couple of minutes later in perfect time with her own orgasm. Shona lowers herself down beside me and we cuddle some more. "That was a nice way to end Shona. You have a fantastic puss." I say drawing her mouth to mine for a long, long kiss.

"Well your cock isn't bad either. Now get yourself home before you miss your curfew and get grounded." Shona 'complements' me as the kiss breaks.

Reluctantly I dress. "Aren't you dressing too? I ask as Shona lies watching.

"Me? No, I'm going for a shower and then straight to bed. I'm knackered! Think of me curled up naked in bed."

"That would keep me hard all night and then I'd never get any sleep!" I rejoin.

"That would never do - you need your strength for me tomorrow. Although..." A look of sadness crosses her face.

"What?"

"Well tomorrow's Friday. That means I'll be going straight to Brigade Camp after school. And its not just me, Cath, Ruth and Joyce'll be going too. And Eileen, not sure how interested she is in you right now anyway, and Sheila, they're leaders. It might give me a chance to get it on with Sheila though!" She brightens. "Need to arrange something to keep you out of mischief!"

"I've always got an open invitation to a farm!" I remind her of Dot's invitation to 'have some fun with me and my sister and cousins'. "Or I could try sleeping or catching up with some school work!"

"Boring - not Dot, that does sound fun. Sally is a wonderful pussy eater and her twin cousins aren't bad either. Bet they'll be great lays for you Jim."

"Bet they won't be half as good as you." I say finishing dressing.

"What sweet, little, innocent me? Why do you like my little pussy so much?" Shona almost purrs out the question stroking her slit to tease me as she does so.

"Sweet yes. Little yes. Tight as hell yes. Innocent, no, not after the last couple of days!" I cross to her and kiss her puffy pussy lips sticking my tongue into her hole in a sort of one-sided French kiss making her squirm. "And I'll leave you to work out why I think you're the best lay in the world." I finish as I break the kiss and stand up.

She jumps up and hugs me "You say the most romantic of things Jim!" We kiss goodbye and once more I make my way home for some well earned rest. "By the way, quite fancy the video." Shona shouts after me!"

"Speak to Sheila - she sees to all the lab equipment at school." I call back softly, including the school's video camera I think to myself as I make my weary, and I do not deny weary albeit well satisfied, way home. What a girl!


------------

Please leave some feedback - there is no point in me writing if no one is reading...
BD

My Daughter and My Battle Within

reeb76 on Incest Stories

My Daughter and My Battle Within

 

For the last five years, I have fought a major battle of morality within my own mind. My daughter, since the age of twelve, now seventeen, has developed into an absolute gorgeous young woman. My secret desires have remained within my mind for so long now, explicit taboo thoughts of incestuous lust. This is a story, an account of how I fought this battle and how this battle was ultimately lost.

I know there are many men, fathers out there that also fight this secret battle within and I admire those who can win the battle and keep their lustful desires under control. Any man with a beautiful daughter, niece, cousin, sister, aunt or even mother, has fought this taboo battle of incestuous lust and desire to some degree

Read More
or another. Those who deny it are simply liars.

I had thought of incest before in life as one of my younger sisters was very attractive. She had very nice large breasts and a perfectly sweet ass. I managed to catch her getting dressed or undressed many times to fuel my fantasies. Several times I was fortunate enough to see her bare breasts. She had very large puffy nipples that instantly made my cock rock hard.

Our family had an in ground pool so I was often awarded the sight of my sexy little sister or her hot looking friends prancing around in their skimpy bikini's. It seemed like I was in a constant state of erection. Her friends were very sexy and hot too but seeing my sister aroused me more than any of her friends.

My sister had this very sexy red, white and blue one piece swim suit that she must have removed all the liners. When it was wet, you could clearly see every detail of those perfect nipples and see the most erotic looking pussy, a perfect camel toe. Whew, my cock is like a steel pipe just thinking back of the sexy sights of my hot little sister.

When I was young, I often imagined her sexy lips wrapped around my thick cock as I masterbated. I imagined her soft butt pressing against my thighs as my hard cock slid deep into her hot wet pussy from behind. I imagined reaching around her and rolling those huge nipples between my fingers as my cock slides in to the hilt.

Still to this day, my cock hardens at the thought of fucking my own sister but I won that battle and those thoughts remain deep inside the secrets of my sexual fantasies. With my maturing daughter, she has replaced my sexy sister in that dark taboo place within my mind. My most secret sexual fantasies now revolve around my gorgeous sweet and sexy seventeen year old daughter.

My wife is still very attractive but lately, when we are making love, I imagine in my mind I'm making love to my sexy little daughter. My orgasms are intensified ten fold as I shudder and expend my hot load deep inside my wife's pussy.

Let me describe my daughter, my sweet young Erin to you. Now at seventeen, Erin has long straight sandy blonde hair about shoulder length, gorgeous blue-green eyes, stands about 5 feet 4 inches tall, weighs barely 100 pounds. She has very smooth skin which tans golden brown very easily. She is very thin, with not an ounce of fat on her sexy little body.

My daughter has this gorgeous mature woman model face. She could very easily pass for being twenty years old but yet she's only seventeen. As her young teenage body developes, she appears more like a woman rather than the young girl she really is. She fills the air around her with pure sexual excitement and she is beginning to realize her effects on every man she comes in contact with.

This is very much a problem for me and every other man who casts their eyes upon her sweet teenage beauty. I've often caught men of all ages stealing lustful glances at her, their eyes devouring every inch of her gorgeous young body and me her father, being a man which her beauty creates the same effect on as with all the others.

Through the past few years, I've been able to keep my secret desires checked but lately it's become very hard. Erin is becoming quite aware of her affect on men, all men, including her own father. She is realizing that she can manipulate men with her sexuality, that men are weak and therefore she can control them.

When her mother isn't around, she will prance around the house in skimpy little shorts, with a halter top or a t-shirt without a bra. God, sometimes I can clearly see her hard nipples standing straight out. It takes all my will, not to reach out and touch them or even worse, just grab her and rape her.

Last Saturday morning, the day of her big high school prom dance later that night, I was treated to such an erotic sight. My wife was grocery shopping at the store and I was sitting at the kitchen table having breakfast. Erin came bouncing down the steps, walked past me, opened the frig and bent over looking inside.

As she bent over and looked inside, I was treated with such a sight, my cock was throbbing in seconds. Erin was wearing a large blue t-shirt with only a pair of very sexy white lace boy shorts panties underneath. I was treated with a perfect view of one of the sexiest butts I had ever seen. I instantly thought of my sister's very fine looking tush and all the times I lusted over her fine looking ass.

My daughter stood there only a few seconds but it seemed like minutes as I took in every inch of that sweet teenage ass. I could just see her pussy mound bulging out between those perfectly smooth and sexy thighs, that perfect diamond made just for the penatration of a hard cock from behind.

Under the table, my fingers lightly stroked my cock to it's full eight inches. I was rock hard and throbbing as I felt my face flush with sexual heat. Those panties were sheer enough that I could clearly see each sexy butt cheek and the dark crack between them. Ummmmm, such a perfect sight of a young girl's ass, I couldn't imagine anything finer.

Seconds later, she spun around and placed the juice container on the counter, poured herself a glass and left the room. I was so fucking aroused I could hear my heart pounding in my throat. Did she actually do that to me and not even realize what she was doing? I will forever wonder.

Tonight was prom night and she was so happy, so full of spirit as she was asked to go by one of the most popular boys in her class. Honestly, I think she never even realized that she almost gave poor dad a heart attack, hah! I remember thinking of how was she wearing such sexy undies, although I didn't mind the sight one bit.

The rest of the day passed by rather quickly until finally around 6 pm, Erin came down stairs in her prom dress. My heart shuddered as she looked absolutely gorgeous. Her dress was a lovely light blue satin, tucked in just perfectly to accent her growing breasts and exposing her tanned smooth sexy shoulders. She was just so beautiful, a view of perfect teenage beauty.

"Spin around honey and model for us." I said as my wife and I inspected her lovely prom dress.

As she turned around, my cock began to harden again. The back of her dress was cut so low, almost to the top of her sexy butt. Her back was completely bare, no bra straps, just smooth sexy tanned skin exposed down to her ass. The dress was shaped tightly around her waist leaving nothing to imagine about how sweet her young body was as well as her perfect little ass The same ass I was drooling over earlier that day. God, she was absolutely beautiful and glowing with excitement.

Her date arrived and off they went on their long awaited prom night. After a few hours my wife went to bed complaining of a headache so I knew not to ask for sex later. I resolved to watching some porn on the tube and pleasuring myself later after Erin got home.

I was beginning to wonder how late Erin would be out as we had an eleven o'clock curfew. Somewhere just around eleven o'clock, I heard the front door close rather hard and I heard Erin crying softly in the kitchen as she entered the living room.

"What's wrong baby?" I asked as she entered the room.

"Brad's such a jerk! All he thinks about is himself. He's such an asshole!" she cried out softly.

"What happened honey?" I asked in a fatherly way. I remember my temper building as my imagination ran wild.

"Well, he paid more attention to his buddies and trying to get drunk than he did me. Oh Daddy!" she whimpered as she came over and sat on my lap, curled up crying softly into my shoulder.

Now I had a problem, which was rising fast. I was sitting on my chair, wearing only a t-shirt and a pair of gym shorts, nothing underneath. Feeling my young daughters body, the heat building between us, quickly sent blood to my now hardening cock. The slippery smooth silk material, her smooth sexy shoulders and as I gazed down at her, I could clearly see the swells of her large teenage breasts.

My right hand caressed her shoulder, trying to comfort her as she sobbed. My mind raced back to earlier that night, the sight of her smooth tanned exposed back, down to the sexy top of her sweet teenage butt. My hand drifted off her shoulder and down her back just a bit.

My cock got harder and harder, feeling her soft butt pressing against it. Oh god, she has to feel it growing under her. I tried to change my thoughts but those perfect tanned breasts, her sexy smooth back, her sweet smell was like a drug to my system. I squeezed her harder as my right hand caressed her smooth back as my left hand softly caressed her right thigh.

My heart was pounding as I was so close to my deepest and darkest thoughts as I caressed my sexy daughter. I dared not get any bolder with my touches but my lust grew and I did. I brought my right hand lower and was now caressing just above her sexy ass, then softly touching her at the edges of her dress, flaunting with skin covered by the edges of her dress. My cock was completely hard, all throbbing eight inches as I tried no longer to hold my desires and lust back.

I felt Erin push her little butt back and forth a bit as she confirmed my cock was definitely hard, there was no mistake. Suddenly she sat up a looked deep into my eyes and said "Daddy, it your thing hard because of me?" her voice trailed off softly.

Reality hit me as I nearly panicked, not sure how to reply. I know how a father should reply but I didn't act that way. I stammered out "Yes honey, you are just so damn beautiful tonight."

She looked a me with those tear filled eyes and gave me a sweet smile as she leaned in and hugged me hard. "I love you daddy." she said softly.

As she hugged me, I felt her sliding off my lap, her lower body sliding down between my legs. The next thing I knew, my sexy daughter was on her knees between my legs. She looked right at me as she reached out and grabbed my thick eight inch hard cock, holding it inside my shorts.

I was so shocked as I asked, trying to muster up a fatherly tone, "What are you doing baby?"

"Daddy, I was going to lose my viginity to Brad tonight. Right now, I can't think of anyone I'd rather make love to more than you. I know you feel the same way, right?" she asked as she squeezed my throbbing shaft.

"Oh baby, are you sure?" I softly moaned out.

"Yes Daddy, now let me see that big cock of yours." as she grabbed the sides of my shorts tugging them down.

I lifted my butt off the chair slightly as Erin gently pulled down my shorts, over my knees, down and off, tossing them on the floor. I watched closely, my heart pounding as my sexy little daughter leaned forward, grabbed my cock at it's base and began to lick the huge swollen purple head like her first lolly-pop. God, what an erotic sight, one I never dreamed I would actually see.

"Oh yes baby, that's it, lick daddy's hard cock honey. Ummmmm yes, it's all hard for you love, ohhhhhhhh god yessssssssssss!" I moaned.

I couldn't believe my eyes as I watched my daughter's perfect soft lips and tongue caress my hard cock. What a sight, as she looked directly up into my eyes , opened her mouth and wrapped those soft red lips around my cock. I watched as my huge purple cock head slipped between those sweet lips into her hot teenage mouth.

I was so excited as I again could hear my heart beating in my throat. I watched with so much love, so much lust as my deepest darkest incestuous desires were coming true right before my eyes. I swear my cock grew another inch, if that was possible, at the sight of my sexy daughter's lips gliding up and down my throbbing shaft.

She lightly caressed my balls as she mouthed the side of my shaft, her lips gliding up and down the length of my hard cock. As she got to the top, she looked deep into my eyes once more, a smile crossed her lips as she opened her mouth and once again took my throbbing cock head between her soft red lips.

I remember thinking, just for a second, where did she learn, at the age of seventeen, to suck cock like a porno star. God, she was so good at this I could feel my cum starting to rise. I couldn't remember anything so erotic and exciting in my life. Could this be what I would have experienced if I tried to fuck my sexy sister?

This taboo sex, this forbidden act of incest was such an erotic turn on I couldn't believe how excited I was and how aroused I could be. My cock felt like it was harder than it was ever before in my life. I was quickly reaching the most intense orgasm of my life but I wanted to feel that feeling of being buried deep inside my daughter's virgin pussy.

"Erin, take that dress off for daddy. Do a little strip tease for me honey, ok?" I managed to moan out on seconds before she pushed me too far.

She gave me a big smile as she slowly stood up in front of me. She slowly twirled around in front of me, stopping with her sexy back toward me. Still with her back to me, she kicked off her shoes and looked over her shoulders. God, she looked so fucking sexy and so hot as she slid her dress off her shoulders and down her perfect body until it was a heap on the floor.

My heart was pounding once more as I quickly removed my t-shirt and gently stroked my rock solid cock, lusting for my gorgeous teenage daughter. Before my eyes, she stood there in those sexy white laced boy shorts panties, with white garter belts holding up her sheer nylons.

In my eyes, she was no longer a young girl but a beautiful young woman. Pre-cum oozed from my shaft as I stroked it's full length and said "Bend over honey and show me that sweet ass of yours."

"Sure daddy, I know how that turns you on." she said with a sexy lustful smile.

"Oh yeah baby, hmmmmm such a nice ass you have." I moaned as I gripped my cock harder.

Erin pushed her tush out and spread her long legs slightly, giving me a perfect view of her sexy pussy mound from behind. She arched her back and pushed her butt out even further as she reached between her legs and ran her finger up the crack of her pussy. Up and down her slit she pushed her fingers harder until I could see the crotch of her panties getting wet and darker on each pass.

I thought I was going to shoot my load high in the air at that point so I gripped my cock hard and held it there. I had to slow this down a little but I was so fucking turned on as my daughter's next move was even more arousing than the last.

"Are you ok daddy?" she said in such a sexy little girl voice, smiling as she knew damn well what she was doing to me.

As she looked deep into my eyes once more, she turned and faced me, exposing her perfect breasts to my eyes for the first time. Her breasts were larger than I imagined them to be, about a full C-cup with gorgeous dark puffy nipples. As our eyes connected, she cupped her breasts and gently caressed and stroked her hard erect nipples between her fingertips.

After show casing her sexy tits for me for a few minutes, she continued with her sexy strip tease as she undid each garter belt and slowly slid each nylon down her long tanned legs. Once again she spun around, showing me her absolutely perfect butt.

Looking over her shoulder at me, knowing she was turning her own father on so bad excited her beyond her own imagination. Her juices were flowing from her tingling pussy as the crotch of her panties were absolutely soaking wet. Could it be this lustful drive for incest was part of her secret desires too?

As she watched her well hung father stroke his hard cock, she slowly began peeling those sexy little panties over her soft butt, ever so slowly until her pussy was completely exposed to his lustful eyes. She watched his intent gaze as she slid her wet panties to the floor and stepped out of them.

As he leaned back in the chair, his legs straight out with his thick cock pointing straight up in the air, she slowly walked over toward him, straddling his legs until her pussy was just above his huge cock. I looked down at the sexiest young pussy I had ever seen.

Her pussy was lightly covered with a sandy blonde light brown hair, very neatly trimmed but her pussy lips were glistening with her juices. As she leaned forward to kiss him on the lips, his hand touched his daughter's pussy for the first time. As their lips met, his fingers spread her pussy open, gliding up her wet gash until he touched her erect clit for the first time, sending shivers throughout her teenage body.

She pushed her hips forward until her pussy pressed against her father's cock, sliding his cock up and down the length of her opening. As they kissed softly, her wet pussy working against his thick shaft.

"Oh baby, you're driving me wild." I moaned out.

"Fuck me daddy, pleeeeeease make love to me." she moaned back.

I could hold back any longer as I firmly grabbed her hips and lifted her up. She spread her legs wide to my sides as I lined the hard cock up with her wet opening. As I lowered her I felt my thick cock head pressing against her wet pussy lips, spreading them ever so slightly.

As I looked up at my daughter's pretty face, her eyes were closed and she was biting her lower lip, a look of a little girl as her daddy's cock was ready to make her a woman for the first time. I watched her face as my cock slowly spread her open further, my cock head was just about inside her.

"Ohhhhh yesssssss daddy, yesssss fuck me!" she panted out as my cock slowly pressed further inside her.

Although she was a virgin, there was not much resistance as my cock slowly spread her wide open, pulling her down until I was buried completely inside her very tight young pussy. I didn't know at the time but she had broken her hymen years earlier with one of her mother's vibrators.

It didn't matter to me, my hard cock was buried deep inside my own daughter's tight wet pussy. I was so fucking aroused I couldn't believe it. My cock throbbed deep inside as I stretched her pussy further than it was ever stretched before. Knowing my cock was the first cock inside my daughter was such a turn-on.

It was an extreme turn-on for her too as she always had lustful thoughts of her father. She often listened outside their bedroom door as he drove his huge cock deep inside her mom, wishing it was her pussy wrapped around his gorgeous cock and finally, now it was.

Slowly he lifted his down up, his thick cock coming almost out before pulling her down hard, driving his cock dep inside her hot wet pussy again. Slowly she got in rhythm with his thrusts, gyrating her hips, flexing her knees in time with his every thrust.

Her body trembled with sexual excitement as she couldn't believe how huge he felt inside her, how stretched she felt, how full her pussy was as he pulled her down hard once more on his thick eight inch shaft. His firm hands on her hips, controlling her pleasure as she was impaled by his cock, riding him for all her worth.

The pace quickened, faster and faster, deeper and deeper, harder and harder he thrust up into her sweet young pussy. Her beautiful tits bouced in front of his eyes as his sexy daughter rode his thick cock. She cupped her breasts, squeezed her swollen nipples hard as her head rocked back. Her orgasm was quickly cumming as was his.

Her juices now covered his crotch as she was moaning loudly with each upward thrust. He slowed the pace, driving her wild as he angled her hips, hitting a fresh set of pussy nerves. She squeezed her pussy as tight as she could, like a vice around her father's cock. God, she was so fucking tight.

After several minutes of slow grinding fucking, he began to pound his cock up into his daughter. Faster and faster until both couldn't stand it any longer. She reached her orgasm first, as her little body tensed up tightly and started to shake all over. To his surprise, she squirted her juices all over his crotch and stomach as she shuddered and shook all over. His beautiful daughter was a fucking squirter, god he shuddered.

He was so fucking turned on, as his daughter shot her juices out with such force he could feel it all over himself. With her hot juices covering him, he pulled her down hard and belted out three huge spurts of his cum deep inside his daughter's soaked pussy.

She collapsed on top of him as he held her tightly, feeling her pussy quiver and squeeze his still rock hard cock. Her hips quivered and shook as she went through wave after wave of orgasm. She have never cum so hard in her life. She knew her juices squirted out a little but this was with so much force, she completely soaked her father's crotch, not to mention the living room chair.

As the throws of orgasm passed both of them, he could feel his own juices leaking out of his daughter's wet pussy, which was still tightly wrapped around his still hard shaft. He couldn't believe it but his cock was still rock hard inside his daughter's hot pussy.

He gripped her soft ass cheeks and slowly stood up, still deep inside her as her legs wrapped around him as she clung to him, holding tightly around his neck. Slowly he carried her to the downstairs bathroom where they took a hot shower together, fucking and sucking themselves off a few more times that night.

From now on, father would have his daughter at every possible chance they got for they both found the taboo sex of incest to be just what they needed. I also began to think of ways to seduce and finally get a chance to fuck my own sister. Time to live out another dark deep sexual fantasy.

Looking out from the hallway, she was fingering her pussy as she shuddered with an orgasm of her own, as she watched as her daughter and husband fucking in the living room. Her juices squirted out covering her hand as she too was a squirter, just like her daughter.

Shona and fiends Part 1

theBlackDouglas on Teen Stories

Chapter 1 - Wednesday

It is the day after my thirteenth birthday and, being a school day, as usual I had had lunch at my girlfriend Shona's house and now as usual we are enjoying a snog on the couch our lips pressed together, our tongues entwined. My hand goes to her breast but instead of her pushing it off as she always had in the past she turns slightly giving me better access. As I explore her soft mound I feel her nipple rising and discover that she wears no bra! My cock is stiff at once pressing through the material of my trousers into her leg.

Shona breaks the kiss and I think I've blown it. "Is that a gun in your pocket or are you just pleased to see me?" she asks May West fashion.

"Definitely pleased to see you." I instantly repl
Read More
y.

"Well why don't you see some more?" she murmurs.

Emboldened I kiss her on the lips and then start to unbutton her school blouse and feast my eyes on her small firm tits - the first I'd ever seen in the flesh. Unable to resist I drop my mouth to her nipple and kiss it lightly while fondling her other tit. Do they feel good! Shona moans softly. "Harder" she says "I like my tits sucked harder." Somewhat surprised by this I never the less comply sucking first one tit and then the other completely into my mouth biting her nipples gently as I do so. I am in heaven and judging by her moans Shona is too. She reaches down first to caress my hardness and then fumbles with my belt until she can slide my trousers and underwear down to release my now rock hard, massive cock. "Its so big Jim - I never knew it was so big!" I'd got hard during our snogs before but nothing like this had ever happened.

She takes my hand and places it under her skirt between her thighs. As I feel the wetness on the material of her panties she says "Feel what you've done to me. What are you going to do about it?" Feel I do as I push her panties aside and gently caress her pussy lips while I stumble for a reply.

Suddenly she stands up. "Take off all your clothes" she commands proceeding to do the same herself. Naked, I feast on her nakedness - short at 5'4" or so compared with my 6', slim with small perfectly shaped breasts with large erect nipples and a gorgeous twat with barely a hair on it, she being a little younger than I.

"What are we going to do with this?" she asks taking my rather large and very thick prick in her hand and stroking it gently. Without waiting for a reply she drops to her knees in front of me and kisses the end of my knob. I nearly come there and then but without another word or pause she envelops the whole length of my cock in her mouth and down her hot tight throat in one graceful movement until my heavy balls are banging off her chin. The feeling on my still virgin cock is indescribable as she sets up a bobbing motion, up and down on my long thick shaft. After no more than a couple of minutes her hot, tight mouth is too much for my inexperienced cock and I begin to pump my sperm into her tummy. She swallows the lot before coming up for air. Licking her lips and pouting most seductively she says "I never expected it to taste so good. I could get to like this"

"So could I! Where did you learn to do that!" I reply.

"Oh! I've never done anything with a boy before Jim! I've only seen my sister do her boyfriend a few times but he's nothing like the size of you - I didn't know if I'd be able to take you all"

"Well you most certainly managed. I've never known feelings like that before - I thought I was going to die and go to heaven as you sucked me off. What else have you seen your sister do?"

"Oh just about everything. Fucking, sucking, you name it"

"Does she know you watch?" I enquire.

"With her boyfriend? No I don't think so - I can be very quiet when I need to be and often she sneaks him back when Mum and Dad are out working at the pub and she thinks I'm asleep. That's when I get the chance to peek. But it was she who introduced me to girly sex about 18 months ago - I was in the shower frigging my clit like mad as I had for ages before both in the shower and in bed when the door opened and Eileen stepped in quite naked. 'So little Sis - discovered your joy button have you?' she said replacing my hand with hers while her other hand went to my tit, tweaking my nipple sharply. I'd never known anything like the sensations she was inducing in me and I responded by dipping my head to suck her tit while my hand in turn went to her clit. We both came in short order and ever since have enjoyed each others' bodies regularly. She never actually told me she's not a virgin any more but about six months ago while I was fondling her pussy I slipped a finger up her cunt to discover I couldn't feel her hymen as I always had before. I took full advantage of the situation and soon had my whole fist up her cunt as she squealed with joy coming almost continually and since then I've see her and John fucking regularly - its always such a turn on. My experience with Eileen stood me in good stead at High School - I don't suppose you know what happens in the girl's hockey changing room?"

"No, pray tell?" says I all ears (and cock.)

"Well after the game the first and second years have to pleasure the seniors. For example, after today's game I'll have to eat out Dot Black - gorgeous puss but I get nothing in return."

"Well what would you like in return from me? You're due something after making me come like that!"

"Have you ever eaten puss?"

"Give's a break!"

"Well get started." Shona says lying back on the couch and spreading her legs wide. Taking the hint I place my head between her legs and begin my exploration of her cunt with my broad tongue savouring her taste. What a taste - who could describe it - sharp, sweet, savoury, salty all at the same time. Acting on instinct I lash her slit and clit making her writhe beneath me until she comes with an almighty rush flooding my mouth with her juices. I continue to lap at her cunt until she pulls me upwards. I kiss her soft flesh as I go until suddenly I feel the knob of my cock press against her soft pussy lips.

"Go on - fuck me" she says, her eyes filled with lust "Fill me with your cock."

With her legs resting on my shoulders I continue forward feeling my knob part her moist lips before coming against a resistance. The pressure on my knob is an exquisite pain but from what little I know, I know that the next stage could be very painful for Shona but before I can decide what to do for best she bucks her hips up towards me and suddenly I'm through, my cock buried deep within her, my knob banging off her cervix, her velvet vice of a cunt clutching at every inch of my cock. If her throat was good this is better yet. I rest for a moment just savouring her tightness. "Shona, that feels so good." I moan.

"Feels good for me too Jim. You feel huge in me - I could definitely get to like this. Now fuck me long and hard!" she replies.

Again taking the hint I start to pump my cock in and out of her vice like puss in a long slow action nearly withdrawing on every stroke before plunging my full length into her again. Realising that her legs would support my weight I raise my hands to her tits and start to massage her chest rolling her nipples between my thumbs and fore fingers. This does it for Shona and she climaxes hard as I continue to pump my cock into her tight cunt until I feel my balls harden and I shoot my load into her. Not softening one iota, I continue to take my pleasure in Shona's tight hole savouring every stroke, the pressure on my cock exquisite, until we both came again in unison. Shona is now on a plateau of orgasm, coming every time my dick bottoms out in her cunt until I, in my inexperience, misjudge my stroke and come completely out of her sopping cunt. I push forward again but miss the mark.

"Jim! That's my arse!" Shona squeals.

I pull back but Shona follows pressing her anus against the knob of my cock. "Come on! Do it! Fuck my arse Jim - I've always liked my girlfriends getting my arse." More than a little curious and more than a little aroused I push forward again until my knob breaks through her tight sphincter. I pause for a moment my knob just inside her letting us both adjust to the sensations. As I feel Shona press up against me forcing my cock deeper into her rectum I respond and begin to press my full 12" inches into her hot tight arse. As I feel her relax I begin to stroke my cock in and out of her in ever increasing measure until she is taking my entire length on every stroke. Shona is in a state of constant climax and all too soon I unload another load of sperm into her colon filling her to over flowing. I pull out of Shona's arse and we lie cuddling with me fondling her tits and gently probing her cunt and arse with my fingers.

"That was fantastic" I tell her "I'd never have believed anything could be so good. You are SO tight Shona."

"Well it was pretty good for me too. Guess Dot'll have to look elsewhere for her post-match pleasure today." she says hunching down on my fingers forcing them deeper into her cunt and coming again.

"What do you mean?"

"Well I don't think we're going back to school this afternoon - its gone 1:30 already. Come and have a shower." Shona replies partially evading the question.

She grabs my still half-hard dick and leads me to the bathroom. The shower cubical is large enough for us both and soon Shona has the temperature adjusted just so and we both step in. I find a bar of soap and begin to lather up Shona's luscious body paying special attention to her smallish but firm tits and puss. She responds by soaping up my reawakened dick, the lather making her fist feel more like her tight puss than anything else. As I squeeze her tits hard I ask what she meant about liking her tits sucked hard. She explains that ever since Eileen had discovered her in the shower and introduced her to the joys of the female body she had systematically seduced nearly all her girlfriends loving nothing better than to have her tits sucked and her pussy eaten out by them. Until today that is - today she had discovered the joys of fucking and she had never come like it in her life before although she admits I was only ever meant to get her tits as my birthday present. I kiss her left nipple and suck her entire tit into my mouth while fondling the right. I lower a hand between her legs to find her stiff clit and work some magic there as I ask why she went further and what she meant about Dot Black.

"You were turning me on so much with the way you handled my tits and when I realised how big your cock was I just had to have you - and I need you again NOW. If you don't fuck my puss in the next thirty seconds I'll die from frustration."

My ministrations to her clit have got Shona really worked up so I stand her on a small raised platform inside the shower cubical and kneel down pressing my face to her bare pubes laving at her slit making her come again. As I stand up my cock strikes gold forcing it's way up Shona's tight, tight cunt once more. We both moan with pleasure as I set up a nice slow rhythm enjoying her tightness to the full as my long thick cock stretches her pussy to its limit once more. She comes hard on my dick and I stop stroking to give her time to recover. We kiss deeply, my hand finds her breast and then something special happens - without me moving my cock one millimetre Shona's cunt begins to milk my cock. The firmer I caress her tits the stronger her puss clamps down on me. The sensation is out of this world and soon we both come to an explosive climax.

"Wow! That was fantastic." I say as I pull out of her. "I know you said you liked your tits getting got but well..."

"Mumm, loved what you did!"

I press again about Ms Black.

"Well right now I should be in the shower of the girls' changing room at school pleasuring Dot as she sees fit, probably sucking her tits or eating out her pussy. its the way it goes - all the senior girls have a first or second year 'fag' for them. Sometimes more than one. Catherine Hutchinson will probably do her today but she'll have some punishment for me for not showing up - I'm kind of her favourite." Shona confides. "Much as I love the feel of the girl's tits or the taste of her puss its a one-sided thing so normally Hutch and I will come back here afterwards and eat each other out till we come."

"Doesn't the games mistress know anything is afoot?" I ask in my surprise.

"Wendy? You bet she does - she joins in most times!" Shona laughs back.

"Oh Wendy is it? Not Miss Maclean?" I counter.

"No, definitely Wendy! We'd never been intimate but last week she summoned me her office after gymnastics. I'd been bending and stretching on the floor mats all period, guess we all had, but once or twice I thought I saw her look at me in a special kind of way. Anyway at the end of the period as we were all skipping of to change she said 'Not so fast Miss Campbell - I need to see you in my office.' Wondering what I'd done I follow her inside the office. Immediately she locks the door and comes to hug me. I yield as, well, she has the most fantastic body - I suppose in effect she works out all day, every day, its her job - and I'd always hoped to get it on with her some time in the showers but she always seemed to prefer the older girls."

I have to agree, Miss Maclean, Wendy apparently, had come to the school at the start of the school year fresh from teacher training college and immediately had most of the male population lusting after her body. She could only have been 21 or 22 and very desirable.

Shona continues "Wendy said 'I saw you fag Dot the other day after hockey and thought what a waste! Those seniors don't appreciate a fledgling tit or a smooth hairless puss. I do. But I've always held back, sticking to girls over sixteen knowing what would happen to me, my job, my career even if I was caught with one of them let alone someone underage! Today something snapped as I saw you stretching on the mats. It seemed as though you were teasing me the way you moved your body. I just have to have you.' she finished weakly. At once I stripped out of my leotard and lifted her hand to my tit. 'Maybe I was teasing.' I told her. 'I've been after you in the showers all term but you've always evaded. Now perhaps I know why?' Anyway before long she too was naked and we're going hammer and tong at each others bodies, tits, slits, arse holes, cunts, while kissing passionately as we stood naked together. Figuring with a body like that and her being in her twenties she couldn't possibly be a virgin I try to press a finger deep into her cunt as I do with Eileen but she pulled back. 'Don't do that Shona' she said most severely 'I'm a lesbian through and through, I never have and I never will have any form of sex that involves penetration. Lick my cunt.'. Well at the time I didn't know what she was missing as I do now - maybe we can change her mind later - so I dropped to my knees and ate out her fragrant twat - I think she must have used some sort of scented oil on it and she certainly shaves it, probably so her bush doesn't show in a leotard, I don't need to think about that yet - thinking she wanted fagged. She came very quickly but then pulled me to my feet. 'I don't agree with fagging' she said dropping to her knees and proceeding to eat me out in return with her obviously much practised and skilled tongue. I came hard, harder than I ever had before and slump to the floor beside her kissing her all over. We both dress again agreeing how good it had been and I slip back to the changing room. Most of the girls have gone but a few of the older girls eye me up knowingly - I don't think I had been the first to be summoned to Wendy's office. We did it all again after gymnastics yesterday - that's why I was late for your birthday tea. Sorry Jim, but she is good - or I thought she was until today! Having you fuck both my puss and arse hole is in a whole different league!"

Shona bends to pick up the soap flashing her cute arse at me. I move behind her rubbing the knob of my cock over her tight hole. "So you like getting your arse got do you?"

"Mumm-humm but normally its only Hutch's tongue or finger, nothing as large as your cock - that was wonderful. Almost as good as having you in my puss." she replies.

"Want to feel it again?" Without waiting for her answer I pull her back onto my shaft. Her arse hole yields more easily this second time and I am soon stroking my entire length up her rectum. I reach forward grabbing her tits and pinching her stiff nipples quite hard.

"Yes, yes that feels so good. Come on Jim, fuck my arse harder. Harder!" Shona exhorts me as her hand goes to her twat to frig her clit. Then the pressure on my cock becomes even more intense and I realise she has slipped some of her fingers into her own cunt as she explodes into orgasm, coming on my every stroke just as she had previously.

"Shona! I'm coming..." I manage to gasp as I feel my balls tighten.

"Come on Jim! Come in my arse. Fill me with your cream."

And come I do, shooting great wads of sperm into her tight arse. I continue to pump slowly in and out until my cock in it's post-climatic state becomes too sensitive to continue. As I withdraw from her, Shona says "That was nice Jim"

"Nice? Nice? Is that all it was? It was bloody fantastic for me - especially when you started pumping your fingers into your twat. I couldn't hold back."

"Well, no, you're right - it was much better than nice. That's the first time I've felt the inside of my pussy, or any pussy except Eileen's. None of my other girlfriends have ever fucked you see - not even Dot despite what they say about her and Mr Smith (she is rumoured to be having an affair with one of the teachers) - so I can't explore them too deeply. Jim? I've got an idea - I love watching people fuck. When I see Eileen fuck with her boyfriend it gets me SO hot. Dad's porno movies and mags have the same effect - I get so turned on I need to strip naked and play with my tits and puss till I get over."

I can hardly believe what I'm hearing but let her continue wondering where this was leading.

"So how would you like to fuck one of my girlfriends while I watch or even join in? You get to fuck a nice young, virgin puss and arse maybe, Hutch gets her cherry popped by your beautiful, long, hard prick, with staying power I might add, I'll get so hot watching I'll be game for anything and afterwards Hutch and I can explore the depths of each others cunts." Shona explains making it all sound quite logical.

I am dumbfounded. Shona mistakes this for unwillingness. "Of course if you don't want to fuck Hutch simply say who. Joyce? Even Dot maybe - don't tell me you wouldn't want to fuck Dot Black? There isn't a boy or male teacher in the school who wouldn't give their right bollock for the chance."

"No, no" I stammer. "its only that you've taken me rather by surprise." In fact the idea of a threesome with this little sex kitten and virtually any girl in the school appeals greatly. I gather my wits. "Of course I'd love to do that for you Shona." I reply magnanimously "Hutch would be just fine as you two seem to be such special friends." Catherine Hutchinson, "Hutch", was a tall, leggy blond of about my age with striking features, nice tits from what little I'd seen of them and long hair. She was probably Shona's best friend but I hadn't realised just quite how special friends she and Shona were until this afternoon.

"Thanks Jim - you won't regret it. I'll see what I can set up for tomorrow." she enthuses, hugging me tight and kissing my lips.

"I bet I won't." I think hugging her back.

Shona steps out of the shower and hands me a towel; I proceed to towel her dry paying special attention to her breasts and between her legs working her to a state of arousal again - my own erection never really having gone away despite everything - the thought of the promised threesome being enough to keep him interested. I kneel on the bathroom floor, my raging hard on in front of me as I proceed to 'dry' her slit slipping a finger into her vagina as I do so, my thumb rubbing on her erect clit. A moan escapes Shona's lips.

"Don't you ever get enough?" she teases.

"I don't know. I've yet to find out. What about you?" turning the question as I pull her down into my lap, the exquisite tightness of her pussy ensheathing my cock once more.

"I don't know either but it feels so good to have you filling my pussy I could want you there for ever. Its so big - I love the way I can feel you pushing back the walls of my vagina as you slide in until I can feel your knob against my cervix and I love the way it pulses as you come and I've never had such intense orgasms before or cum so many times." Shona explains breathlessly "And right now I'm just enjoying the marvellous sensation of you filling me, stretching me to the limit as we talk."

"What about your arse?"

"That's good too but if I had to choose only one it would have to be my puss."

"Enough talking, let's fuck!" I demand taking her by her slim hips and starting to pump her up and down on my cock repeatedly ensheathing and unsheathing my cock.

Shona gave a little giggle and says "I love it when you talk dirty." Picking up the rhythm, using her legs to make her rise and fall on me frees up my hands and soon they and my mouth are all over her tits, fondling, kneading, nipping, licking, biting, kissing making Shona moan loudly as her passion grows and she ups the pace. Her hands go to her puss, I feel her stroke my shaft until she finds her clit and pushes herself over the edge to her orgasmic plateau. She babbles incoherently, her cunt spasming like crazy milking my cock again as she comes but this time coupled with the up-down motion Shona is maintaining the sensation even more intense than before and that's going some! My cock feels like its going to explode as the now familiar tightening comes to my balls and thick jets of cum pump out of my cock into Shona's waiting puss. Slowly Shona winds down the action and comes to rest with me still inside her.

"Wow! That was the best yet Jim. I thought I was going to die from the sensations." Shona pants as she ties to regain her breath. "Something that good I could never get enough off. I loved the way you got my tits - that drove me crazy."

"Quite a birthday present - don't wrap them I'll take them as they are thanks" I joke earning a punch on the chest.

"Seriously, was it as good for you Jim" Shona implores.

"Definitely the best yet - the way your pussy milks my cock is amazing and coupled with the friction and tightness of your cunt... Well what can I say? Bloody fantastic!"

Shona smiles seductively "Good! You can do that to me anytime."

We finish up in the bathroom and retreat to Shona's bedroom pausing to pick up our clothes on route. I notice the time, 3:30 we had been going at it for three hours and I had a feeling we weren't finished yet.

When we get to the bedroom Shona spreads a bath sheet on the bed, hands me a bottle of baby oil, lies back her legs wide apart giving me the most superb view of her puss and says "Give me a massage Jim. Rub that oil all over my tits."

"Looks like you were right - you can't get enough!" This earns me a pillow tossed in my direction but as soon as I begin to spread the oil over her tits and tummy I'm forgiven. I go slow kneading each bit of skin with infinite care, gently caressing her nipples making them hard again. Soon Shona is moaning gently again and she comes softly.

"That's the first time I've come just from having my tits got. You're a fast learner Jim."

"Well I've got some great material to work with." I quip.

"Lie back - its your turn now." Shona trades places with me and I lie down on my back my cock jutting proudly out restored to his full thick 12 inches - massaging Shona's tits had really turned me on too.

"Looks like you can't get enough either!" she says rubbing her oil covered hand up and down my dick. The oil makes her already smooth skin even smoother and I gasp in extacy. "Excited are you? Well try this." Shona straddles my body facing to my feet and slowly sits down on my well lubed prick arching back so that I can get her tits as she rides me as if possessed. "No point letting it go to waste with a hand job - I guess we're both insatiable." The pressure on my cock is incredible as I go to work on her tits. We're both transported only to be brought back to earth unexpectedly.

"Shona Campbell! What do you think you're doing?" an unseen (by me) but somehow familiar voice rings out.

Shona is in command in no time. "Dot! I suppose I forgot to lock the front door? Wasn't Hutch enough for you today? Come looking for more have you?" she teases. "Well, you will not believe what it feels like to have a long, thick cock stuffed up your cunt, or arse. Get your clothes off and let me suck your tits."

Shona leans up keeping my cock firmly ensconced in her tight cunt but giving me a view of Dot stripping. 16 years old with a firm athletic figure and nicely proportioned tits, Shona had been right - there wasn't a male in the school who wouldn't have given one of his nuts to see the captain of the hockey team naked let alone fuck her! Photos of her in a dripping wet t-shirt after last year's sports day where all you could really see were her stiff nipples poking the material out change hands for a good price in our year. Transfixed by Shona's naked body, her cunt firmly gripping my cock, Dot complies stripping off and moving in front of Shona to let her suck on her tits. Shona goes wild on them sucking and kneading them with her hands and then starts to slide up and down on my thick shaft taking Dot with her kissing her deeply as she does so. Her hand slides down to Dot's clit. "My we are wet aren't we? Did Hutch do you that well or are you excited about me riding Jim's long, thick hard prick? I can't tell you how good it feels and this is the fourth time we've fucked this afternoon. Plus twice in my arse and once in my throat. He feels so good in me, so long, so hard and he can keep it up forever. Want to try?" Shona comes hard as she turns Dot on with her actions and words and then at the top of a stroke pulls me out and angles my cock slightly so that on the down stroke my cock hits Dot's pussy lips rather than her own. Sheer momentum carries Dot down onto my shaft making her cry out a little in pain as her hymen gives way. Shona had been right, she is a virgin - well until 5 seconds ago that is! Her hole is beautifully tight and I feel her cunt walls expanding as she sits down on me until I am balls deep inside her. She rests, savouring the feeling as Shona kisses her again still kneading her tits. "How does it feel Dot? Does it feel as good for you as it does for me?"

Dot can barely answer "It feels wonderful. He's so big!".

Shona slips off and lies back to watch frigging her cunt with a slim candle she has acquired from somewhere as I roll Dot onto her back, settling her legs onto my shoulders getting her into the position in which I'd first fucked Shona thinking if it worked for Shona it should work for Dot too and beginning long slow strokes in and out of her newly violated cunt. She wails out in pleasure - much more vocal than Shona had been - as I stroke in and out of her tight puss feeling her walls expand and contract around me as I do so and play with her tits pulling at her engorged nipples and massaging her firm mounds which are a good deal bigger than Shona's - well she is more than 3 years older!

Out of the corner of my eye I can see Shona pleasuring herself. At first I think she's abandoned the candle as she pushes three fingers up her dripping slit - the sight of fucking obviously really does turn her on - but then I realise she has it pushed up her arse working it in and out with her other hand. Dot comes long and hard underneath me but not in multiple like Shona who gasps out her own orgasm as I pump my load into Dot's tight twat. I pull back deliberately this time out of her letting the last of my jism land on her anus. "Yes" Shona calls out realising what I intend, "Fuck her arse Jim! Dot, you'll never believe how good it feels." Shona moves in and helps me press the head of my cock through Dot's tight ring. The pressure is incredible but as I feel Dot relax I press into her taking long slow strokes until I'm balls deep once more. Shona meantime is feasting on her tits and between us we drive Dot to another orgasm. Shona's hand creeps down to Dot's cunt and she slips a finger inside massaging my prick through her cunt wall nearly causing me to lose it with the increased pressure. However I manage to hold back as Shona dips more and more fingers into Dot, stretching her cunt ever wider until she has her whole fist inside Dot. I give in at this and at the same time as Dot comes to another massive climax I begin to unload into her arse, pumping furiously as I come.

I roll off and lie back watching as Shona achieves her dream of exploring another girl's cunt intimately stoking her fist ever deeper into Dot while pushing two fingers of her other hand up Dot's recently vacated arse. Dot is thrashing about all over the place revelling in the sensations until she passes out after her most intense climax yet.

Shona withdraws her invading fist and starts to lick off her fingers offering them for me to try. I join her in licking off Dot's pussy juice remarking how different it tastes from Shona's own. "Well it look like Dot's trained you well in the art of pleasuring her." says I looking over at her now recovering form.

"We've never done anything like that before! It was so exciting getting my fist into her puss as you fucked her arse. She was so tight around me."

"How do you think it felt for my cock? Tight just isn't the word!"

Shona smiled her seductive smile to me again. "I'd like someone to do that to me while you fuck my arse - want to try that sometime?"

"Name the day - I'd love that, you really are insatiable!" The thought of fucking her sweet arse while one of her girlfriends fisted her, perhaps massaging my glands through her cunt wall got me instantly hard again. She grabs my cock and wags a finger at him. "You behave yourself. I'm going to phone Hutch - why wait for tomorrow?"

Shona leans over grabbing her phone off her bedroom floor and dials a number from memory, her pert little arse waving provocatively in the air. "Hutch is that you?"... "Why wasn't I at school this afternoon?"... "Well you remember what I said I was going to give Jim for his birthday?"... "My tits? that's right! He got me so turned on fondling and kissing them that when I saw the size of his dick I just had to know more. First I sucked him off and he me. By that time I was so far gone I had to go all the way."... "Yeh that's right, alll the way - four times in fact and twice in my arse. You know I've always liked you paying special attention to my arse."... "Pain? Well, not really. It all happened so fast the feeling of him in me and my orgasms soon took over and it was all wonderful!"... "Orgasms? Yes - lots I don't know how many times I've come this afternoon."... "The third time was the best - totally incredible. Every time was brilliant but the third was unbelievable."... "Why not the fourth? Well we were really just getting going when Dot Black walks into the room - I'd left the front door unlocked and she came looking for me to find out why I hadn't been there for her today."... "No she was mesmerised by the sight and stripped off at my suggestion to let me suck her tits. In no time at all I arranged things such that Jim was fucking her too - cunt and arse. And Jim says there was no doubt she was a virgin. I even managed to slide my fist into her cunt while Jim fucked her arse. That was incredible too."... "Yes I've always wanted to do that to a girl but it was you I had in mind really - you know how I love the taste and feel of your pussy Cath."

The sight of Shona's arse coupled with the hot, one sided conversation Shona is having recounting the afternoon's events make me really desperate to fuck again. I look over to Dot but she is still out of it so I move over behind Shona and gently press my engorged cock into her pussy from behind. She feels tighter than ever and I realise that she still has that candle up her arse hole. "Make that five times" Shona sighs into the phone pushing back to take me deep. "Listen." She holds the phone down to her pussy as I push in and out making her cunt slurp. "That's the sound of my pussy being fucked by a 12 inch long and ever so thick cock." ..."Yes 12 inches anyway - it feels bril. Get yourself over here. Leave your inhibitions at home and be prepared to leave your virginity here! I want to see you get laid and to feel your pussy." With that Shona drops the phone and really starts responding to my cock. "God does that feel good Jim! I'm glad I left the candle in place!"

"So am I. It makes you even tighter. I can feel it's hardness pressing against me with every stroke." I respond still fucking her doggy style as the now recovered Dot slips below her and starts chewing on her tits.

"Dot!" Shona exclaims "You've never done anything like that for me before!"

"You've never made me come like that before - no one has" Dot gasps out between kisses "The feel of Jim's cock in my cunt and arse was beyond believe! And then your fist in my cunny - everything was so good it was almost unbearable! Now I want to do the same to you! I want to feel and taste your sweet little tits and cunt! I want to taste Jim's cock and feel it in me again! Shona, I've not been very nice to you despite all the pleasure you've given me this term - now I want to make it up to you."

Dot's mouth works it's way down underneath Shona's body until her tongue is lashing her slit and my cock and balls as we fuck passionately. Shona responds by lowering her mouth to Dot's cunt and proceeds to lick out the big load of sperm I'd deposited there not so long before. The two girls come together, Dot with her powerful single climax and Shona on my every stroke until the sensation becomes too much for her and she pulls away from me. I've fucked so much this afternoon I'm not ready to come yet. For the second time Shona poses the question "What are we going to do with this then?" gently caressing my still stiff cock and answering by commanding Dot to suck me off. "Dot, you said you wanted to taste Jim's cock well get ready."

"What to I do? I've never done it before." Dot replies nervously.

"You hadn't fucked until half an hour ago either had you? Just kiss it and lick it and then slip it into your mouth. If you feel yourself gag, swallow hard and you'll be fine." Shona instructs knowledgeably positioning Dot on her knees in front of me. Dot hesitates slightly until Shona gives her a sharp tweak on the nipple in admonishment and she then plonks a large kiss on my knob, licks my shaft up and down a few times, forms an 'O' with her lips and swallows me whole! Her throat is so tight and I feel the muscles in her neck ripple against my cock as she begins to bob up and down. I close my eyes to concentrate on the intense feelings as Dot sucks my shaft, nearly pulling out on every stroke so that she can flick over the end of my knob with her tongue before plunging me deep into her throat again. She may never have done it before but Dot is learning fast and I could feel my orgasm build within me.

I hadn't noticed what Shona had been up to during this but I guess she must have let Hutch in and stripped her for next thing I know the two of them have joined Dot, licking at my balls as Dot continues her actions. They take turns, each enveloping my ball sack in their mouth, massaging it with their lips and licking at it with their tongues. This is all too much for me, my balls tighten once more and I begin pumping my seed into Dot's tight throat. She withdraws to take as much of it as she can in her mouth and then comes off me to let Shona and Hutch take my last two spurts in their mouths. The three girls kiss passionately, their tongues pressing deep sharing my load between them. Dot's hands running up and down Shona's body exploring everywhere. "What have I been missing only letting you 'fag' me" Dot whispers to Shona "Your sweet little tits, that gorgeous, hairless twat..." The two of them slump onto the bed to continue their explorations of each others bodies, mouths firmly fixed on each others tits while Shona's fingers explore Dot's dripping cunt ever deeper.

Hutch turns her attention to me, firmly gripping my still semi-erect shaft. "Shona's told me all about this! The pair of you got me so hot, fucking while I listened on the phone!" she says slowly stroking me back to working length while I look over her thirteen year old body. I had been right about her tits, small but very nicely formed, her nipples already hard and jutting out nicely - I guess that she and Shona have had a little preliminary action while she was undressing perhaps even exploring each other as they licked at my balls. Her cunt lips glisten with her own juices and the capping of light downy pussy hairs prove she is a natural blond. All in all a very nice package. She lies back on the bed, Shona and Dot having slid to the floor locked in a tight 69 licking and fingering each others' pussies, and mouths "Fuck me Jim. Let me see if Shona was right. Let me feel how good it is to fuck!"

This brings Shona up from the floor where the two girls have just eaten each other to another blistering orgasm. "I want to watch. I have to watch - that was the deal remember?" Shona implores.

I have no inhibitions having already fucked Shona and Dot in front of each other (and more). Hutch leans up and kisses Shona fully on the lips grabbing her breast and rubbing her nipple firmly. "Of course you can watch - I'd probably like it better if you and Dot kiss my tits while we fuck, you know how sensitive my nipples are Shona."

"I've missed out on you too Hutch" Dot says as she moves into position at one side of the bed with Shona on the other ready for the action to start. I shuffle up the bed my cock to the fore positioning myself between Hutch's legs but rather then taking her directly, the sight of her cunt is too hard to resist and I lower my head to it and begin lapping. She cries out partly in pleasure and partly in frustration but my lapping soon makes her relax as I bring her off flooding her puss with her own juices, lubricating her for the coming onslaught. I lift my head and shuffle up the bed and as Dot grabs my cock and positions my knob at the entry of Hutch's yet to be discovered inner treasures and notice that Hutch is holding Shona's hand - true friends indeed. "Don't worry." Shona tells her "You'll be fine - and believe me it really is fantastic and I can't wait to feel the inside of your pussy afterwards." Hutch smiles back at her and squeezes her hand while giving me a slight nod.

"Do me Jim. But go slow."

"Anything you want. Just say the word and I'll do my best to comply. I want you to enjoy this as much as I'm sure I'll enjoy you." I reassure. Despite having taken two virgins already this afternoon I am well aware that my experience isn't vast and I really want to make it as good as possible for Hutch who I know has her fears so I press forward slowly parting her pussy lips with the end of my knob while keeping my body clear of hers to give Shona as good a view as possible. She moans softly and I press forward with a quick jab into her enclosing tightness parting her hymen as I do so causing her to gasp sharply. I stop, my knob just inside her, to give her time to adjust and for any pain to subside as I know it had done quickly for both Shona and Dot. Soon I feel her relax some and I start to push deeper inside.

"Yes, Jim, yes, that feels so good. You feel so big inside me, so hard..." Hutch exclaims. "Shona, you were so right about how it feels - kiss me."

With that Shona squeezes her hand, lets go and proceeds to lick her nipple before sucking her tit fully into her mouth. Dot follows suit on the other side and soon Hutch is coming hard with me stroking fully in and out of her tight puss while the two girls suck hard at her tits. I feel a finger join me at Hutch's cunt and I look down to see Shona frig her girlfriend's clit as I stroke deeply into her puss. Shona replaces her finger with her mouth lapping away at the erect organ while wiggling her arse at me making her come. Knowing what she wants I ball my fist and push it dep into her cunt making her cum in no time at all.

Hutch is still lost in her orgasm as I fuck deeply into her cunt feeling my balls tighten and release my load in seemingly impossible amounts considering how much I'd already fucked today, my balls jerking to produce more. Lastly Dot lifts her mouth from Hutch's tit gasping out her own orgasm as she pumps her fingers deep into her slit.

The other two girls join Hutch and I on the bed, hands going everywhere, my cock, Hutch's sopping cunt, Shona's tits and absolutely every where on (and in) Dot. Shona turns to her girlfriend "Well how did you like it?" she demands.

Hutch lies back a little dreamily. "Absolutely wonderful! It was a little painful at first but that soon went as I got used to the size of his cock - you were certainly right there Shona, it really is a monster and when the two of you started on my tits I was lost. I just couldn't stop coming. Just when I thought it couldn't get any better you started licking my clit! I came so hard I think I passed out for a moment. And then when Jim came in me and I could feel his cock pulsing against the walls of my vagina I lost it again. Thank you Jim!"

She turns to me and gives me a little hug and kiss. "No thank you for trusting me to make your first time good for you and being so good for me. Your puss is wonderfully tight." I assure her. "And as for you Ms. Campbell - well I suppose you said you'd be game for anything if you got to see Hutch get fucked..."

"Call me Cath - save that nickname for school" Hutch, I mean Cath, interrupts.

"Mumm, I loved the feel of your fist in me Jim. What I really want now is for you to fuck me in the arse while Cath explores my cunt with her fist. Then I want to see you fuck Cath's sweet little arse." Shona demands but she is cut off by Dot.

"Look at the time - my last bus is soon!" she exclaims. Dot lives a good few miles out of town in a quiet valley where the bus service is none too good. "Mum'll kill me if I miss it!" But then she lies back "I think I'd better have the next fuck Shona." No one disagrees so I get her up on all fours, doggy style so the girls can get good access to her tits and clit, and press my still hard cock into her hot tight sheath feeding her my length in one stroke until I'm as deep in her as I possibly can be. She comes instantly. The girls scoot underneath her, their hands and mouths all over both Dot's and each others' bodies as I piston in and out of Dot's welcoming tightness making her cry out in passion. I notice Shona keeping one hand for the promised exploration of the depths of Cath's cunt and soon the two girls have forgotten Dot, rolling around, fists pumping into each others' cunts coming continually. If Dot notices they've gone she doesn't seem to care as I drive her to a long series of orgasms each more powerful than the last. Finally I pump another load into her hot pussy as she collapses under me.

Slowly she regains her breath. "I don't want to but I really have to go now. Thank you for everything - I never knew I could feel so good - I'm kinda buzzed! Maybe you could come out to the farm some time and have some fun times with me and my sister and cousins?" she asks as she gathers up her clothes and dresses quickly. Dot's sister, Sally, being fourteen is in the year above me and Shona at school and being an only slightly smaller version of her sister is the stuff wet dreams are made of. The cousins would need to be discovered - they are not at our school and I don't think I've ever met them.

"Sure - I'd like that." says I, the master of understatement.

By now Shona and Cath have come down from their orgasmic highs having fucked each other silly with their fists and we all reluctantly kiss Dot goodbye telling her what a fantastic body she has and what a good lay she'd been.

The three of us lie back pausing for breath. "When do you have to be back Cath?" Shona inquires.

"I'm OK for a while yet. I told Mum I was coming over for tea."

My parents were well used to me spending most of my free time 'studying' with Shona (well it mostly had been up till today) so I too was OK but I suddenly become concerned. "What about your parents Shona?"

"Its OK - they won't be back till nearly midnight by the time they shut up the pub. I'll fix us a bite to eat then I want to feel that beautiful cock up my arse like I said - and don't forget Cath's arse is still cherry - you'd better be up for it Jim. You wouldn't want to let two girls down would you?" Shona teases grabbing my, for once, flaccid cock playfully.

I respond by tweaking her nipples hard. She pulls away. "Wait just now" she says. "I'm hungry."

So, still naked, we troop through into the kitchen where Shona fixes some sandwiches and coke. I sit down to watch and enjoy her trim little body as she stretches and bends into cupboards displaying everything as she does so. Cath sits on my lap and kisses me deeply. This develops into a full blown snog, my hand massaging her chest as we kiss, my cock rising once more.

"Fuck him Cath! Let me see you fuck him again - don't let it go to waste!" Shona intones. "Get it all lubed up in that juicy puss of yours and then take him up your arse - you'll love it."

With a coy smile Cath stands up and, facing me, places one leg either side of the chair. Shona grabs my prick and guides it into her girlfriend's hot tight hole as she sits down again. I could never have too much of this I think to myself as her tightness envelops me once more. Cath leans back supporting herself with her arms on the table. "Is this what you want to see?" she inquires of Shona. "Do you want to see Jim's cock disappearing into my tight little pussy?" Cath certainly knew how to turn her girlfriend on - and me. Slowly she starts to roll her hips making her cunt rise and fall on my prick without moving her upper body and giving Shona an excellent view of our union. The sensation for me in something totally new as my knob rubs around her inner flesh in time with her hip movements. "Come on Shona touch me. Touch Jim's cock as it presses into my cunt. Feel how his thick shaft stretches my pussy lips." Cath comes as soon as Shona complies, her hand exploring the area of our coupling, a finger slipping up her cunt alongside my cock stretching her even further. Wither by instinct or not she too feels my balls begin to tighten, Cath pulls off me leaving me frustrated.

"Uh-uh - you can't come yet." Cath admonishes. "You've got a nice virgin arse to fuck. Mine!"

In saying so she bends over the kitchen table, face down, her firm bum cheeks facing towards me. Shona once more grabs my cock and leads me to Cath, rubbing my knob over her tight anal pucker. Shona dips a long finger into Cath's cunt and then pulls it out trailing it over her arse crack before finally pushing the well lubed digit deep into her arse hole.

"That feels good Shona. But today I want to feel the real thing - help Jim ream my arse!" Cath begs. Shona grabs me and pushes my knob into position. Slowly I lean forward, feeling her anal ring expand ever so slowly to meet the invader. Finally my knob breaks through and I pause, the sensation of her anal ring fluttering on the base of my knob feeling so good, as Cath relaxes. "Deeper, deeper! I want to see you all the way up her arse!" Shona demands.

"Yeh, fuck me deeper." Cath joins in. "Fuck me like you did my puss the first time with long hard strokes. If Shona can take you so can I!"

"its not a contest." I point out. "I don't want to hurt you."

"Shut up and get that cock deep into me!" Cath commands pushing her arse back at me forcing me to comply.

"Where is the sweet innocent girl who was unsure if she could take me in her puss not so long ago" I wonder as I push deeper going slowly despite the girls' demands. Finally my balls are pressing against her pussy lips and I have no more to give. I rest, as much to enjoy the tightness of Cath's back passage as anything else, but the girls want more

"Don't stop!" Cath implores.

"Fuck her arse!" Shona commands.

So driven on, I set up long slow strokes in Cath's arse making her take my full length each time and bringing her to multiple orgasms as I do so until finally it is game time once more. My balls tighten and again pump a prodigious amount of sperm down my cock and into Cath's rear. As I pull out, my knob making a distinct plop as it comes free, Shona jumps down at Cath's rear and proceeds to suck most of my load out off her still dilated arse hole before pulling her up and kissing her deeply - the girls again sharing my load with their tongues.

"That was so good! My arse is really throbbing still. I didn't expect my orgasms to be so strong. Why is it that boys never do what they're told?" Cath asks Shona.

"Don't know" Shona replies "but I think we can get this one trained!"

"Thanks very much." I laugh adding "Well if this is training what's the big match like!"

Shona aims a pretty vicious looking left hook at me but I dodge and proceed to chase her round the kitchen catching her round the waist. She melts against my body. "You really do make me feel good Jim. I love the way you touch me and I love having that monster tool of yours in me and I love seeing you with other girls. Do you mind that - me liking girls and liking to see people fucking? I don't think it makes me weird or anything does it?"

Once more I struggle for a reply. "Well I've certainly enjoyed myself this afternoon. Hell, if you'd stuck to your original plan ONLY to let me play with your tits I'd have been on cloud nine for the rest of the month but this afternoon has been fantastic! its been great learning how to give you so much pleasure and Dot and Cath. You're all quite different - I'm not sure quite how but if I were to fuck each of you blindfold I'd know who it was simply from the feel of your puss. And as for the feelings you've set up in me - I just never dreamt it could be so good - I know everyone at school raves about sex now I know why!"

"Don't fool yourself!" Shona cuts in "That's all talk, nearly every one at school is still a virgin! There's a lot of lesbian activity though as you've no doubt gathered but you haven't answered the question."

"No I don't suppose I have. I certainly enjoyed being with Dot and Cath as well as you this afternoon and if seeing me with them turns you on that's fine by me. I enjoy the look and feel of a girl's body so why shouldn't you? Just as long as you let me join in sometimes."

"Taking that argument fully that would mean you like boys! Do you?" Shona asks, laughing at the look of horror on my face.

"Nah, too bony. Bits stick out on all the wrong places." I rejoin.

"Not for me they don't." she says reaching behind her to gently stroke my cock. "Now let's get these sandwiches eaten and get back to business!"

We hastily gulp down some of the food and drink and then return to the bedroom. Shona orders me to lie back on the bed my torso raised so that I'm half sitting and then stares in dismay at my still limp cock - no wonder after all the action he's seen today. "You broke it - you fix it Cath." she orders.

"What to you mean?" Cath wonders.

"It was your tight little holes that tired him out. Suck him up to a nice firm erection so I can enjoy him up my arse again."

"I certainly try." Cath responds lowering her mouth to my cock and slowly sucking him in. He twitches in reply and soon Cath's attentions have him ready for action as she stokes him into her throat for the first time.

"Don't bring him off." Shona implores "I need him good and hard for what I have in mind."

With that Cath draws me out of the mouth and rolls over to Shona plonking a kiss on her left nipple. "Good enough for you" she asks indicating the results of her handiwork - or should that be mouth work?

"Oh I think I might manage with that." Shona smiles as she straddles my body facing away like she had just before Dot discovered us but this time sat directing my proud erection into her arse as she sits down going right to the bottom on the first stroke. "Ah that feels good." she mutters. It certainly does - despite all the fucking I'd enjoyed today the sensation is as exquisite as ever for me. I wait for her to pick up her rhythm but she sits still with me firmly embedded so I start to buck my hips. "Lie still" she commands "play with my tits but lie still."

As I reach forward and begin to knead her firm flesh, she continues "Cath get yourself over here and fuck my puss with your fist. Remember you've got to bring Jim off too."

Cath moves instantly to comply, first lapping away at Shona's cunt and then, as Shona leans back against me, working her fingers in until she has her whole fist inside. The pressure against my cock is incredible making me cry out in pleasure.

"That feels so good - I've never felt so full. Go deeper Cath" Shona begs. "Go deeper and see if you can feel Jim's knob." Cath forces her fist deeper into Shona's cunt until I do indeed feel it against my knob pressing hard. "Yes yes" Shona calls out knowing Cath had made it, trying to shudder her way through a massive climax which won't go away. I can remain passive no longer and begin to buck my hips forcing my cock up and down Shona's tighter than ever rear, feeling Cath almost wank me through her cunt wall. No commands came from Shona for me to stop this time - I don't think she is capable being lost in her orgasm. A few strokes is all it takes before I come, the intensity tremendous. I lie back exhausted as Cath withdraws her fist and then Shona climbs off me. She hugs both Cath and I.

"That was the best yet - I was totally gone. I know Dot lost it when we did her like that Jim but I'd never have believed it to be like that. Want to try Cath?" she enthuses.

Cath looks at the time and shakes her head sadly "I'll need to go soon and I wouldn't want to rush it. Perhaps another day? But I've got time for a nice pussy fuck to wind me down if you're able Jim? I'd like it doggy style - I've not tried that yet."

Amazingly, my cock was still 'able' so I position Cath kneeling on the edge of the bed and stand behind her. Shona again slides underneath her to watch the penetration. As I slide into Cath's velvet wetness I feel Shona's tongue lashing everywhere, my shaft and balls, Cath's wet slit and full, erect clit. Cath returns the favour, fixing her mouth firmly on Shona's pussy, her lips engorged from the previous round. All that can be heard is the sound of fucking and sucking, my cock taking long strokes into Cath's tightness, she taking my full length on every stroke, my pace increasing, the girls exploring everywhere with their tongues until Shona sounds out her orgasm first being still so hot, her juices spurting into Cath's mouth. Cath and I come together, gasping in uniform at it's ferocity. We fall into a tangle of legs and arms.

"Is that you wound down and ready to go home?" I tease Cath as she lies gasping for breath.

"Anything but! That was bril! I loved it when you got off at the same time as me Jim." she gasps out recovering slowly. "But I really have to go."

Shona and I 'help' her dress, teasing at her nipples and pussy as we do so until she pulls away. "Look I must go - promise you'll fuck me tomorrow Jim?"

"Name the time."

"Morning break. Meet me in the chemistry lab - we should be able to use the darkroom."

Finished dressing, she pulls Shona to her and kisses her. "Thanks for inviting me over - lets do it again soon." The girlfriends embrace, Shona's naked body pressing tightly against Cath's. As the embrace breaks Cath comes to me and hugs me just as tightly. "That was wonderful Jim. See you tomorrow, don't forget." As if!

With that she lets herself out and Shona and I, alone for the first time in several hours, fall into a passionate embrace, hands going everywhere.

"There's one last trick I'd like to try. I got the idea at tea-time but I thought I'd keep it just for us." Shona informs me mysteriously. "Go into the bedroom and wait for me."

So wondering what is coming, I go to the bedroom and wait, lying expectantly on the bed. A few minutes later Shona joins me and lies down beside me. "I want you to fuck my pussy nice and slow, gently like you did the first time with Cath. Thanks for being so gentle and caring with Cath - it really gave me such a thrill to see you take her, seeing your big prick stretch her pussy lips like that."

"Why?" I wonder "You'd already seen me fuck Dot - and fisted her puss."

"I know, but of all my girlfriends, Cath is special. Now fuck me!"

"You'll have to do something about him first." I indicate my limp cock.

"Oh Jim! You're not going to let me down now are you? I'll never let you fuck me again if you do." she says somewhat peeved.

But a few minutes kissing and cuddling, my hands working overtime on those gorgeous tits, soon sees him stirring. Seeing this, Shona takes him into her mouth and soon everything is hunky-dory again.

"Would you really never let me do you again if I'd failed just now?" I ask her doubting she really meant it - she likes fucking too much judging from this afternoon's performance.

"You'll never know now will you? Now come and fuck me nice and slow" Shona begs, lying back spreading her legs wide.

I roll over on top of her and she guides my cock to the entrance of her tight fuck hole. I press forward parting her pussy lips and discovering why she wanted me to go slow. Her back passage was already full - she had something hard and apparently quite big, much bigger than the candle she had previously used, pressed up her arse hole.

"That's it Jim. Slide him all the way in. Fill me. Yes, yes! That feels so good." Shona moans writhing beneath me as I try to comply. Whatever is in her arse is making her puss almost impossibly tight for me but after a few moments pushing steadily forwards my balls come to rest against her puss.

"Shona, you're unbelievably tight. What have you got in your arse?" I gasp.

"Cucumber. I saw it in the fridge when I was making tea and thought it looked like a cock. Like it? I do. I feel even better than when you and Cath did me earlier. Now stop taking and fuck." she begs.

Slowly I being to withdraw and push forward again with small slow movements until my lust takes over and I am soon banging my cock quite violently into Shona's puss against the hardness of the cucumber in her rectum, she rising to meet my every stroke, coming hard as she does so. Despite Shona's cunt milking my cock, despite the almost unbearable tightness of her, despite everything it takes me a long time to come. I almost don't really want to - I want this to last forever - but eventually I feel my balls being to tighten. Shona does too. "Don't come in me. Spray your seed over my tits." she begs so I withdraw and stand over. She grabs my cock and begins to pump her fist up and down my long shaft releasing thick jets of come all over her chest. When I've no more to give she lies back massaging my sperm into her tits, pushing herself to another small orgasm.

Sated, Shona rises into a squat and neatly ejects a long length of cucumber from her butt before lying back again, indicating me to join her. "The was absolutely brilliant Jim. It was so good having both my holes filled at the same time. The only thing that would make it better would be if Cath was still here to suck your cum from my tits."

"Will I do? That was some show little Sis. Now I know why you like to watch John and I fuck. You've got me so hot."

This could only be Eileen, Shona's elder sister, For the second time today Shona and I have been caught in the act, the sex act that is!

Shona and I turn as one so see Eileen framed in the doorway fingering her nicely trimmed puss, not a stitch on. She leaps across the room to join us on the bed, licking and sucking my sperm from her sister's tits before another word could be said. Taking full advantage of the situation, I move round behind Eileen and push my still hard cock into her well lubed cunt - another one turned on by seeing other people fuck? - and proceed to fuck her with quick hard thrusts bringing her off in no time. I continue to pleasure myself in her tightness, making her come time and again until she, realising I'm not going to come quickly after fucking her sister so comprehensively only a short time before, begs me to stop - she can't take any more!

I withdraw and we slump down beside Shona, who finding my hardness slips it into her cunt. "Don't do anything - I just want to feel you in me." she instructs me before turning to her sister "I didn't know you knew I watched."

"Oh I caught a movement a few months ago and realised it could only be you outside. Ever since then I've made a point of leaving the door open and the light on when we fuck. Have you noticed Shona?" Eileen asks in reply. "John doesn't know though - he just thinks I like it with the light on - but I get a thrill from knowing you are watching."

"How long were you watching us?" Shona asks.

"I saw you going naked into the bedroom as I came in and guessed you were up to something - thought it would be one of your girlfriends though - so I stripped off ready to come and join you, then as I was about to come in I saw Jim slip that monster tool of his into your puss and begin to fuck you! I guess with that cucumber routine that wasn't your first time? I had always intended to get you into bed with John and I but I was going to wait till after your birthday!"

"No not our first time but we only did it for the first time today." Shona proceeds to relate the story of the day's events to her sister frigging Eileen's clit as she does so making her hotter and hotter as she does so. "And finally Jim fucked you." Shona concludes. "Like it?"

"Like it!" Eileen squeals delightedly as she comes against Shona's hand. "I've never come like it in my life - I just couldn't take any more at the end. That's some stud you've got yourself Sis. John never manages to hold off long enough to make me come when we fuck - that's why I always slip into bed with you after he's gone for a bit of girly action to get me over - and he's nothing like the size of Jim, only five inches maybe. How big is that tool Jim?"

"About twelve inches." I reply modestly.

"I say we measure it!"

"He's busy right now." Shona tells Eileen in reply, her sister realising for the first time where my cock had been all the time Shona had been relating the story, she clamping down hard on me every time she got to a point were my cock entered some hole or other. As a consequence she was quite near her own orgasm now so I begin to buck gently beside her pushing her over the edge. Sighing gently, she climbs off without waiting for me to come but I don't mind, I know she'll make sure I get my satisfaction sooner or later.

Shona fishes a sowing tape out of a drawer. "Thirteen and an half, no make that fourteen inches. Seven inches round at the base of his knob and eight at the root." she intones to her sister, tape measure flashing up and down my dick as if she were a tailor measuring him up for a suit.

"Fourteen inches!" I laugh. "You've stretched me!"

"No, definitely fourteen" she enthuses "and if anything's been stretched its my throat, puss and arse in that order! Talking of arses, Eileen, have you ever let John fuck your arse? I've never seen you do it?"

Eileen looks uncomfortable "No I never have - don't know I fancy it much."

"Oh you've got to! It felt wonderful the first time Jim accidentally pushed his cock up mine and you saw how hot I was with both holes filled at the same time! You've got to try!" Without waiting for further argument Shona pulls Eileen over me and pushes her cunt down on my cock. "The trick you see is to get him nice and slick in that juicy cunt of yours and then he'll just slide up no problem. You won't believe how good it feels." Eileen is lost as she begins to slide up and down my pole, Shona massaging her tits at the same time, bringing her to climax quickly. Shona pulls her off and before Eileen can resist presses my knob against her arse hole and pushes her back down causing a little gasp of pain from both Eileen and I as my cock forces it's way roughly into her rectum.

"Easy! Take it easy Shona." I tell her but soon Eileen is slowly sinking down my shaft taking me deeper of her own accord as Shona continues to massage her chest whispering in her ear "How does it feel Sis? Didn't I tell you it was good?"

"Mmmm. Its so big. It feels kinda strange but its starting to feel good. Guess I was scared of having something so big in there." Eileen begins to rise and fall gently taking me deeper every time and I respond, bucking my hips, until she has my full length in her. "Lie back and enjoy the ride Jim. Let me do all the work. You too Shona, lie back and enjoy." she says pushing her sister away, obviously fully happy now with the idea of having my cock in her back passage. "After all I know you like watching, so watch me fuck my arse on Jim's prick!"

Eileen adjusts her legs until her feet are on the bed either side of my hips and, using her legs, begins to pump herself up and down on my cock, rising until only my knob is still within her before falling to take my full length again, teasing my foreskin deliciously as she does so. After a few minutes watching as instructed and letting me watch my cock disappear into and reappear from her sister's hot tight arse, Shona squats down on my face pushing her cunt to my mouth. "Eat me." she commands as if I needed told! As I begin to lap and push my tongue as deep as I can into her hole she leans forward and pulls Eileen to her grabbing her tits and kissing her. As the two girls tongues entwine, Eileen grabs Shona's tits and the circle of joy is complete, Eileen still maintaining momentum on my cock, my climax fast approaching. We all come in union, Shona flooding my face again, as Eileen triumphantly screams out her orgasm, as my balls let go again, filling Eileen's arse for the first time.

As we lie together, quite literally fucked out, Eileen tells Shona "I'm going to need to find a new boyfriend. John could never have managed that!"

"Borrow mine..." Shona offers magnanimously "so long as I can watch!"

"Anyone ever tell you watching was meant to be a passive thing?"

"Don't tell me you didn't enjoy it!" Shona protests.

"I certainly did - once I got used to Jim's cock in my arse it was heaven and you getting my tits did it for me. I have never come so hard in my life!"

"Well I think you were both amazing as well but I doubt I've anything left to give and I'll need to get home soon anyway.

"Ahw wouldn't you like one last fuck in Shona's nice tight pussy." Shona coos to my limp cock nibbling gently at it. She continues nibbling and licking away and to my utter astonishment he rises once more to the task and Shona lies back. "Come and fuck me like you did the first time Jim." she instructs "You can't leave with a hard on."

"The little minx is insatiable." I think as she settles her legs on my shoulders and my cock slips into her wetness once more. Despite all the fucking and sucking I've experienced today there is no getting over the feeling of her tight, tight puss wrapped around my cock as I slide slowly in and out of her. Once more my hands go to her tits, caressing, fondling, kneading her small firm mounds, teasing and pinching her full, erect nipples making her squeak with joy. She is coming constantly and I know I won't be long as I pick up the pace of my thrusts. All to soon my balls tighten and I deposit another load into Shona's overflowing cunt. This time I am done!

As I dress, the girls lie watching telling me how good they feel and were glad everything had happened. "I am too" I say as I give them a last cuddle each.

"Good." said Shona. "Happy birthday Jim! Now go home and get some sleep - you'll need your strength tomorrow. Don't forget to meet Cath at break and I presume you'll be lunching here with me?" she continues, playing suggestively with her own tits.

"I'll pick you up here before school as usual." I smile to her as she sees me out. A final passionate kiss and I am gone, back home to sleep the sleep of the dead.